- The Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
- Swanston Edition Vol. 18 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
- Title: The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson - Swanston Edition Vol. 18 (of 25)
- Author: Robert Louis Stevenson
- Other: Andrew Lang
- Release Date: March 8, 2010 [EBook #31557]
- Language: English
- *** START OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON ***
- Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
- Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
- THE WORKS OF
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON
- SWANSTON EDITION
- VOLUME XVIII
- _Of this SWANSTON EDITION in Twenty-five
- Volumes of the Works of ROBERT LOUIS
- STEVENSON Two Thousand and Sixty Copies
- have been printed, of which only Two Thousand
- Copies are for sale._
- _This is No._ .......
- [Illustration: A MAP TO ILLUSTRATE R. L. STEVENSON'S LIFE IN THE SOUTH
- SEAS]
- THE WORKS OF
- ROBERT LOUIS
- STEVENSON
- VOLUME EIGHTEEN
- LONDON: PUBLISHED BY CHATTO AND
- WINDUS: IN ASSOCIATION WITH CASSELL
- AND COMPANY LIMITED: WILLIAM
- HEINEMANN: AND LONGMANS GREEN
- AND COMPANY MDCCCCXII
- ALL RIGHTS RESERVED
- CONTENTS
- IN THE SOUTH SEAS
- PAGE
- Editorial Note ix
- PART I.--THE MARQUESAS
- CHAPTER
- I. An Island Landfall 5
- II. Making Friends 12
- III. The Maroon 21
- IV. Death 28
- V. Depopulation 36
- VI. Chiefs and Tapus 44
- VII. Hatiheu 53
- VIII. The Port of Entry 61
- IX. The House of Temoana 69
- X. A Portrait and a Story 77
- XI. Long-Pig--a Cannibal High Place 85
- XII. The Story of a Plantation 95
- XIII. Characters 105
- XIV. In a Cannibal Valley 112
- XV. The Two Chiefs of Atuona 119
- PART II.--THE PAUMOTUS
- I. The Dangerous Archipelago--Atolls at a Distance 129
- II. Fakarava: an Atoll at Hand 137
- III. A House To Let in a Low Island 146
- IV. Traits and Sects in the Paumotus 155
- V. A Paumotuan Funeral 165
- VI. Graveyard Stories 170
- PART III.--THE EIGHT ISLANDS
- I. The Kona Coast 187
- II. A Ride in the Forest 197
- III. The City of Refuge 203
- IV. Kaahumanu 209
- V. The Lepers of Kona 215
- PART IV.--THE GILBERTS
- I. Butaritari 223
- II. The Four Brothers 229
- III. Around Our House 237
- IV. A Tale of a Tapu 247
- V. A Tale of a Tapu (_continued_) 255
- VI. The Five Days' Festival 265
- VII. Husband and Wife 278
- PART V.--THE GILBERTS--APEMAMA
- I. The King of Apemama: the Royal Trader 289
- II. The King of Apemama: Foundation Of Equator Town 298
- III. The King of Apemama: the Palace of Many Women 306
- IV. The King of Apemama: Equator Town And the Palace 313
- V. King and Commons 321
- VI. The King of Apemama: Devil-work 330
- VII. The King of Apemama 342
- LETTERS FROM SAMOA 351
- EDITORIAL NOTE
- _The following chapters are selected from a series which was first
- published partially in 'Black and White' (February to December 1891),
- and fully in the New York 'Sun' during the same period. The voyages
- which supplied the occasion and the material for the work were three in
- number, viz. one of seven months (June 1888 to January 1889) in the
- yacht 'Casco' from San Francisco to the Marquesas, the Paumotus, Tahiti,
- and thence northward to Hawaii; a second (June to December 1889) in the
- trading schooner 'Equator,' from Honolulu, the Hawaiian capital, where
- the author had stayed in the intervening five months, to the Gilberts
- and thence to Samoa; and a third (April to September 1890) in the
- trading steamer 'Janet Nicoll,' which set out from Sydney and followed a
- very devious course, extending as far as Penrhyn in the Eastern to the
- Marshall Islands in the Western Pacific._
- _Before setting out on the first of these voyages, the author had
- contracted to write an account of his adventures in the form of letters
- for serial publication. The plan by and by changed in his mind into that
- of a book partly of travel and partly of research, which should combine
- the results of much careful observation and enquiry upon matters of
- island history, custom, belief, and tradition, with some account of his
- own experiences and those of his travelling companions. Under the
- nominal title of 'Letters' he began to compose the chapters of such a
- book on board the 'Janet Nicoll,' and continued the task during the
- first ten months of his residence in Samoa (October 1890 to July 1891).
- Before the serial publication had gone very far, he realised that the
- personal and impersonal elements in his work were not very successfully_
- _ combined, nor in proportions that contented his readers. Accordingly
- he abandoned for the time being the idea of republishing the chapters in
- book form. But when the scheme of the Edinburgh Edition was maturing, he
- desired that a selection should be made from them and should form one
- volume of that edition. That desire was carried out. The same selection
- is here republished, with the addition of a half-section then omitted,
- describing a visit to the Kona coast of Hawaii and the lepers' port of
- embarkation for Molokai._
- _It must be understood that a considerable portion of the author's
- voyages above mentioned is not recorded at all in the following pages.
- Of one of its most attractive episodes, the visit to Tahiti, no account
- was written; while of his experiences in Hawaii only the visit to the
- Kona coast is included. Several chapters which did not come out to the
- writer's satisfaction have been omitted. Of the five sections here
- given, each is complete in itself, with the exception of Part III. The
- first deals with the Marquesas, the second with the Paumolus--the former
- a volcanic and mountainous group, the latter a low group of atolls or
- coral islands, both in the Eastern Pacific and both under the
- protectorate of France. The third section is fragmentary, and deals, as
- has been said, with only one portion of the writer's experiences in
- Hawaii. The last two describe his residence in the Gilberts, a remote
- and little-known coral group in the Western Pacific, which at the time
- of his visit was under independent native government, but has since been
- annexed by Great Britain. This is the part of his work with which the
- author himself was best satisfied, and it derives additional interest
- from describing a state of manners and government which has now passed
- away._
- IN THE SOUTH SEAS
- BEING AN ACCOUNT OF EXPERIENCES AND OBSERVATIONS IN THE MARQUESAS,
- PAUMOTUS AND GILBERT ISLANDS IN THE COURSE OF TWO CRUISES, ON THE
- YACHT _CASCO_ (1888) AND THE SCHOONER _EQUATOR_ (1889)
- PART I
- THE MARQUESAS
- IN THE SOUTH SEAS
- CHAPTER I
- AN ISLAND LANDFALL
- For nearly ten years my health had been declining; and for some while
- before I set forth upon my voyage, I believed I was come to the
- afterpiece of life, and had only the nurse and undertaker to expect. It
- was suggested that I should try the South Seas; and I was not unwilling
- to visit like a ghost, and be carried like a bale, among scenes that had
- attracted me in youth and health. I chartered accordingly Dr. Merrit's
- schooner yacht, the _Casco_, seventy-four tons register; sailed from San
- Francisco towards the end of June 1888, visited the eastern islands, and
- was left early the next year at Honolulu. Hence, lacking courage to
- return to my old life of the house and sick-room, I set forth to leeward
- in a trading schooner, the _Equator_, of a little over seventy tons,
- spent four months among the atolls (low coral islands) of the Gilbert
- group, and reached Samoa towards the close of '89. By that time
- gratitude and habit were beginning to attach me to the islands; I had
- gained a competency of strength; I had made friends; I had learned new
- interests; the time of my voyages had passed like days in fairyland; and
- I decided to remain. I began to prepare these pages at sea, on a third
- cruise, in the trading steamer _Janet Nicoll_. If more days are granted
- me, they shall be passed where I have found life most pleasant and man
- most interesting; the axes of my black boys are already clearing the
- foundations of my future house; and I must learn to address readers from
- the uttermost parts of the sea.
- That I should thus have reversed the verdict of Lord Tennyson's hero is
- less eccentric than appears. Few men who come to the islands leave them;
- they grow grey where they alighted; the palm shades and the trade-wind
- fans them till they die, perhaps cherishing to the last the fancy of a
- visit home, which is rarely made, more rarely enjoyed, and yet more
- rarely repeated. No part of the world exerts the same attractive power
- upon the visitor, and the task before me is to communicate to fireside
- travellers some sense of its seduction, and to describe the life, at sea
- and ashore, of many hundred thousand persons, some of our own blood and
- language, all our contemporaries, and yet as remote in thought and habit
- as Rob Roy or Barbarossa, the Apostles or the Cæsars.
- The first experience can never be repeated. The first love, the first
- sunrise, the first South Sea island, are memories apart and touched a
- virginity of sense. On the 28th of July 1888 the moon was an hour down
- by four in the morning. In the east a radiating centre of brightness
- told of the day; and beneath, on the skyline, the morning bank was
- already building, black as ink. We have all read of the swiftness of the
- day's coming and departure in low latitudes; it is a point on which the
- scientific and sentimental tourist are at one, and has inspired some
- tasteful poetry. The period certainly varies with the season; but here
- is one case exactly noted. Although the dawn was thus preparing by four,
- the sun was not up till six; and it was half-past five before we could
- distinguish our expected islands from the clouds on the horizon. Eight
- degrees south, and the day two hours a-coming. The interval was passed
- on deck in the silence of expectation, the customary thrill of landfall
- heightened by the strangeness of the shores that we were then
- approaching. Slowly they took shape in the attenuating darkness.
- Ua-huna, piling up to a truncated summit, appeared the first upon the
- starboard bow; almost abeam arose our destination, Nuka-hiva, whelmed in
- cloud; and betwixt and to the southward, the first rays of the sun
- displayed the needles of Ua-pu. These pricked about the line of the
- horizon; like the pinnacles of some ornate and monstrous church, they
- stood there, in the sparkling brightness of the morning, the fit
- signboard of a world of wonders.
- Not one soul aboard the _Casco_ had set foot upon the islands, or knew,
- except by accident, one word of any of the island tongues; and it was
- with something perhaps of the same anxious pleasure as thrilled the
- bosom of discoverers that we drew near these problematic shores. The
- land heaved up in peaks and rising vales; it fell in cliffs and
- buttresses; its colour ran through fifty modulations in a scale of pearl
- and rose and olive; and it was crowned above by opalescent clouds. The
- suffusion of vague hues deceived the eye; the shadows of clouds were
- confounded with the articulations of the mountain; and the isle and its
- unsubstantial canopy rose and shimmered before us like a single mass.
- There was no beacon, no smoke of towns to be expected, no plying pilot.
- Somewhere, in that pale phantasmagoria of cliff and cloud, our haven lay
- concealed; and somewhere to the east of it--the only sea-mark given--a
- certain headland, known indifferently as Cape Adam and Eve, or Cape Jack
- and Jane, and distinguished by two colossal figures, the gross statuary
- of nature. These we were to find; for these we craned and stared,
- focussed glasses, and wrangled over charts; and the sun was overhead and
- the land close ahead before we found them. To a ship approaching, like
- the _Casco_, from the north, they proved indeed the least conspicuous
- features of a striking coast; the surf flying high above its base;
- strange, austere, and feathered mountains rising behind; and Jack and
- Jane, or Adam and Eve, impending like a pair of warts above the
- breakers.
- Thence we bore away along shore. On our port beam we might hear the
- explosions of the surf; a few birds flew fishing under the prow; there
- was no other sound or mark of life, whether of man or beast, in all that
- quarter of the island. Winged by her own impetus and the dying breeze,
- the _Casco_ skimmed under cliffs, opened out a cove, showed us a beach
- and some green trees, and flitted by again, bowing to the swell. The
- trees, from our distance, might have been hazel; the beach might have
- been in Europe; the mountain forms behind modelled in little from the
- Alps, and the forest which clustered on their ramparts a growth no more
- considerable than our Scottish heath. Again the cliff yawned, but now
- with a deeper entry; and the _Casco_, hauling her wind, began to slide
- into the bay of Anaho. The coco-palm, that giraffe of vegetables, so
- graceful, so ungainly, to the European eye so foreign, was to be seen
- crowding on the beach, and climbing and fringing the steep sides of
- mountains. Rude and bare hills embraced the inlet upon either hand; it
- was enclosed to the landward by a bulk of shattered mountains. In every
- crevice of that barrier the forest harboured, roosting and nesting there
- like birds about a ruin; and far above, it greened and roughened the
- razor edges of the summit.
- Under the eastern shore, our schooner, now bereft of any breeze,
- continued to creep in: the smart creature, when once under way,
- appearing motive in herself. From close aboard arose the bleating of
- young lambs; a bird sang in the hillside; the scent of the land and of a
- hundred fruits or flowers flowed forth to meet us; and, presently, a
- house or two appeared, standing high upon the ankles of the hills, and
- one of these surrounded with what seemed a garden. These conspicuous
- habitations, that patch of culture, had we but known it, were a mark of
- the passage of whites; and we might have approached a hundred islands
- and not found their parallel. It was longer ere we spied the native
- village, standing (in the universal fashion) close upon a curve of
- beach, close under a grove of palms; the sea in front growling and
- whitening on a concave arc of reef. For the coco-tree and the island man
- are both lovers and neighbours of the surf. "The coral waxes, the palm
- grows, but man departs," says the sad Tahitian proverb; but they are all
- three, so long as they endure, co-haunters of the beach. The mark of
- anchorage was a blow-hole in the rocks, near the south-easterly corner
- of the bay. Punctually to our use, the blow-hole spouted; the schooner
- turned upon her heel; the anchor plunged. It was a small sound, a great
- event; my soul went down with these moorings whence no windlass may
- extract nor any diver fish it up; and I, and some part of my ship's
- company, were from that hour the bondslaves of the isles of Vivien.
- Before yet the anchor plunged a canoe was already paddling from the
- hamlet. It contained two men: one white, one brown and tattooed across
- the face with bands of blue, both in immaculate white European clothes:
- the resident trader, Mr. Regler, and the native chief, Taipi-kikino.
- "Captain, is it permitted to come on board?" were the first words we
- heard among the islands. Canoe followed canoe, till the ship swarmed
- with stalwart, six-foot men in every stage of undress; some in a shirt,
- some in a loin-cloth, one in a handkerchief imperfectly adjusted; some,
- and these the more considerable, tattooed from head to foot in awful
- patterns; some barbarous and knived; one, who sticks in my memory as
- something bestial, squatting on his hams in a canoe, sucking an orange
- and spitting it out again to alternate sides with ape-like vivacity--all
- talking, and we could not understand one word; all trying to trade with
- us who had no thought of trading, or offering us island curios at prices
- palpably absurd. There was no word of welcome; no show of civility; no
- hand extended save that of the chief and Mr. Regler. As we still
- continued to refuse the proffered articles, complaint ran high and rude;
- and one, the jester of the party, railed upon our meanness amid jeering
- laughter. Amongst other angry pleasantries--"Here is a mighty fine
- ship," said he, "to have no money on board!" I own I was inspired with
- sensible repugnance; even with alarm. The ship was manifestly in their
- power; we had women on board; I knew nothing of my guests beyond the
- fact that they were cannibals; the Directory (my only guide) was full of
- timid cautions; and as for the trader, whose presence might else have
- reassured me, were not whites in the Pacific the usual instigators and
- accomplices of native outrage? When he reads this confession, our kind
- friend, Mr. Regler, can afford to smile.
- Later in the day, as I sat writing up my journal, the cabin was filled
- from end to end with Marquesans: three brown-skinned generations,
- squatted cross-legged upon the floor, and regarding me in silence with
- embarrassing eyes. The eyes of all Polynesians are large, luminous, and
- melting; they are like the eyes of animals and some Italians. A kind of
- despair came over me, to sit there helpless under all these staring
- orbs, and be thus blocked in a corner of my cabin by this speechless
- crowd: and a kind of rage to think they were beyond the reach of
- articulate communication, like furred animals, or folk born deaf, or the
- dwellers of some alien planet.
- To cross the Channel is, for a boy of twelve, to change heavens; to
- cross the Atlantic, for a man of twenty-four, is hardly to modify his
- diet. But I was now escaped out of the shadow of the Roman empire, under
- whose toppling monuments we were all cradled, whose laws and letters are
- on every hand of us, constraining and preventing. I was now to see what
- men might be whose fathers had never studied Virgil, had never been
- conquered by Cæsar, and never been ruled by the wisdom of Gaius or
- Papinian. By the same step I had journeyed forth out of that comfortable
- zone of kindred languages, where the curse of Babel is so easy to be
- remedied; and my new fellow-creatures sat before me dumb like images.
- Methought, in my travels, all human relation was to be excluded; and
- when I returned home (for in those days I still projected my return) I
- should have but dipped into a picture-book without a text. Nay, and I
- even questioned if my travels should be much prolonged; perhaps they
- were destined to a speedy end; perhaps my subsequent friend, Kauanui,
- whom I remarked there, sitting silent with the rest, for a man of some
- authority, might leap from his hams with an ear-splitting signal, the
- ship be carried at a rush, and the ship's company butchered for the
- table.
- There could be nothing more natural than these apprehensions, nor
- anything more groundless. In my experience of the islands, I had never
- again so menacing a reception; were I to meet with such to-day, I should
- be more alarmed and tenfold more surprised. The majority of Polynesians
- are easy folk to get in touch with, frank, fond of notice, greedy of the
- least affection, like amiable, fawning dogs; and even with the
- Marquesans, so recently and so imperfectly redeemed from a
- blood-boltered barbarism, all were to become our intimates, and one, at
- least, was to mourn sincerely our departure.
- CHAPTER II
- MAKING FRIENDS
- The impediment of tongues was one that I particularly over-estimated.
- The languages of Polynesia are easy to smatter, though hard to speak
- with elegance. And they are extremely similar, so that a person who has
- a tincture of one or two may risk, not without hope, an attempt upon the
- others.
- And again, not only is Polynesian easy to smatter, but interpreters
- abound. Missionaries, traders, and broken white folk living on the
- bounty of the natives, are to be found in almost every isle and hamlet;
- and even where these are unserviceable, the natives themselves have
- often scraped up a little English, and in the French zone (though far
- less commonly) a little French-English, or an efficient pidgin, what is
- called to the westward "Beach-la-Mar," comes easy to the Polynesian; it
- is now taught, besides, in the schools of Hawaii; and from the
- multiplicity of British ships, and the nearness of the States on the one
- hand and the colonies on the other, it may be called, and will almost
- certainly become, the tongue of the Pacific.
- I will instance a few examples. I met in Majuro a Marshall Island boy
- who spoke excellent English; this he had learned in the German firm in
- Jaluit, yet did not speak one word of German. I heard from a gendarme
- who had taught school in Rapa-iti that while the children had the utmost
- difficulty or reluctance to learn French, they picked up English on the
- wayside, and as if by accident. On one of the most out-of-the-way atolls
- in the Carolines, my friend Mr. Benjamin Hird was amazed to find the
- lads playing cricket on the beach and talking English; and it was in
- English that the crew of the _Janet Nicoll_, a set of black boys from
- different Melanesian islands, communicated with other natives throughout
- the cruise, transmitted orders, and sometimes jested together on the
- fore-hatch. But what struck me perhaps most of all was a word I heard on
- the verandah of the Tribunal at Noumea. A case had just been heard--a
- trial for infanticide against an ape-like native woman; and the audience
- were smoking cigarettes as they awaited the verdict. An anxious, amiable
- French lady, not far from tears, was eager for acquittal, and declared
- she would engage the prisoner to be her children's nurse. The bystanders
- exclaimed at the proposal; the woman was a savage, said they, and spoke
- no language. "_Mais vous savez_," objected the fair sentimentalist;
- "_ils apprennent si vite l'anglais_!"
- But to be able to speak to people is not all. And in the first stage of
- my relations with natives I was helped by two things. To begin with, I
- was the showman of the _Casco_. She, her fine lines, tall spars, and
- snowy decks, the crimson fittings of the saloon, and the white, the
- gilt, and the repeating mirrors of the tiny cabin, brought us a hundred
- visitors. The men fathomed out her dimensions with their arms, as their
- fathers fathomed out the ships of Cook; the women declared the cabins
- more lovely than a church; bouncing Junos were never weary of sitting in
- the chairs and contemplating in the glass their own bland images; and I
- have seen one lady strip up her dress, and, with cries of wonder and
- delight, rub herself bare-breeched upon the velvet cushions.
- Biscuit, jam, and syrup was the entertainment; and, as in European
- parlours, the photograph album went the round. This sober gallery, their
- everyday costumes and physiognomies, had been transformed, in three
- weeks' sailing, into things wonderful and rich and foreign; alien faces,
- barbaric dresses, they were now beheld and fingered, in the swerving
- cabin, with innocent excitement and surprise. Her Majesty was often
- recognised, and I have seen French subjects kiss her photograph;
- Captain Speedy--in an Abyssinian war-dress, supposed to be the uniform
- of the British army--met with much acceptance; and the effigies of Mr.
- Andrew Lang were admired in the Marquesas. There is the place for him to
- go when he shall be weary of Middlesex and Homer.
- It was perhaps yet more important that I had enjoyed in my youth some
- knowledge of our Scots folk of the Highlands and the Islands. Not much
- beyond a century has passed since these were in the same convulsive and
- transitionary state as the Marquesans of to-day. In both cases an alien
- authority enforced, the clans disarmed, the chiefs deposed, new customs
- introduced, and chiefly that fashion of regarding money as the means and
- object of existence. The commercial age, in each, succeeding at a bound
- to an age of war abroad and patriarchal communism at home. In one the
- cherished practice of tattooing, in the other a cherished costume,
- proscribed. In each a main luxury cut off: beef, driven under cloud of
- night from Lowland pastures, denied to the meat-loving Highlander;
- long-pig, pirated from the next village, to the man-eating Kanaka. The
- grumbling, the secret ferment, the fears and resentments, the alarms and
- sudden councils of Marquesan chiefs, reminded me continually of the days
- of Lovat and Struan. Hospitality, tact, natural fine manners, and a
- touchy punctilio, are common to both races: common to both tongues the
- trick of dropping medial consonants.
- Here is a table of two widespread Polynesian words:--
- House. Love.[1]
- Tahitian FARE AROHA
- New Zealand WHARE
- Samoan FALE TALOFA
- Manihiki FALE ALOHA
- Hawaiian HALE ALOHA
- Marquesan HA'E KAOHA
- The elision of medial consonants, so marked in these Marquesan
- instances, is no less common both in Gaelic and the Lowland Scots.
- Stranger still, that prevalent Polynesian sound, the so-called catch,
- written with an apostrophe, and often or always the gravestone of a
- perished consonant, is to be heard in Scotland to this day. When a Scot
- pronounces water, better, or bottle--_wa'er, be'er_, or _bo'le_--the
- sound is precisely that of the catch; and I think we may go beyond, and
- say, that if such a population could be isolated, and this
- mispronunciation should become the rule, it might prove the first stage
- of transition from _t_ to _k_, which is the disease of Polynesian
- languages. The tendency of the Marquesans, however, is to urge against
- consonants, or at least on the very common letter _l_, a war of mere
- extermination. A hiatus is agreeable to any Polynesian ear; the ear even
- of the stranger soon grows used to these barbaric voids; but only in the
- Marquesan will you find such names as _Haaii_ and _Paaaeua_, when each
- individual vowel must be separately uttered.
- These points of similarity between a South Sea people and some of my own
- folk at home ran much in my head in the islands; and not only inclined
- me to view my fresh acquaintances with favour, but continually modified
- my judgment. A polite Englishman comes to-day to the Marquesans and is
- amazed to find the men tattooed; polite Italians came not long ago to
- England and found our fathers stained with woad; and when I paid the
- return visit as a little boy, I was highly diverted with the
- backwardness of Italy: so insecure, so much a matter of the day and
- hour, is the pre-eminence of race. It was so that I hit upon a means of
- communication which I recommend to travellers. When I desired any detail
- of savage custom, or of superstitious belief, I cast back in the story
- of my fathers, and fished for what I wanted with some trait of equal
- barbarism: Michael Scott, Lord Derwentwater's head, the second-sight,
- the Water Kelpie--each of these I have found to be a killing bait; the
- black bull's head of Stirling procured me the legend of _Rahero_; and
- what I knew of the Cluny Macphersons, or the Appin Stewarts, enabled me
- to learn, and helped me to understand, about the _Tevas_ of Tahiti. The
- native was no longer ashamed, his sense of kinship grew warmer, and his
- lips were opened. It is this sense of kinship that the traveller must
- rouse and share; or he had better content himself with travels from the
- blue bed to the brown. And the presence of one Cockney titterer will
- cause a whole party to walk in clouds of darkness.
- The hamlet of Anaho stands on a margin of flat land between the west of
- the beach and the spring of the impending mountains. A grove of palms,
- perpetually ruffling its green fans, carpets it (as for a triumph) with
- fallen branches, and shades it like an arbour. A road runs from end to
- end of the covert among beds of flowers, the milliner's shop of the
- community; and here and there, in the grateful twilight, in an air
- filled with a diversity of scents, and still within hearing of the surf
- upon the reef, the native houses stand in scattered neighbourhood. The
- same word, as we have seen, represents in many tongues of Polynesia,
- with scarce a shade of difference, the abode of man. But although the
- word be the same, the structure itself continually varies; and the
- Marquesan, among the most backward and barbarous of islanders, is yet
- the most commodiously lodged. The grass huts of Hawaii, the birdcage
- houses of Tahiti, or the open shed, with the crazy Venetian blinds, of
- the polite Samoan--none of these can be compared with the Marquesan
- _paepae-hae_, or dwelling platform. The paepae is an oblong terrace
- built without cement of black volcanic stone, from twenty to fifty feet
- in length, raised from four to eight feet from the earth, and accessible
- by a broad stair. Along the back of this, and coming to about half its
- width, runs the open front of the house, like a covered gallery: the
- interior sometimes neat and almost elegant in its bareness, the sleeping
- space divided off by an endlong coaming, some bright raiment perhaps
- hanging from a nail, and a lamp and one of White's sewing-machines, the
- only marks of civilisation. On the outside, at one end of the terrace,
- burns the cooking-fire under a shed; at the other there is perhaps a
- pen for pigs; the remainder is the evening lounge and _al fresco_
- banquet-hall of the inhabitants. To some houses water is brought down
- the mountain in bamboo pipes, perforated for the sake of sweetness. With
- the Highland comparison in my mind, I was struck to remember the
- sluttish mounds of turf and stone in which I have sat and been
- entertained in the Hebrides and the North Islands. Two things, I
- suppose, explain the contrast. In Scotland wood is rare, and with
- materials so rude as turf and stone the very hope of neatness is
- excluded. And in Scotland it is cold. Shelter and a hearth are needs so
- pressing that a man looks not beyond; he is out all day after a bare
- bellyful, and at night when he saith, "Aha, it is warm!" he has not
- appetite for more. Or if for something else, then something higher; a
- fine school of poetry and song arose in these rough shelters, and an air
- like "Lochaber no more" is an evidence of refinement more convincing, as
- well as more imperishable, than a palace.
- To one such dwelling platform a considerable troop of relatives and
- dependants resort. In the hour of the dusk, when the fire blazes, and
- the scent of the cooked breadfruit fills the air, and perhaps the lamp
- glints already between the pillars of the house, you shall behold them
- silently assemble to this meal, men, women, and children; and the dogs
- and pigs frisk together up the terrace stairway, switching rival tails.
- The strangers from the ship were soon equally welcome: welcome to dip
- their fingers in the wooden dish, to drink cocoa-nuts, to share the
- circulating pipe, and to hear and hold high debate about the misdeeds of
- the French, the Panama Canal, or the geographical position of San
- Francisco and New Yo'ko. In a Highland hamlet, quite out of reach of any
- tourist, I have met the same plain and dignified hospitality.
- I have mentioned two facts--the distasteful behaviour of our earliest
- visitors, and the case of the lady who rubbed herself upon the
- cushions--which would give a very false opinion of Marquesan manners.
- The great majority of Polynesians are excellently mannered; but the
- Marquesan stands apart, annoying and attractive, wild, shy, and refined.
- If you make him a present he affects to forget it, and it must be
- offered him again at his going: a pretty formality I have found nowhere
- else. A hint will get rid of any one or any number; they are so fiercely
- proud and modest; while many of the more lovable but blunter islanders
- crowd upon a stranger, and can be no more driven off than flies. A
- slight or an insult the Marquesan seems never to forget. I was one day
- talking by the wayside with my friend Hoka, when I perceived his eyes
- suddenly to flash and his stature to swell. A white horseman was coming
- down the mountain, and as he passed, and while he paused to exchange
- salutations with myself, Hoka was still staring and ruffling like a
- gamecock. It was a Corsican who had years before called him _cochon
- sauvage_--_coçon chauvage_, as Hoka mispronounced it. With people so
- nice and so touchy, it was scarce to be supposed that our company of
- greenhorns should not blunder into offences. Hoka, on one of his visits,
- fell suddenly in a brooding silence, and presently after left the ship
- with cold formality. When he took me back into favour, he adroitly and
- pointedly explained the nature of my offence: I had asked him to sell
- cocoa-nuts; and in Hoka's view articles of food were things that a
- gentleman should give, not sell; or at least that he should not sell to
- any friend. On another occasion I gave my boat's crew a luncheon of
- chocolate and biscuits. I had sinned, I could never learn how, against
- some point of observance; and though I was drily thanked, my offerings
- were left upon the beach. But our worst mistake was a slight we put on
- Toma, Hoka's adoptive father, and in his own eyes the rightful chief of
- Anaho. In the first place, we did not call upon him, as perhaps we
- should, in his fine new European house, the only one in the hamlet. In
- the second, when we came ashore upon a visit to his rival, Taipi-kikino,
- it was Toma whom we saw standing at the head of the beach, a
- magnificent figure of a man, magnificently tattooed; and it was of Toma
- that we asked our question: "Where is the chief?" "What chief?" cried
- Toma, and turned his back on the blasphemers. Nor did he forgive us.
- Hoka came and went with us daily; but, alone I believe of all the
- countryside, neither Toma nor his wife set foot on board the _Casco_.
- The temptation resisted it is hard for a European to compute. The flying
- city of Laputa moored for a fortnight in St. James's Park affords but a
- pale figure of the _Casco_ anchored before Anaho; for the Londoner has
- still his change of pleasures, but the Marquesan passes to his grave
- through an unbroken uniformity of days.
- On the afternoon before it was intended we should sail, a valedictory
- party came on board: nine of our particular friends equipped with gifts
- and dressed as for a festival. Hoka, the chief dancer and singer, the
- greatest dandy of Anaho, and one of the handsomest young fellows in the
- world--sullen, showy, dramatic, light as a feather and strong as an
- ox--it would have been hard, on that occasion, to recognise, as he sat
- there stooped and silent, his face heavy and grey. It was strange to see
- the lad so much affected; stranger still to recognise in his last gift
- one of the curios we had refused on the first day, and to know our
- friend, so gaily dressed, so plainly moved at our departure, for one of
- the half-naked crew that had besieged and insulted us on our arrival:
- strangest of all, perhaps, to find, in that carved handle of a fan, the
- last of those curiosities of the first day which had now all been given
- to us by their possessors--their chief merchandise, for which they had
- sought to ransom us as long as we were strangers, which they pressed on
- us for nothing as soon as we were friends. The last visit was not long
- protracted. One after another they shook hands and got down into their
- canoe; when Hoka turned his back immediately upon the ship, so that we
- saw his face no more. Taipi, on the other hand, remained standing and
- facing us with gracious valedictory gestures; and when Captain Otis
- dipped the ensign, the whole party saluted with their hats. This was the
- farewell; the episode of our visit to Anaho was held concluded; and
- though the _Casco_ remained nearly forty hours at her moorings, not one
- returned on board, and I am inclined to think they avoided appearing on
- the beach. This reserve and dignity is the finest trait of the
- Marquesan.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [1] Where that word is used as a salutation I give that form.
- CHAPTER III
- THE MAROON
- Of the beauties of Anaho books might be written. I remember waking about
- three, to find the air temperate and scented. The long swell brimmed
- into the bay, and seemed to fill it full and then subside. Gently,
- deeply, and silently the _Casco_ rolled; only at times a block piped
- like a bird. Oceanward, the heaven was bright with stars and the sea
- with their reflections. If I looked to that side, I might have sung with
- the Hawaiian poet:
- _Ua maomao ka lani, ua kahaea luna_,
- _Ua pipi ka maka o ka hoku_.
- (The heavens were fair, they stretched above,
- Many were the eyes of the stars.)
- And then I turned shoreward, and high squalls were overhead; the
- mountains loomed up black; and I could have fancied I had slipped ten
- thousand miles away and was anchored in a Highland loch; that when the
- day came, it would show pine, and heather, and green fern, and roofs of
- turf sending up the smoke of peats; and the alien speech that should
- next greet my ears must be Gaelic, not Kanaka.
- And day, when it came, brought other sights and thoughts. I have watched
- the morning break in many quarters of the world--it has been certainly
- one of the chief joys of my existence; and the dawn that I saw with most
- emotion shone upon the bay of Anaho. The mountains abruptly overhang the
- port with every variety of surface and of inclination, lawn, and cliff,
- and forest. Not one of these but wore its proper tint of saffron, of
- sulphur, of the clove, and of the rose. The lustre was like that of
- satin; on the lighter hues there seemed to float an efflorescence; a
- solemn bloom appeared on the more dark. The light itself was the
- ordinary light of morning, colourless and clean; and on this ground of
- jewels, pencilled out the least detail of drawing. Meanwhile, around the
- hamlet, under the palms, where the blue shadow lingered, the red coals
- of cocoa husk and the light trails of smoke betrayed the awakening
- business of the day; along the beach men and women, lads and lasses,
- were returning from the bath in bright raiment, red and blue and green,
- such as we delighted to see in the coloured little pictures of our
- childhood; and presently the sun had cleared the eastern hill, and the
- glow of the day was over all.
- The glow continued and increased, the business, from the main part,
- ceased before it had begun. Twice in the day there was a certain stir of
- shepherding along the seaward hills. At times a canoe went out to fish.
- At times a woman or two languidly filled a basket in the cotton patch.
- At times a pipe would sound out of the shadow of a house, ringing the
- changes on its three notes, with an effect like _Que le jour me dure_
- repeated endlessly. Or at times, across a corner of the bay, two natives
- might communicate in the Marquesan manner with conventional whistlings.
- All else was sleep and silence. The surf broke and shone around the
- shores; a species of black crane fished in the broken water; the black
- pigs were continually galloping by on some affair; but the people might
- never have awaked, or they might all be dead.
- My favourite haunt was opposite the hamlet, where was a landing in a
- cove under a lianaed cliff. The beach was lined with palms and a tree
- called the purao, something between the fig and mulberry in growth, and
- bearing a flower like a great yellow poppy with a maroon heart. In
- places rocks encroached upon the sand; the beach would be all
- submerged; and the surf would bubble warmly as high as to my knees, and
- play with cocoa-nut husks as our more homely ocean plays with wreck and
- wrack and bottles. As the reflux drew down, marvels of colour and design
- streamed between my feet; which I would grasp at, miss, or seize: now to
- find them what they promised, shells to grace a cabinet or be set in
- gold upon a lady's finger; now to catch only _maya_ of coloured sand,
- pounded fragments and pebbles, that, as soon as they were dry, became as
- dull and homely as the flints upon a garden path. I have toiled at this
- childish pleasure for hours in the strong sun, conscious of my incurable
- ignorance; but too keenly pleased to be ashamed. Meanwhile, the
- blackbird (or his tropical understudy) would be fluting in the thickets
- overhead.
- A little further, in the turn of the bay, a streamlet trickled in the
- bottom of a den, thence spilling down a stair of rock into the sea. The
- draught of air drew down under the foliage in the very bottom of the
- den, which was a perfect arbour for coolness. In front it stood open on
- the blue bay and the _Casco_ lying there under her awning and her
- cheerful colours. Overhead was a thatch of puraos, and over these again
- palms brandished their bright fans, as I have seen a conjurer make
- himself a halo out of naked swords. For in this spot, over a neck of low
- land at the foot of the mountains, the trade-wind streams into Anaho Bay
- in a flood of almost constant volume and velocity, and of a heavenly
- coolness.
- It chanced one day that I was ashore in the cove with Mrs. Stevenson and
- the ship's cook. Except for the _Casco_ lying outside, and a crane or
- two, and the ever-busy wind and sea, the face of the world was of a
- prehistoric emptiness; life appeared to stand stock-still, and the sense
- of isolation was profound and refreshing. On a sudden, the trade wind,
- coming in a gust over the isthmus, struck and scattered the fans of the
- palms above the den; and, behold! in two of the tops there sat a native,
- motionless as an idol and watching us, you would have said, without a
- wink. The next moment the tree closed, and the glimpse was gone. This
- discovery of human presences latent overhead in a place where we had
- supposed ourselves alone, the immobility of our tree-top spies, and the
- thought that perhaps at all hours we were similarly supervised, struck
- us with a chill. Talk languished on the beach. As for the cook (whose
- conscience was not clear), he never afterwards set foot on shore, and
- twice, when the _Casco_ appeared to be driving on the rocks, it was
- amusing to observe that man's alacrity; death, he was persuaded,
- awaiting him upon the beach. It was more than a year later, in the
- Gilberts, that the explanation dawned upon myself. The natives were
- drawing palm-tree wine, a thing forbidden by law; and when the wind thus
- suddenly revealed them, they were doubtless more troubled than
- ourselves.
- At the top of the den there dwelt an old, melancholy, grizzled man of
- the name of Tari (Charlie) Coffin. He was a native of Oahu, in the
- Sandwich Islands; and had gone to sea in his youth in the American
- whalers; a circumstance to which he owed his name, his English, his
- down-east twang, and the misfortune of his innocent life. For one
- captain, sailing out of New Bedford, carried him to Nuka-hiva and
- marooned him there among the cannibals. The motive for this act was
- inconceivably small; poor Tari's wages, which were thus economised,
- would scarce have shook the credit of the New Bedford owners. And the
- act itself was simply murder. Tari's life must have hung in the
- beginning by a hair. In the grief and terror of that time, it is not
- unlikely he went mad, an infirmity to which he was still liable; or
- perhaps a child may have taken a fancy to him and ordained him to be
- spared. He escaped at least alive, married in the island, and when I
- knew him was a widower with a married son and a granddaughter. But the
- thought of Oahu haunted him; its praise was for ever on his lips; he
- beheld it, looking back, as a place of ceaseless feasting, song, and
- dance; and in his dreams I dare say he revisits it with joy. I wonder
- what he would think if he could be carried there indeed, and see the
- modern town of Honolulu brisk with traffic, and the palace with its
- guards, and the great hotel, and Mr. Berger's band with their uniforms
- and outlandish instruments; or what he would think to see the brown
- faces grown so few and the white so many; and his father's land sold for
- planting sugar, and his father's house quite perished, or perhaps the
- last of them struck leprous and immured between the surf and the cliffs
- on Molokai? So simply, even in South Sea Islands, and so sadly, the
- changes come.
- Tari was poor, and poorly lodged. His house was a wooden frame, run up
- by Europeans; it was indeed his official residence, for Tari was the
- shepherd of the promontory sheep. I can give a perfect inventory of its
- contents: three kegs, a tin biscuit-box, an iron sauce-pan, several
- cocoa-shell cups, a lantern, and three bottles, probably containing oil;
- while the clothes of the family and a few mats were thrown across the
- open rafters. Upon my first meeting with this exile he had conceived for
- me one of the baseless island friendships, had given me nuts to drink,
- and carried me up the den "to see my house"--the only entertainment that
- he had to offer. He liked the "Amelican," he said, and the "Inglisman,"
- but the "Flessman" was his abhorrence; and he was careful to explain
- that if he had thought us "Fless," we should have had none of his nuts,
- and never a sight of his house. His distaste for the French I can partly
- understand, but not at all his toleration of the Anglo-Saxon. The next
- day he brought me a pig, and some days later one of our party going
- ashore found him in act to bring a second. We were still strange to the
- islands; we were pained by the poor man's generosity, which he could ill
- afford, and, by a natural enough but quite unpardonable blunder, we
- refused the pig. Had Tari been a Marquesan we should have seen him no
- more; being what he was, the most mild, long-suffering, melancholy man,
- he took a revenge a hundred times more painful. Scarce had the canoe
- with the nine villagers put off from their farewell before the _Casco_
- was boarded from the other side. It was Tari; coming thus late because
- he had no canoe of his own, and had found it hard to borrow one; coming
- thus solitary (as indeed we always saw him), because he was a stranger
- in the land, and the dreariest of company. The rest of my family basely
- fled from the encounter. I must receive our injured friend alone; and
- the interview must have lasted hard upon an hour, for he was loath to
- tear himself away. "You go 'way. I see you no more--no, sir!" he
- lamented; and then, looking about him with rueful admiration, "This
- goodee ship--no, sir!--goodee ship!" he would exclaim; the "no, sir,"
- thrown out sharply through the nose upon a rising inflection, an echo
- from New Bedford and the fallacious whaler. From these expressions of
- grief and praise, he would return continually to the case of the
- rejected pig. "I like give plesent all 'e same you," he complained;
- "only got pig: you no take him!" He was a poor man; he had no choice of
- gifts; he had only a pig, he repeated; and I had refused it. I have
- rarely been more wretched than to see him sitting there, so old, so
- grey, so poor, so hardly fortuned, of so rueful a countenance, and to
- appreciate, with growing keenness, the affront which I had so innocently
- dealt him; but it was one of those cases in which speech is vain.
- Tari's son was smiling and inert; his daughter-in-law, a girl of
- sixteen, pretty, gentle, and grave, more intelligent than most
- Anaho-women, and with a fair share of French; his grandchild, a mite of
- a creature at the breast. I went up the den one day when Tari was from
- home, and found the son making a cotton sack, and madame suckling
- mademoiselle. When I had sat down with them on the floor, the girl began
- to question me about England; which I tried to describe, piling the pan
- and the cocoa shells one upon another to represent the houses and
- explaining, as best I was able, and by word and gesture, the
- over-population, the hunger, and the perpetual toil. "_Pas de cocotiers?
- pas de popoi?_" she asked. I told her it was too cold, and went through
- an elaborate performance, shutting out draughts, and crouching over an
- imaginary fire, to make sure she understood. But she understood right
- well; remarked it must be bad for the health, and sat a while gravely
- reflecting on that picture of unwonted sorrows. I am sure it roused her
- pity, for it struck in her another thought always uppermost in the
- Marquesan bosom; and she began with a smiling sadness, and looking on me
- out of melancholy eyes, to lament the decease of her own people. "_Ici
- pas de Kanaques_," said she; and taking the baby from her breast, she
- held it out to me with both her hands. "_Tenez_--a little baby like
- this; then dead. All the Kanaques die. Then no more." The smile, and
- this instancing by the girl-mother of her own tiny flesh and blood
- affected me strangely; they spoke of so tranquil a despair. Meanwhile
- the husband smilingly made his sack; and the unconscious babe struggled
- to reach a pot of raspberry jam, friendship's offering, which I had just
- brought up the den; and in a perspective of centuries I saw their case
- as ours, death coming in like a tide, and the day already numbered when
- there should be no more Beretani, and no more of any race whatever, and
- (what oddly touched me) no more literary works and no more readers.
- CHAPTER IV
- DEATH
- The thought of death, I have said, is uppermost in the mind of the
- Marquesan. It would be strange if it were otherwise. The race is perhaps
- the handsomest extant. Six feet is about the middle height of males;
- they are strongly muscled, free from fat, swift in action, graceful in
- repose; and the women, though fatter and duller, are still comely
- animals. To judge by the eye, there is no race more viable; and yet
- death reaps them with both hands. When Bishop Dordillon first came to
- Tai-o-hae, he reckoned the inhabitants at many thousands; he was but
- newly dead, and in the same bay Stanislao Moanatini counted on his
- fingers eight residual natives. Or take the valley of Hapaa, known to
- readers of Herman Melville under the grotesque mis-spelling of Hapar.
- There are but two writers who have touched the South Seas with any
- genius, both Americans: Melville and Charles Warren Stoddard; and at the
- christening of the first and greatest, some influential fairy must have
- been neglected: "He shall be able to see," "He shall be able to tell,"
- "He shall be able to charm," said the friendly godmothers; "But he shall
- not be able to hear," exclaimed the last. The tribe of Hapaa is said to
- have numbered some four hundred when the small-pox came and reduced them
- by one fourth. Six months later a woman developed tubercular
- consumption; the disease spread like a fire about the valley, and in
- less than a year two survivors, a man and a woman, fled from that
- new-created solitude. A similar Adam and Eve may some day wither among
- new races, the tragic residue of Britain. When I first heard this story
- the date staggered me; but I am now inclined to think it possible. Early
- in the year of my visit, for example, or late the year before, a first
- case of phthisis appeared in a household of seventeen persons, and by
- the month of August, when the tale was told me, one soul survived, and
- that was a boy who had been absent at his schooling. And depopulation
- works both ways, the doors of death being set wide open, and the door of
- birth almost closed. Thus, in the half-year ending July 1888 there were
- twelve deaths and but one birth in the district of the Hatiheu. Seven or
- eight more deaths were to be looked for in the ordinary course; and M.
- Aussel, the observant gendarme, knew of but one likely birth. At this
- rate it is no matter of surprise if the population in that part should
- have declined in forty years from six thousand to less than four
- hundred; which are, once more on the authority of M. Aussel, the
- estimated figures. And the rate of decline must have even accelerated
- towards the end.
- A good way to appreciate the depopulation is to go by land from Anaho to
- Hatiheu on the adjacent bay. The road is good travelling, but cruelly
- steep. We seemed scarce to have passed the deserted house which stands
- highest in Anaho before we were looking dizzily down upon its roof; the
- _Casco_ well out in the bay, and rolling for a wager, shrank visibly;
- and presently through the gap of Tari's isthmus, Ua-huna was seen to
- hang cloudlike on the horizon. Over the summit, where the wind blew
- really chill, and whistled in the reed-like grass, and tossed the grassy
- fell of the pandanus, we stepped suddenly, as through a door, into the
- next vale and bay of Hatiheu. A bowl of mountains encloses it upon three
- sides. On the fourth this rampart has been bombarded into ruins, runs
- down to seaward in imminent and shattered crags, and presents the one
- practicable breach of the blue bay. The interior of this vessel is
- crowded with lovely and valuable trees,--orange, breadfruit,
- mummy-apple, coco, the island chestnut, and for weeds, the pine and the
- banana. Four perennial streams water and keep it green; and along the
- dell, first of one, then of another, of these, the road, for a
- considerable distance, descends into this fortunate valley. The song of
- the waters and the familiar disarray of boulders gave us a strong sense
- of home, which the exotic foliage, the daft-like growth of the pandanus,
- the buttressed trunk of the banyan, the black pigs galloping in the
- bush, and the architecture of the native houses dissipated ere it could
- be enjoyed.
- The houses on the Hatiheu side begin high up; higher yet, the more
- melancholy spectacle of empty paepaes. When a native habitation is
- deserted, the superstructure--pandanus thatch, wattle, unstable tropical
- timber--speedily rots, and is speedily scattered by the wind. Only the
- stones of the terrace endure; nor can any ruin, cairn, or standing
- stone, or vitrified fort present a more stern appearance of antiquity.
- We must have passed from six to eight of these now houseless platforms.
- On the main road of the island, where it crosses the valley of Taipi,
- Mr. Osbourne tells me they are to be reckoned by the dozen; and as the
- roads have been made long posterior to their erection, perhaps to their
- desertion, and must simply be regarded as lines drawn at random through
- the bush, the forest on either hand must be equally filled with these
- survivals: the grave-stones of whole families. Such ruins are tapu[2] in
- the strictest sense; no native must approach them; they have become
- outposts of the kingdom of the grave. It might appear a natural and
- pious custom in the hundreds who are left, the rearguard of perished
- thousands, that their feet should leave untrod these hearthstones of
- their fathers. I believe, in fact, the custom rests on different and
- more grim conceptions. But the house, the grave, and even the body of
- the dead, have been always particularly honoured by Marquesans. Until
- recently the corpse was sometimes kept in the family and daily oiled
- and sunned, until, by gradual and revolting stages, it dried into a kind
- of mummy. Offerings are still laid upon the grave. In Traitor's Bay, Mr.
- Osbourne saw a man buy a looking-glass to lay upon his son's. And the
- sentiment against the desecration of tombs, thoughtlessly ruffled in the
- laying down of the new roads, is a chief ingredient in the native hatred
- for the French.
- The Marquesan beholds with dismay the approaching extinction of his
- race. The thought of death sits down with him to meat, and rises with
- him from his bed; he lives and breathes under a shadow of mortality
- awful to support; and he is so inured to the apprehension that he greets
- the reality with relief. He does not even seek to support a
- disappointment; at an affront, at a breach of one of his fleeting and
- communistic love-affairs, he seeks an instant refuge in the grave.
- Hanging is now the fashion. I heard of three who had hanged themselves
- in the west end of Hiva-oa during the first half of 1888; but though
- this be a common form of suicide in other parts of the South Seas, I
- cannot think it will continue popular in the Marquesas. Far more
- suitable to Marquesan sentiment is the old form of poisoning with the
- fruit of the eva, which offers to the native suicide a cruel but
- deliberate death, and gives time for those decencies of the last hour,
- to which he attaches such remarkable importance. The coffin can thus be
- at hand, the pigs killed, the cry of the mourners sounding already
- through the house; and then it is, and not before, that the Marquesan is
- conscious of achievement, his life all rounded in, his robes (like
- Cæsar's) adjusted for the final act. Praise not any man till he is dead,
- said the ancients; envy not any man till you hear the mourners, might be
- the Marquesan parody. The coffin, though of late introduction, strangely
- engages their attention. It is to the mature Marquesan what a watch is
- to the European schoolboy. For ten years Queen Vaekehu had dunned the
- fathers; at last, but the other day, they let her have her will, gave
- her her coffin, and the woman's soul is at rest. I was told a droll
- instance of the force of this preoccupation. The Polynesians are subject
- to a disease seemingly rather of the will than of the body. I was told
- the Tahitians have a word for it, _erimatua_, but cannot find it in my
- dictionary. A gendarme, M. Nouveau, has seen men beginning to succumb to
- this insubstantial malady, has routed them from their houses, turned
- them on to do their trick upon the roads, and in two days has seen them
- cured. But this other remedy is more original: a Marquesan, dying of
- this discouragement--perhaps I should rather say this acquiescence--has
- been known, at the fulfilment of his crowning wish, on the mere sight of
- that desired hermitage, his coffin--to revive, recover, shake off the
- hand of death, and be restored for years to his occupations--carving
- tikis (idols), let us say, or braiding old men's beards. From all this
- it may be conceived how easily they meet death when it approaches
- naturally. I heard one example, grim and picturesque. In the time of the
- small-pox in Hapaa, an old man was seized with the disease; he had no
- thought of recovery; had his grave dug by a wayside, and lived in it for
- near a fortnight, eating, drinking, and smoking with the passers-by,
- talking mostly of his end, and equally unconcerned for himself and
- careless of the friends whom he infected.
- This proneness to suicide, and loose seat in life, is not peculiar to
- the Marquesan. What is peculiar is the widespread depression and
- acceptance of the national end. Pleasures are neglected, the dance
- languishes, the songs are forgotten. It is true that some, and perhaps
- too many, of them are proscribed; but many remain, if there were spirit
- to support or to revive them. At the last feast of the Bastille,
- Stanislao Moanatini shed tears when he beheld the inanimate performance
- of the dancers. When the people sang for us in Anaho, they must
- apologise for the smallness of their repertory. They were only young
- folk present, they said, and it was only the old that knew the songs.
- The whole body of Marquesan poetry and music was being suffered to die
- out with a single dispirited generation. The full import is apparent
- only to one acquainted with other Polynesian races; who knows how the
- Samoan coins a fresh song for every trifling incident, or who has heard
- (on Penrhyn, for instance) a band of little stripling maids from eight
- to twelve keep up their minstrelsy for hours upon a stretch, one song
- following another without pause. In like manner, the Marquesan, never
- industrious, begins now to cease altogether from production. The exports
- of the group decline out of all proportion even with the death-rate of
- the islanders. "The coral waxes, the palm grows, and man departs," says
- the Marquesan; and he folds his hands. And surely this is nature. Fond
- as it may appear, we labour and refrain, not for the reward of any
- single life, but with a timid eye upon the lives and memories of our
- successors; and where no one is to succeed, of his own family, or his
- own tongue, I doubt whether Rothschilds would make money or Cato
- practise virtue. It is natural, also, that a temporary stimulus should
- sometimes rouse the Marquesan from his lethargy. Over all the landward
- shore of Anaho cotton runs like a wild weed; man or woman, whoever comes
- to pick it, may earn a dollar in the day; yet when we arrived, the
- trader's store-house was entirely empty; and before we left it was
- nearly full. So long as the circus was there, so long as the _Casco_ was
- yet anchored in the bay, it behoved every one to make his visit; and to
- this end every woman must have a new dress, and every man a shirt and
- trousers. Never before, in Mr. Regler's experience, had they displayed
- so much activity.
- In their despondency there is an element of dread. The fear of ghosts
- and of the dark is very deeply written in the mind of the Polynesian;
- not least of the Marquesan. Poor Taipi, the chief of Anaho, was
- condemned to ride to Hatiheu on a moonless night. He borrowed a lantern,
- sat a long while nerving himself for the adventure, and when he at last
- departed, wrung the _Cascos_ by the hand as for a final separation.
- Certain presences, called Vehinehae, frequent and make terrible the
- nocturnal roadside; I was told by one they were like so much mist, and
- as the traveller walked into them dispersed and dissipated; another
- described them as being shaped like men and having eyes like cats; from
- none could I obtain the smallest clearness as to what they did, or
- wherefore they were dreaded. We may be sure at least they represent the
- dead; for the dead, in the minds of the islanders, are all-pervasive.
- "When a native says that he is a man," writes Dr. Codrington, "he means
- that he is a man and not a ghost; not that he is a man and not a beast.
- The intelligent agents of this world are to his mind the men who are
- alive, and the ghosts the men who are dead." Dr. Codrington speaks of
- Melanesia; from what I have learned his words are equally true of the
- Polynesian. And yet more. Among cannibal Polynesians a dreadful
- suspicion rests generally on the dead; and the Marquesans, the greatest
- cannibals of all, are scarce likely to be free from similar beliefs. I
- hazard the guess that the Vehinehae are the hungry spirits of the dead,
- continuing their life's business of the cannibal ambuscade, and lying
- everywhere unseen, and eager to devour the living. Another superstition
- I picked up through the troubled medium of Tari Coffin's English. The
- dead, he told me, came and danced by night around the paepae of their
- former family; the family were thereupon overcome by some emotion (but
- whether of pious sorrow or of fear I could not gather), and must "make a
- feast," of which fish, pig, and popoi were indispensable ingredients. So
- far this is clear enough. But here Tari went on to instance the new
- house of Toma and the house-warming feast which was just then in
- preparation as instances in point. Dare we indeed string them together,
- and add the case of the deserted ruin, as though the dead continually
- besieged the paepaes of the living; were kept at arm's-length, even from
- the first foundation, only by propitiatory feasts, and, so soon as the
- fire of life went out upon the hearth, swarmed back into possession of
- their ancient seat?
- I speak by guess of these Marquesan superstitions. On the cannibal ghost
- I shall return elsewhere with certainty. And it is enough, for the
- present purpose, to remark that the men of the Marquesas, from whatever
- reason, fear and shrink from the presence of ghosts. Conceive how this
- must tell upon the nerves in islands where the number of the dead
- already so far exceeds that of the living, and the dead multiply and the
- living dwindle at so swift a rate. Conceive how the remnant huddles
- about the embers of the fire of life; even as old Red Indians, deserted
- on the march and in the snow, the kindly tribe all gone, the last flame
- expiring, and the night around populous with wolves.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [2] In English usually written "taboo": "tapu" is the correct Tahitian
- form.--[ED.]
- CHAPTER V
- DEPOPULATION
- Over the whole extent of the South Seas, from one tropic to another, we
- find traces of a bygone state of over-population, when the resources of
- even a tropical soil were taxed, and even the improvident Polynesian
- trembled for the future. We may accept some of the ideas of Mr. Darwin's
- theory of coral islands, and suppose a rise of the sea, or the
- subsidence of some former continental area, to have driven into the tops
- of the mountains multitudes of refugees. Or we may suppose, more
- soberly, a people of sea-rovers, emigrants from a crowded country, to
- strike upon and settle island after island, and as time went on to
- multiply exceedingly in their new seats. In either case the end must be
- the same; soon or late it must grow apparent that the crew are too
- numerous, and that famine is at hand. The Polynesians met this emergent
- danger with various expedients of activity and prevention. A way was
- found to preserve breadfruit by packing it in artificial pits; pits
- forty feet in depth and of proportionate bore are still to be seen, I am
- told, in the Marquesas; and yet even these were insufficient for the
- teeming people, and the annals of the past are gloomy with famine and
- cannibalism. Among the Hawaiians--a hardier people, in a more exacting
- climate--agriculture was carried far; the land was irrigated with
- canals; and the fish-ponds of Molokai prove the number and diligence of
- the old inhabitants. Meanwhile, over all the island world, abortion and
- infanticide prevailed. On coral atolls, where the danger was most
- plainly obvious, these were enforced by law and sanctioned by
- punishment. On Vaitupu, in the Ellices, only two children were allowed
- to a couple; on Nukufetau, but one. On the latter the punishment was by
- fine; and it is related that the fine was sometimes paid, and the child
- spared.
- This is characteristic. For no people in the world are so fond or so
- long-suffering with children--children make the mirth and the adornment
- of their homes, serving them for playthings and for picture-galleries.
- "Happy is the man that has his quiver full of them." The stray bastard
- is contended for by rival families; and the natural and the adopted
- children play and grow up together undistinguished. The spoiling, and I
- may almost say the deification, of the child, is nowhere carried so far
- as in the eastern islands; and furthest, according to my opportunities
- of observation, in the Paumotu group, the so-called Low or Dangerous
- Archipelago. I have seen a Paumotuan native turn from me with
- embarrassment and disaffection because I suggested that a brat would be
- the better for a beating. It is a daily matter in some eastern islands
- to see a child strike or even stone its mother, and the mother, so far
- from punishing, scarce ventures to resist. In some, when his child was
- born, a chief was superseded and resigned his name; as though, like a
- drone, he had then fulfilled the occasion of his being. And in some the
- lightest words of children had the weight of oracles. Only the other
- day, in the Marquesas, if a child conceived a distaste to any stranger,
- I am assured the stranger would be slain. And I shall have to tell in
- another place an instance of the opposite: how a child in Manihiki
- having taken a fancy to myself, her adoptive parents at once accepted
- the situation and loaded me with gifts.
- With such sentiments the necessity for child destruction would not fail
- to clash, and I believe we find the trace of divided feeling in the
- Tahitian brotherhood of Oro. At a certain date a new god was added to
- the Society-Island Olympus, or an old one refurbished and made popular.
- Oro was his name, and he may be compared with the Bacchus of the
- ancients. His zealots sailed from bay to bay, and from island to
- island; they were everywhere received with feasting; wore fine clothes,
- sang, danced, acted; gave exhibitions of dexterity and strength; and
- were the artists, the acrobats, the bards, and the harlots of the group.
- Their life was public and epicurean; their initiation a mystery; and the
- highest in the land aspired to join the brotherhood. If a couple stood
- next in line to a high-chieftaincy, they were suffered, on grounds of
- policy, to spare one child; all other children, who had a father or a
- mother in the company of Oro, stood condemned from the moment of
- conception. A freemasonry, an agnostic sect, a company of artists, its
- members all under oath to spread unchastity, and all forbidden to leave
- offspring--I do not know how it may appear to others, but to me the
- design seems obvious. Famine menacing the islands, and the needful
- remedy repulsive, it was recommended to the native mind by these
- trappings of mystery, pleasure, and parade. This is the more probable,
- and the secret, serious purpose of the institution appears the more
- plainly, if it be true, that after a certain period of life, the
- obligation of the votary was changed; at first, bound to be profligate;
- afterwards, expected to be chaste.
- Here, then, we have one side of the case. Man-eating among kindly men,
- child-murder among child-lovers, industry in a race the most idle,
- invention in a race the least progressive, this grim, pagan
- salvation-army of the brotherhood of Oro, the report of early voyagers,
- the widespread vestiges of former habitation, and the universal
- tradition of the islands, all point to the same fact of former crowding
- and alarm. And to-day we are face to face with the reverse. To-day in
- the Marquesas, in the Eight Islands of Hawaii, in Mangareva, in Easter
- Island, we find the same race perishing like flies. Why this change? Or,
- grant that the coming of the whites, the change of habits, and the
- introduction of new maladies and vices, fully explain the depopulation,
- why is that depopulation not universal? The population of Tahiti, after
- a period of alarming decrease, has again become stationary. I hear of a
- similar result among some Maori tribes; in many of the Paumotus a slight
- increase is to be observed; and the Samoans are to-day as healthy and at
- least as fruitful as before the change. Grant that the Tahitians, the
- Maoris, and the Paumotuans have become inured to the new conditions; and
- what are we to make of the Samoans, who have never suffered?
- Those who are acquainted only with a single group are apt to be ready
- with solutions. Thus I have heard the mortality of the Maoris attributed
- to their change of residence--from fortified hill-tops to the low,
- marshy vicinity of their plantations. How plausible! And yet the
- Marquesans are dying out in the same houses where their fathers
- multiplied. Or take opium. The Marquesas and Hawaii are the two groups
- the most infected with this vice; the population of the one is the most
- civilised, that of the other by far the most barbarous, of Polynesians;
- and they are two of those that perish the most rapidly. Here is a strong
- case against opium. But let us take unchastity, and we shall find the
- Marquesas and Hawaii figuring again upon another count. Thus, Samoans
- are the most chaste of Polynesians, and they are to this day entirely
- fertile; Marquesans are the most debauched: we have seen how they are
- perishing; Hawaiians are notoriously lax, and they begin to be dotted
- among deserts. So here is a case stronger still against chastity; and
- here also we have a correction to apply. Whatever the virtues of the
- Tahitian, neither friend nor enemy dares call him chaste; and yet he
- seems to have outlived the time of danger. One last example: syphilis
- has been plausibly credited with much of the sterility. But the Samoans
- are, by all accounts, as fruitful as at first; by some accounts more so;
- and it is not seriously to be argued that the Samoans have escaped
- syphilis.
- These examples show how dangerous it is to reason from any particular
- cause, or even from many in a single group. I have in my eye an able
- and amiable pamphlet by the Rev. S.E. Bishop: "Why are the Hawaiians
- Dying Out?" Any one interested in the subject ought to read this tract,
- which contains real information; and yet Mr. Bishop's views would have
- been changed by an acquaintance with other groups. Samoa is, for the
- moment, the main and the most instructive exception to the rule. The
- people are the most chaste, and one of the most temperate of island
- peoples. They have never been tried and depressed with any grave
- pestilence. Their clothing has scarce been tampered with; at the simple
- and becoming tabard of the girls, Tartuffe, in many another island,
- would have cried out; for the cool, healthy, and modest lavalava or
- kilt, Tartuffe has managed in many another island to substitute stifling
- and inconvenient trousers. Lastly, and perhaps chiefly, so far from
- their amusements having been curtailed, I think they have been, upon the
- whole, extended. The Polynesian falls easily into despondency:
- bereavement, disappointment, the fear of novel visitations, the decay or
- proscription of ancient pleasures, easily incline him to be sad; and
- sadness detaches him from life. The melancholy of the Hawaiian and the
- emptiness of his new life are striking; and the remark is yet more
- apposite to the Marquesas. In Samoa, on the other hand, perpetual song
- and dance, perpetual games, journeys, and pleasures, make an animated
- and a smiling picture of the island life. And the Samoans are to-day the
- gayest and the best entertained inhabitants of our planet. The
- importance of this can scarcely be exaggerated. In a climate and upon a
- soil where a livelihood can be had for the stooping, entertainment is a
- prime necessity. It is otherwise with us, where life presents us with a
- daily problem, and there is a serious interest, and some of the heat of
- conflict, in the mere continuing to be. So, in certain atolls, where
- there is no great gaiety, but man must bestir himself with some vigour
- for his daily bread, public health and the population are maintained;
- but in the lotos islands, with the decay of pleasures, life itself
- decays. It is from this point of view that we may instance, among other
- causes of depression, the decay of war. We have been so long used in
- Europe to that dreary business of war on the great scale, trailing
- epidemics and leaving pestilential corpses in its train, that we have
- almost forgotten its original, the most healthful, if not the most
- humane, of all field sports--hedge-warfare. From this, as well as from
- the rest of his amusements and interests, the islander, upon a hundred
- islands, has been recently cut off. And to this, as well as to so many
- others, the Samoan still makes good a special title.
- Upon the whole, the problem seems to me to stand thus:--Where there have
- been fewest changes, important or unimportant, salutary or hurtful,
- there the race survives. Where there have been most, important or
- unimportant, salutary or hurtful, there it perishes. Each change,
- however small, augments the sum of new conditions to which the race has
- to become inured. There may seem, _a priori_, no comparison between the
- change from "sour toddy" to bad gin, and that from the island kilt to a
- pair of European trousers. Yet I am far from persuaded that the one is
- any more hurtful than the other; and the unaccustomed race will
- sometimes die of pin-pricks. We are here face to face with one of the
- difficulties of the missionary. In Polynesian islands he easily obtains
- pre-eminent authority; the king becomes his _maire du palais_; he can
- proscribe, he can command; and the temptation is ever towards too much.
- Thus (by all accounts) the Catholics in Mangareva, and thus (to my own
- knowledge) the Protestants in Hawaii, have rendered life in a more or
- less degree unliveable to their converts. And the mild, uncomplaining
- creatures (like children in a prison) yawn and await death. It is easy
- to blame the missionary. But it is his business to make changes. It is
- surely his business, for example, to prevent war; and yet I have
- instanced war itself as one of the elements of health. On the other
- hand, it were perhaps, easy for the missionary to proceed more gently,
- and to regard every change as an affair of weight. I take the average
- missionary; I am sure I do him no more than justice when I suppose that
- he would hesitate to bombard a village, even in order to convert an
- archipelago. Experience begins to show us (at least in Polynesian
- islands) that change of habit is bloodier than a bombardment.
- There is one point, ere I have done, where I may go to meet criticism. I
- have said nothing of faulty hygiene, bathing during fevers, mistaken
- treatment of children, native doctoring, or abortion--all causes
- frequently adduced. And I have said nothing of them because they are
- conditions common to both epochs, and even more efficient in the past
- than in the present. Was it not the same with unchastity, it may be
- asked? Was not the Polynesian always unchaste? Doubtless he was so
- always: doubtless he is more so since the coming of his remarkably
- chaste visitors from Europe. Take the Hawaiian account of Cook: I have
- no doubt it is entirely fair. Take Krusenstern's candid, almost
- innocent, description of a Russian man-of-war at the Marquesas; consider
- the disgraceful history of missions in Hawaii itself, where (in the war
- of lust) the American missionaries were once shelled by an English
- adventurer, and once raided and mishandled by the crew of an American
- warship; add the practice of whaling fleets to call at the Marquesas,
- and carry off a complement of women for the cruise; consider, besides,
- how the whites were at first regarded in the light of demi-gods, as
- appears plainly in the reception of Cook upon Hawaii; and again, in the
- story of the discovery of Tutuila, when the really decent women of Samoa
- prostituted themselves in public to the French; and bear in mind how it
- was the custom of the adventurers, and we may almost say the business of
- the missionaries, to deride and infract even the most salutary tapus.
- Here we see every engine of dissolution directed at once against a
- virtue never and nowhere very strong or popular; and the result, even
- in the most degraded islands, has been further degradation. Mr. Lawes,
- the missionary of Savage Island, told me the standard of female chastity
- had declined there since the coming of the whites. In heathen time, if a
- girl gave birth to a bastard, her father or brother would dash the
- infant down the cliffs; and to-day the scandal would be small. Or take
- the Marquesas. Stanislao Moanatini told me that in his own recollection
- the young were strictly guarded; they were not suffered so much as to
- look upon one another in the street, but passed (so my informant put it)
- like dogs; and the other day the whole school-children of Nuka-hiva and
- Ua-pu escaped in a body to the woods, and lived there for a fortnight in
- promiscuous liberty. Readers of travels may perhaps exclaim at my
- authority, and declare themselves better informed. I should prefer the
- statement of an intelligent native like Stanislao (even if it stood
- alone, which it is far from doing) to the report of the most honest
- traveller. A ship of war comes to a haven, anchors, lands a party,
- receives and returns a visit, and the captain writes a chapter on the
- manners of the island. It is not considered what class is mostly seen.
- Yet we should not be pleased if a Lascar foremast hand were to judge
- England by the ladies who parade Ratcliffe Highway, and the gentlemen
- who share with them their hire. Stanislao's opinion of a decay of virtue
- even in these unvirtuous islands has been supported to me by others; his
- very example, the progress of dissolution amongst the young, is adduced
- by Mr. Bishop in Hawaii. And so far as Marquesans are concerned, we
- might have hazarded a guess of some decline in manners. I do not think
- that any race could ever have prospered or multiplied with such as now
- obtain; I am sure they would have been never at the pains to count
- paternal kinship. It is not possible to give details; suffice it that
- their manners appear to be imitated from the dreams of ignorant and
- vicious children, and their debauches persevered in until energy,
- reason, and almost life itself are in abeyance.
- CHAPTER VI
- CHIEFS AND TAPUS
- We used to admire exceedingly the bland and gallant manners of the chief
- called Taipi-Kikino. An elegant guest at table, skilled in the use of
- knife and fork, a brave figure when he shouldered a gun and started for
- the woods after wild chickens, always serviceable, always ingratiating
- and gay, I would sometimes wonder where he found his cheerfulness. He
- had enough to sober him, I thought, in his official budget. His
- expenses--for he was always seen attired in virgin white--must have by
- far exceeded his income of six dollars in the year, or say two shillings
- a month. And he was himself a man of no substance; his house the poorest
- in the village. It was currently supposed that his elder brother,
- Kauanui, must have helped him out. But how comes it that the elder
- brother should succeed to the family estate, and be a wealthy commoner,
- and the younger be a poor man, and yet rule as chief in Anaho? That the
- one should be wealthy and the other almost indigent is probably to be
- explained by some adoption; for comparatively few children are brought
- up in the house or succeed to the estates of their natural begetters.
- That the one should be chief instead of the other must be explained (in
- a very Irish fashion) on the ground that neither of them is a chief at
- all.
- Since the return and the wars of the French, many chiefs have been
- deposed, and many so-called chiefs appointed. We have seen, in the same
- house, one such upstart drinking in the company of two such extruded
- island Bourbons, men, whose word a few years ago was life and death,
- now sunk to be peasants like their neighbours. So when the French
- overthrew hereditary tyrants, dubbed the commons of the Marquesas
- freeborn citizens of the republic, and endowed them with a vote for a
- _conseiller-général_ at Tahiti, they probably conceived themselves upon
- the path to popularity; and so far from that, they were revolting public
- sentiment. The deposition of the chiefs was perhaps sometimes needful;
- the appointment of others may have been needful also; it was at least a
- delicate business. The Government of George II. exiled many Highland
- magnates. It never occurred to them to manufacture substitutes; and if
- the French have been more bold, we have yet to see with what success.
- Our chief at Anaho was always called, he always called himself,
- Taipi-Kikino; and yet that was not his name, but only the wand of his
- false position. As soon as he was appointed chief, his name--which
- signified, if I remember exactly, _Prince born among flowers_--fell in
- abeyance, and he was dubbed instead by the expressive byword,
- Taipi-Kikino--_Highwater man-of-no-account_--or, Englishing more boldly,
- _Beggar on horseback_--a witty and a wicked cut. A nickname in Polynesia
- destroys almost the memory of the original name. To-day, if we were
- Polynesians, Gladstone would be no more heard of. We should speak of and
- address our Nestor as the Grand Old Man, and it is so that himself would
- sign his correspondence. Not the prevalence, then, but the significancy
- of the nickname is to be noted here. The new authority began with small
- prestige. Taipi has now been some time in office; from all I saw he
- seemed a person very fit. He is not the least unpopular, and yet his
- power is nothing. He is a chief to the French, and goes to breakfast
- with the Resident; but for any practical end of chieftaincy a rag doll
- were equally efficient.
- We had been but three days in Anaho when we received the visit of the
- chief of Hatiheu, a man of weight and fame, late leader of a war upon
- the French, late prisoner in Tahiti, and the last eater of long-pig in
- Nuka-hiva. Not many years have elapsed since he was seen striding on the
- beach of Anaho, a dead man's arm across his shoulder. "So does Kooamua
- to his enemies!" he roared to the passers-by, and took a bite from the
- raw flesh. And now behold this gentleman, very wisely replaced in office
- by the French, paying us a morning visit in European clothes. He was the
- man of the most character we had yet seen: his manners genial and
- decisive, his person tall, his face rugged, astute, formidable, and with
- a certain similarity to Mr. Gladstone's only for the brownness of the
- skin, and the high-chief's tattooing, all one side and much of the other
- being of an even blue. Further acquaintance increased our opinion of his
- sense. He viewed the _Casco_ in a manner then quite new to us, examining
- her lines and the running of the gear; to a piece of knitting on which
- one of the party was engaged, he must have devoted ten minutes' patient
- study; nor did he desist before he had divined the principles; and he
- was interested even to excitement by a type-writer, which he learned to
- work. When he departed he carried away with him a list of his family,
- with his own name printed by his own hand at the bottom. I should add
- that he was plainly much of a humorist, and not a little of a humbug. He
- told us, for instance, that he was a person of exact sobriety; such
- being the obligation of his high estate: the commons might be sots, but
- the chief could not stoop so low. And not many days after he was to be
- observed in a state of smiling and lop-sided imbecility, the _Casco_
- ribbon upside down on his dishonoured hat.
- But his business that morning in Anaho is what concerns us here. The
- devil-fish, it seems, were growing scarce upon the reef; it was judged
- fit to interpose what we should call a close season; for that end, in
- Polynesia, a tapu (vulgarly spelt "taboo") has to be declared, and who
- was to declare it? Taipi might; he ought; it was a chief part of his
- duty; but would any one regard the inhibition of a Beggar on Horseback?
- He might plant palm branches: it did not in the least follow that the
- spot was sacred. He might recite the spell: it was shrewdly supposed the
- spirits would not hearken. And so the old, legitimate cannibal must ride
- over the mountains to do it for him; and the respectable official in
- white clothes could but look on and envy. At about the same time, though
- in a different manner, Kooamua established a forest law. It was observed
- the coco-palms were suffering, for the plucking of green nuts
- impoverishes and at last endangers the tree. Now Kooamua could tapu the
- reef, which was public property, but he could not tapu other people's
- palms; and the expedient adopted was interesting. He tapu'd his own
- trees, and his example was imitated over all Hatiueu and Anaho. I fear
- Taipi might have tapu'd all that he possessed and found none to follow
- him. So much for the esteem in which the dignity of an appointed chief
- is held by others; a single circumstance will show what he thinks of it
- himself. I never met one, but he took an early opportunity to explain
- his situation. True, he was only an appointed chief when I beheld him;
- but somewhere else, perhaps upon some other isle, he was a chieftain by
- descent: upon which ground, he asked me (so to say it) to excuse his
- mushroom honours.
- It will be observed with surprise that both these tapus are for
- thoroughly sensible ends. With surprise, I say, because the nature of
- that institution is much misunderstood in Europe. It is taken usually in
- the sense of a meaningless or wanton prohibition, such as that which
- to-day prevents women in some countries from smoking, or yesterday
- prevented any one in Scotland from taking a walk on Sunday. The error is
- no less natural than it is unjust. The Polynesians have not been trained
- in the bracing, practical thought of ancient Rome; with them the idea of
- law has not been disengaged from that of morals or propriety; so that
- tapu has to cover the whole field, and implies indifferently that an act
- is criminal, immoral, against sound public policy, unbecoming or (as we
- say) "not in good form." Many tapus were in consequence absurd enough,
- such as those which deleted words out of the language, and particularly
- those which related to women, Tapu encircled women upon all hands. Many
- things were forbidden to men; to women we may say that few were
- permitted. They must not sit on the paepae; they must not go up to it by
- the stair; they must not eat pork; they must not approach a boat; they
- must not cook at a fire which any male had kindled. The other day, after
- the roads were made, it was observed the women plunged along the margin
- through the bush, and when they came to a bridge waded through the
- water: roads and bridges were the work of men's hands, and tapu for the
- foot of women. Even a man's saddle, if the man be native, is a thing no
- self-respecting lady dares to use. Thus on the Anaho side of the island,
- only two white men, Mr. Regler and the gendarme, M. Aussel, possess
- saddles: and when a woman has a journey to make she must borrow from one
- or other. It will be noticed that these prohibitions tend, most of them,
- to an increased reserve between the sexes. Regard for female chastity is
- the usual excuse for these disabilities that men delight to lay upon
- their wives and mothers. Here the regard is absent; and behold the women
- still bound hand and foot with meaningless proprieties! The women
- themselves, who are survivors of the old regimen, admit that in those
- days life was not worth living. And yet even then there were exceptions.
- There were female chiefs and (I am assured) priestesses besides; nice
- customs curtseyed to great dames, and in the most sacred enclosure of a
- High Place, Father Siméon Delmar was shown a stone, and told it was the
- throne of some well-descended lady. How exactly parallel is this with
- European practice, when princesses were suffered to penetrate the
- strictest cloister, and women could rule over a land in which they were
- denied the control of their own children.
- But the tapu is more often the instrument of wise and needful
- restrictions. We have seen it as the organ of paternal government. It
- serves besides to enforce, in the rare case of some one wishing to
- enforce them, rights of private property. Thus a man, weary of the
- coming and going of Marquesan visitors, tapu's his door; and to this day
- you may see the palm-branch signal, even as our great-grandfathers saw
- the peeled wand before a Highland inn. Or take another case. Anaho is
- known as "the country without popoi." The word popoi serves in different
- islands to indicate the main food of the people; thus, in Hawaii, it
- implies a preparation of taro; in the Marquesas, of breadfruit. And a
- Marquesan does not readily conceive life possible without his favourite
- diet. A few years ago a drought killed the breadfruit trees and the
- bananas in the district of Anaho; and from this calamity, and the
- open-handed customs of the island, a singular state of things arose.
- Well-watered Hatiheu had escaped the drought; every householder of Anaho
- accordingly crossed the pass, chose some one in Hatiheu, "gave him his
- name"--an onerous gift, but one not to be rejected--and from this
- improvised relative proceeded to draw his supplies, for all the world as
- though he had paid for them. Hence a continued traffic on the road. Some
- stalwart fellow, in a loin-cloth, and glistening with sweat, may be seen
- at all hours of the day, a stick across his bare shoulders, tripping
- nervously under a double burthen of green fruits. And on the far side of
- the gap a dozen stone posts on the wayside in the shadow of a grove mark
- the breathing-place of the popoi-carriers. A little back from the
- breach, and not half a mile from Anaho, I was the more amazed to find a
- cluster of well-doing breadfruits heavy with their harvest. "Why do you
- not take these?" I asked. "Tapu," said Hoka; and I thought to myself
- (after the manner of dull travellers) what children and fools these
- people were to toil over the mountain and despoil innocent neighbours
- when the staff of life was thus growing at their door. I was the more in
- error. In the general destruction these surviving trees were enough only
- for the family of the proprietor, and by the simple expedient of
- declaring a tapu he enforced his right.
- The sanction of the tapu is superstitious; and the punishment of
- infraction either a wasting or a deadly sickness. A slow disease follows
- on the eating of tapu fish, and can only be cured with the bones of the
- same fish burned with the due mysteries. The cocoa-nut and breadfruit
- tapu works more swiftly. Suppose you have eaten tapu fruit at the
- evening meal, at night your sleep will be uneasy; in the morning,
- swelling and a dark discoloration will have attacked your neck, whence
- they spread upward to the face; and in two days, unless the cure be
- interjected, you must die. This cure is prepared from the rubbed leaves
- of the tree from which the patient stole; so that he cannot be saved
- without confessing to the Tahuku the person whom he wronged. In the
- experience of my informant, almost no tapu had been put in use, except
- the two described: he had thus no opportunity to learn the nature and
- operation of the others; and, as the art of making them was jealously
- guarded amongst the old men, he believed the mystery would soon die out.
- I should add that he was no Marquesan, but a Chinaman, a resident in the
- group from boyhood, and a reverent believer in the spells which he
- described. White men, amongst whom Ah Fu included himself, were exempt;
- but he had a tale of a Tahitian woman, who had come to the Marquesas,
- eaten tapu fish, and, although uninformed of her offence and danger, had
- been afflicted and cured exactly like a native.
- Doubtless the belief is strong; doubtless, with this weakly and fanciful
- race, it is in many cases strong enough to kill; it should be strong
- indeed in those who tapu their trees secretly, so that they may detect a
- depredator by his sickness. Or, perhaps, we should understand the idea
- of the hidden tapu otherwise, as a politic device to spread uneasiness
- and extort confessions: so that, when a man is ailing, he shall ransack
- his brain for any possible offence, and send at once for any proprietor
- whose rights he has invaded. "Had you hidden a tapu?" we may conceive
- him asking: and I cannot imagine the proprietor gainsaying it; and that
- is perhaps the strangest feature of the system--that it should be
- regarded from without with such a mental and implicit awe, and, when
- examined from within, should present so many apparent evidences of
- design.
- We read in Dr. Campbell's "Poenamo" of a New Zealand girl, who was
- foolishly told that she had eaten a tapu yam, and who instantly
- sickened, and died in the two days of simple terror. The period is the
- same as in the Marquesas; doubtless the symptoms were so too. How
- singular to consider that a superstition of such sway is possibly a
- manufactured article; and that, even if it were not originally invented,
- its details have plainly been arranged by the authorities of some
- Polynesian Scotland Yard. Fitly enough, the belief is to-day--and was
- probably always--far from universal. Hell at home is a strong deterrent
- with some; a passing thought with others; with others, again, a theme of
- public mockery, not always well assured; and so in the Marquesas with
- the tapu. Mr. Regler has seen the two extremes of scepticism and
- implicit fear. In the tapu grove he found one fellow stealing
- breadfruit, cheerful and impudent as a street arab; and it was only on a
- menace of exposure that he showed himself the least discountenanced. The
- other case was opposed in every point. Mr. Regler asked a native to
- accompany him upon a voyage; the man went gladly enough, but suddenly
- perceiving a dead tapu fish in the bottom of the boat, leaped back with
- a scream; nor could the promise of a dollar prevail upon him to advance.
- The Marquesan, it will be observed, adheres to the old idea of the local
- circumscription of beliefs and duties. Not only are the whites exempt
- from consequences; but their transgressions seem to be viewed without
- horror. It was Mr. Regler who had killed the fish; yet the devout native
- was not shocked at Mr. Regler--only refused to join him in his boat. A
- white is a white: the servant (so to speak) of other and more liberal
- gods; and not to be blamed if he profit by his liberty. The Jews were
- perhaps the first to interrupt this ancient comity of faiths; and the
- Jewish virus is still strong in Christianity. All the world must respect
- our tapus, or we gnash our teeth.
- CHAPTER VII
- HATIHEU
- The bays of Anaho and Hatiheu are divided at their roots by the
- knife-edge of a single hill--the pass so often mentioned; but this
- isthmus expands to the seaward in a considerable peninsula: very bare
- and grassy; haunted by sheep, and, at night and morning, by the piercing
- cries of the shepherds; wandered over by a few wild goats; and on its
- sea-front indented with long, clamorous caves, and faced with cliffs of
- the colour and ruinous outline of an old peat-stack. In one of these
- echoing and sunless gullies we saw, clustered like sea-birds on a
- splashing ledge, shrill as sea-birds in their salutation to the passing
- boat, a group of fisherwomen, stripped to their gaudy underclothes. (The
- clash of the surf and the thin female voices echo in my memory.) We had
- that day a native crew and steersman, Kauanui; it was our first
- experience of Polynesian seamanship, which consists in hugging every
- point of land. There is no thought in this of saving time, for they will
- pull a long way in to skirt a point that is embayed. It seems that, as
- they can never get their houses near enough the surf upon the one side,
- so they can never get their boats near enough upon the other. The
- practice in bold water is not so dangerous as it looks--the reflex from
- the rocks sending the boat off. Near beaches with a heavy run of sea, I
- continue to think it very hazardous, and find the composure of the
- natives annoying to behold. We took unmingled pleasure, on the way out,
- to see so near at hand the beach and the wonderful colours of the surf.
- On the way back, when the sea had risen and was running strong against
- us, the fineness of the steersman's aim grew more embarrassing. As we
- came abreast of the sea-front, where the surf broke highest, Kauanui
- embraced the occasion to light his pipe, which then made the circuit of
- the boat--each man taking a whiff or two, and, ere he passed it on,
- filling his lungs and cheeks with smoke. Their faces were all puffed out
- like apples as we came abreast of the cliff foot, and the bursting surge
- fell back into the boat in showers. At the next point "cocanetti" was
- the word, and the stroke borrowed my knife, and desisted from his
- labours to open nuts. These untimely indulgences may be compared to the
- tot of grog served out before a ship goes into action.
- My purpose in this visit led me first to the boys' school, for Hatiheu
- is the university of the north islands. The hum of the lesson came out
- to meet us. Close by the door, where the draught blew coolest, sat the
- lay brother; around him, in a packed half-circle, some sixty
- high-coloured faces set with staring eyes; and in the background of the
- barn-like room benches were to be seen, and blackboards with sums on
- them in chalk. The brother rose to greet us, sensibly humble. Thirty
- years he had been there, he said, and fingered his white locks as a
- bashful child pulls out his pinafore. "_Et point de résultats, monsieur,
- presque pas de résultats._" He pointed to the scholars: "You see, sir,
- all the youth of Nuka-hiva and Ua-pu. Between the ages of six and
- fifteen this is all that remains; and it is but a few years since we had
- a hundred and twenty from Nuka-hiva alone. _Oui, monsieur, cela se
- dépérit._" Prayers, and reading and writing, prayers again and
- arithmetic, and more prayers to conclude: such appeared to be the dreary
- nature of the course. For arithmetic all island people have a natural
- taste. In Hawaii they make good progress in mathematics. In one of the
- villages on Majuro, and generally in the Marshall group, the whole
- population sit about the trader when he is weighing copra, and each on
- his own slate takes down the figures and computes the total. The
- trader, finding them so apt, introduced fractions, for which they had
- been taught no rule. At first they were quite gravelled, but ultimately,
- by sheer hard thinking, reasoned out the result, and came one after
- another to assure the trader he was right. Not many people in Europe
- could have done the like. The course at Hatiheu is therefore less
- dispiriting to Polynesians than a stranger might have guessed; and yet
- how bald it is at best! I asked the brother if he did not tell them
- stories, and he stared at me; if he did not teach them history, and he
- said, "O yes, they had a little Scripture history--from the New
- Testament"; and repeated his lamentations over the lack of results. I
- had not the heart to put more questions; I could but say it must be very
- discouraging, and resist the impulse to add that it seemed also very
- natural. He looked up--"My days are far spent," he said; "heaven awaits
- me." May that heaven forgive me, but I was angry with the old man and
- his simple consolation. For think of his opportunity! The youth, from
- six to fifteen, are taken from their homes by Government, centralised at
- Hatiheu, where they are supported by a weekly tax of food; and, with the
- exception of one month in every year, surrendered wholly to the
- direction of the priests. Since the escapade already mentioned the
- holiday occurs at a different period for the girls and for the boys; so
- that a Marquesan brother and sister meet again, after their education is
- complete, a pair of strangers. It is a harsh law, and highly unpopular;
- but what a power it places in the hands of the instructors, and how
- languidly and dully is that power employed by the mission! Too much
- concern to make the natives pious, a design in which they all confess
- defeat, is, I suppose, the explanation of their miserable system. But
- they might see in the girls' school at Tai-o-hae, under the brisk,
- housewifely sisters, a different picture of efficiency, and a scene of
- neatness, airiness, and spirited and mirthful occupation that should
- shame them into cheerier methods. The sisters themselves lament their
- failure. They complain the annual holiday undoes the whole year's work;
- they complain particularly of the heartless indifference of the girls.
- Out of so many pretty and apparently affectionate pupils whom they have
- taught and reared, only two have ever returned to pay a visit of
- remembrance to their teachers. These, indeed, come regularly, but the
- rest, so soon as their school-days are over, disappear into the woods
- like captive insects. It is hard to imagine anything more discouraging;
- and yet I do not believe these ladies need despair. For a certain
- interval they keep the girls alive and innocently busy; and if it be at
- all possible to save the race, this would be the means. No such praise
- can be given to the boys' school at Hatiheu. The day is numbered already
- for them all; alike for the teacher and the scholars death is girt; he
- is afoot upon the march; and in the frequent interval they sit and yawn.
- But in life there seems a thread of purpose through the least
- significant; the drowsiest endeavour is not lost, and even the school at
- Hatiheu may be more useful than it seems.
- Hatiheu is a place of some pretensions. The end of the bay towards Anaho
- may be called the civil compound, for it boasts the house of Kooamua,
- and close on the beach, under a great tree, that of the gendarme, M.
- Armand Aussel, with his garden, his pictures, his books, and his
- excellent table, to which strangers are made welcome. No more singular
- contrast is possible than between the gendarmerie and the priesthood,
- who are besides in smouldering opposition and full of mutual complaints.
- A priest's kitchen in the eastern islands is a depressing spot to see;
- and many, or most of them, make no attempt to keep a garden, sparsely
- subsisting on their rations. But you will never dine with a gendarme
- without smacking your lips; and M. Aussel's home-made sausage and the
- salad from his garden are unforgotten delicacies. Pierre Loti may like
- to know that he is M. Aussel's favourite author, and that his books are
- read in the fit scenery of Hatiheu Bay.
- The other end is all religious. It is here that an overhanging and
- tip-tilted horn, a good sea-mark for Hatiheu, bursts naked from the
- verdure of the climbing forest, and breaks down shoreward in steep
- taluses and cliffs. From the edge of one of the highest, perhaps seven
- hundred or a thousand feet above the beach, a Virgin looks
- insignificantly down, like a poor lost doll, forgotten there by a giant
- child. This laborious symbol of the Catholics is always strange to
- Protestants; we conceive with wonder that men should think it worth
- while to toil so many days, and clamber so much about the face of
- precipices, for an end that makes us smile; and yet I believe it was the
- wise Bishop Dordillon who chose the place, and I know that those who had
- a hand in the enterprise look back with pride upon its vanquished
- dangers. The boys' school is a recent importation; it was at first in
- Tai-o-hae, beside the girls'; and it was only of late, after their joint
- escapade, that the width of the island was interposed between the sexes.
- But Hatiheu must have been a place of missionary importance from before.
- About midway of the beach no less than three churches stand grouped in a
- patch of bananas, intermingled with some pine-apples. Two are of wood:
- the original church, now in disuse; and a second that, for some
- mysterious reason, has never been used. The new church is of stone, with
- twin towers, walls flangeing into buttresses, and sculptured front. The
- design itself is good, simple, and shapely; but the character is all in
- the detail, where the architect has bloomed into the sculptor. It is
- impossible to tell in words of the angels (although they are more like
- winged archbishops) that stand guard upon the door, of the cherubs in
- the corners, of the scapegoat gargoyles, or the quaint and spirited
- relief, where St. Michael (the artist's patron) makes short work of a
- protesting Lucifer. We were never weary of viewing the imagery, so
- innocent, sometimes so funny, and yet in the best sense--in the sense of
- inventive gusto and expression--so artistic. I know not whether it was
- more strange to find a building of such merit in a corner of a
- barbarous isle, or to see a building so antique still bright with
- novelty. The architect, a French lay brother, still alive and well, and
- meditating fresh foundations, must have surely drawn his descent from a
- master-builder in the age of the cathedrals; and it was in looking on
- the church of Hatiheu that I seemed to perceive the secret charm of
- mediæval sculpture; that combination of the childish courage of the
- amateur, attempting all things, like the schoolboy on his slate, with
- the manly perseverance of the artist who does not know when he is
- conquered.
- I had always afterwards a strong wish to meet the architect, Brother
- Michel; and one day, when I was talking with the Resident in Tai-o-hae
- (the chief port of the island), there were shown in to us an old, worn,
- purblind, ascetic-looking priest, and a lay brother, a type of all that
- is most sound in France, with a broad, clever, honest, humorous
- countenance, an eye very large and bright, and a strong and healthy body
- inclining to obesity. But that his blouse was black and his face shaven
- clean, you might pick such a man to-day, toiling cheerfully in his own
- patch of vines, from half a dozen provinces of France; and yet he had
- always for me a haunting resemblance to an old kind friend of my
- boyhood, whom I name in case any of my readers should share with me that
- memory--Dr. Paul, of the West Kirk. Almost at the first word I was sure
- it was my architect, and in a moment we were deep in a discussion of
- Hatiheu church. Brother Michel spoke always of his labours with a
- twinkle of humour, underlying which it was possible to spy a serious
- pride, and the change from one to another was often very human and
- diverting. "_Et vos gargouilles moyen-âge_," cried I; "_comme elles sont
- originales!_" "_N'est-ce pas? Elles sont bien drôles!_" he said, smiling
- broadly; and the next moment, with a sudden gravity: "_Cependant il y en
- a une qui a une patte de cassé; il faut que je voie cela_." I asked if
- he had any model--a point we much discussed. "_Non_," said he simply;
- "_c'est une église idéale_." The relievo was his favourite performance,
- and very justly so. The angels at the door, he owned, he would like to
- destroy and replace. "_Ils n'ont pas de vie, ils manquent de vie. Vous
- devriez voir mon église à la Dominique; j'ai là une Vierge qui est
- vraiment gentille_." "Ah," I cried, "they told me you had said you would
- never build another church, and I wrote in my journal I could not
- believe it." "_Oui, j'aimerais bien en faire une autre,_" he confessed,
- and smiled at the confession. An artist will understand how much I was
- attracted by this conversation. There is no bond so near as a community
- in that unaffected interest and slightly shamefaced pride which mark the
- intelligent man enamoured of an art. He sees the limitations of his aim,
- the defects of his practice; he smiles to be so employed upon the shores
- of death, yet sees in his own devotion something worthy. Artists, if
- they had the same sense of humour with the Augurs, would smile like them
- on meeting, but the smile would not be scornful.
- I had occasion to see much of this excellent man. He sailed with us from
- Tai-o-hae to Hiva-oa, a dead beat of ninety miles against a heavy sea.
- It was what is called a good passage, and a feather in the _Casco's_
- cap; but among the most miserable forty hours that any one of us had
- ever passed. We were swung and tossed together all that time like shot
- in a stage thunder-box. The mate was thrown down and had his head cut
- open; the captain was sick on deck; the cook sick in the galley. Of all
- our party only two sat down to dinner. I was one. I own that I felt
- wretchedly; and I can only say of the other, who professed to feel quite
- well, that she fled at an early moment from the table. It was in these
- circumstances that we skirted the windward shore of that indescribable
- island of Ua-pu; viewing with dizzy eyes the coves, the capes, the
- breakers, the climbing forests, and the inaccessible stone needles that
- surmount the mountains. The place persists, in a dark corner of our
- memories, like a piece of the scenery of nightmares. The end of this
- distressful passage, where we were to land our passengers, was in a
- similar vein of roughness. The surf ran high on the beach at Taahauku;
- the boat broached-to and capsized; and all hands were submerged. Only
- the brother himself, who was well used to the experience, skipped
- ashore, by some miracle of agility, with scarce a sprinkling.
- Thenceforward, during our stay at Hiva-oa, he was our cicerone and
- patron; introducing us, taking us excursions, serving us in every way,
- and making himself daily more beloved.
- Michel Blanc had been a carpenter by trade; had made money and retired,
- supposing his active days quite over: and it was only when he found
- idleness dangerous that he placed his capital and acquirements at the
- service of the mission. He became their carpenter, mason, architect, and
- engineer; added sculpture to his accomplishments, and was famous for his
- skill in gardening. He wore an enviable air of having found a port from
- life's contentions and lying there strongly anchored; went about his
- business with a jolly simplicity; complained of no lack of
- results--perhaps shyly thinking his own statuary result enough; and was
- altogether a pattern of the missionary layman.
- CHAPTER VIII
- THE PORT OF ENTRY
- The port--the mart, the civil and religious capital of these rude
- Islands--is called Tai-o-hae, and lies strung along the beach of a
- precipitous green bay in Nuka-hiva. It was midwinter when we came
- thither, and the weather was sultry, boisterous, and inconstant. Now the
- wind blew squally from the land down gaps of splintered precipice; now,
- between the sentinel islets of the entry, it came in gusts from seaward.
- Heavy and dark clouds impended on the summits; the rain roared and
- ceased; the scuppers of the mountain gushed; and the next day we would
- see the sides of the amphitheatre bearded with white falls. Along the
- beach the town shows a thin file of houses, mostly white, and all
- ensconced in the foliage of an avenue of green puraos; a pier gives
- access from the sea across the belt of breakers; to the eastward there
- stands, on a projecting bushy hill, the old fort which is now the
- calaboose, or prison; eastward still, alone in a garden, the Residency
- flies the colours of France. Just off Calaboose Hill, the tiny
- Government schooner rides almost permanently at anchor, marks eight
- bells in the morning (there or thereabout) with the unfurling of her
- flag, and salutes the setting sun with the report of a musket.
- Here dwell together, and share the comforts of a club (which may be
- enumerated as a billiard-board, absinthe, a map of the world on
- Mercator's projection, and one of the most agreeable verandahs in the
- tropics), a handful of whites of varying nationality, mostly French
- officials, German and Scottish merchant clerks, and the agents of the
- opium monopoly. There are besides three tavern-keepers, the shrewd Scot
- who runs the cotton gin-mill, two white ladies, and a sprinkling of
- people "on the beach"--a South Sea expression for which there is no
- exact equivalent. It is a pleasant society, and a hospitable. But one
- man, who was often to be seen seated on the logs at the pier-head,
- merits a word for the singularity of his history and appearance. Long
- ago, it seems, he fell in love with a native lady, a High Chiefess in
- Ua-pu. She, on being approached, declared she could never marry a man
- who was untattooed; it looked so naked; whereupon, with some greatness
- of soul, our hero put himself in the hands of the Tahukus, and, with
- still greater, persevered until the process was complete. He had
- certainly to bear a great expense, for the Tahuku will not work without
- reward; and certainly exquisite pain. Kooamua, high chief as he was, and
- one of the old school, was only part tattooed; he could not, he told us
- with lively pantomime, endure the torture to an end. Our enamoured
- countryman was more resolved; he was tattooed from head to foot in the
- most approved methods of the art: and at last presented himself before
- his mistress a new man. The fickle fair one could never behold him from
- that day except with laughter. For my part, I could never see the man
- without a kind of admiration; of him it might be said, if ever of any,
- that he had loved not wisely, but too well.
- The Residency stands by itself, Calaboose Hill screening it from the
- fringe of town along the further bay. The house is commodious, with wide
- verandahs; all day it stands open, back and front, and the trade blows
- copiously over its bare floors. On a week-day the garden offers a scene
- of most untropical animation, half a dozen convicts toiling there
- cheerfully with spade and barrow, and touching hats and smiling to the
- visitor like old attached family servants. On Sunday these are gone, and
- nothing to be seen but dogs of all ranks and sizes peacefully slumbering
- in the shady grounds; for the dogs of Tai-o-hae are very
- courtly-minded, and make the seat of Government their promenade and
- place of siesta. In front and beyond, a strip of green down loses itself
- in a low wood of many species of acacia; and deep in the wood a ruinous
- wall encloses the cemetery of the Europeans. English and Scottish sleep
- there, and Scandinavians, and French _maîtres de manoeuvres_ and
- _maîtres ouvriers;_ mingling alien dust. Back in the woods perhaps, the
- blackbird, or (as they call him there) the island nightingale, will be
- singing home strains; and the ceaseless requiem of the surf hangs on the
- ear. I have never seen a resting-place more quiet; but it was a long
- thought how far these sleepers had all travelled, and from what diverse
- homes they had set forth, to lie here in the end together.
- On the summit of its promontory hill, the calaboose stands all day with
- doors and window shutters open to the trade. On my first visit a dog was
- the only guardian visible. He, indeed, rose with an attitude so menacing
- that I was glad to lay hands on an old barrel-hoop; and I think the
- weapon must have been familiar, for the champion instantly retreated,
- and as I wandered round the court and through the building, I could see
- him, with a couple of companions, humbly dodging me about the corners.
- The prisoners' dormitory was a spacious, airy room, devoid of any
- furniture; its whitewashed walls covered with inscriptions in Marquesan
- and rude drawings: one of the pier, not badly done; one of a murder;
- several of French soldiers in uniform. There was one legend in French:
- "_Je n'est_" (sic) "_pas le sou_." From this noontide quietude it must
- not be supposed the prison was untenanted; the calaboose at Tai-o-hae
- does a good business. But some of its occupants were gardening at the
- Residency, and the rest were probably at work upon the streets, as free
- as our scavengers at home, although not so industrious. On the approach
- of evening they would be called in like children from play; and the
- harbour-master (who is also the gaoler) would go through the form of
- locking them up until six the next morning. Should a prisoner have any
- call in town, whether of pleasure or affairs, he has but to unhook the
- window-shutter; and if he is back again, and the shutter decently
- replaced, by the hour of call on the morrow, he may have met the
- harbour-master in the avenue, and there will be no complaint, far less
- any punishment. But this is not all. The charming French Resident, M.
- Delaruelle, carried me one day to the calaboose on an official visit. In
- the green court, a very ragged gentleman, his legs deformed with the
- island elephantiasis, saluted us smiling. "One of our political
- prisoners--an insurgent from Raiatea," said the Resident; and then to
- the gaoler: "I thought I had ordered him a new pair of trousers."
- Meanwhile no other convict was to be seen--"_Eh bien,_" said the
- Resident, "_où sont vos prisonniers?_" "_Monsieur le Résident,_" replied
- the gaoler, saluting with soldierly formality, "_comme c'est jour de
- fête, je les ai laissé aller à la chasse._" They were all upon the
- mountains hunting goats! Presently we came to the quarters of the women,
- likewise deserted--"_Où sont vos bonnes femmes?_" asked the Resident;
- and the gaoler cheerfully responded: "_Je crois, Monsieur le Résident,
- qu'elles sont allées quelquepart faire une visite._" It had been the
- design of M. Delaruelle, who was much in love with the whimsicalities of
- his small realm, to elicit something comical; but not even he expected
- anything so perfect as the last. To complete the picture of convict life
- in Tai-o-hae, it remains to be added that these criminals draw a salary
- as regularly as the President of the Republic. Ten sous a day is their
- hire. Thus they have money, food, shelter, clothing, and, I was about to
- write, their liberty. The French are certainly a good-natured people,
- and make easy masters. They are besides inclined to view the Marquesans
- with an eye of humorous indulgence. "They are dying, poor devils!" said
- M. Delaruelle: "the main thing is to let them die in peace." And it was
- not only well said, but I believe expressed the general thought. Yet
- there is another element to be considered; for these convicts are not
- merely useful, they are almost essential to the French existence. With a
- people incurably idle, dispirited by what can only be called endemic
- pestilence, and inflamed with ill-feeling against their new masters,
- crime and convict labour are a godsend to the Government.
- Theft is practically the sole crime. Originally petty pilferers, the men
- of Tai-o-hae now begin to force locks and attack strong-boxes. Hundreds
- of dollars have been taken at a time; though, with that redeeming
- moderation so common in Polynesian theft, the Marquesan burglar will
- always take a part and leave a part, sharing (so to speak) with the
- proprietor. If it be Chilian coin--the island currency--he will escape;
- if the sum is in gold, French silver, or bank-notes, the police wait
- until the money begins to come in circulation, and then easily pick out
- their man. And now comes the shameful part. In plain English, the
- prisoner is tortured until he confesses and (if that be possible)
- restores the money. To keep him alone, day and night, in the black hole,
- is to inflict on the Marquesan torture inexpressible. Even his robberies
- are carried on in the plain daylight, under the open sky, with the
- stimulus of enterprise, and the countenance of an accomplice; his terror
- of the dark is still insurmountable; conceive, then, what he endures in
- his solitary dungeon; conceive how he longs to confess, become a
- full-fledged convict, and be allowed to sleep beside his comrades. While
- we were in Tai-o-hae a thief was under prevention. He had entered a
- house about eight in the morning, forced a trunk, and stolen eleven
- hundred francs; and now, under the horrors of darkness, solitude, and a
- bedevilled cannibal imagination, he was reluctantly confessing and
- giving up his spoil. From one cache, which he had already pointed out,
- three hundred francs had been recovered, and it was expected that he
- would presently disgorge the rest. This would be ugly enough if it were
- all; but I am bound to say, because it is a matter the French should set
- at rest, that worse is continually hinted. I heard that one man was
- kept six days with his arms bound backward round a barrel; and it is the
- universal report that every gendarme in the South Seas is equipped with
- something in the nature of a thumb-screw. I do not know this. I never
- had the face to ask any of the gendarmes--pleasant, intelligent, and
- kindly fellows--with whom I have been intimate, and whose hospitality I
- have enjoyed; and perhaps the tale reposes (as I hope it does) on a
- misconstruction of that ingenious cat's-cradle with which the French
- agent of police so readily secures a prisoner. But whether physical or
- moral, torture is certainly employed; and by a barbarous injustice, the
- state of accusation (in which a man may very well be innocently placed)
- is positively painful; the state of conviction (in which all are
- supposed guilty) is comparatively free, and positively pleasant. Perhaps
- worse still,--not only the accused, but sometimes his wife, his
- mistress, or his friend, is subjected to the same hardships. I was
- admiring, in the tapu system, the ingenuity of native methods of
- detection; there is not much to admire in those of the French, and to
- lock up a timid child in a dark room, and, if he prove obstinate, lock
- up his sister in the next, is neither novel nor humane.
- The main occasion of these thefts is the new vice of opium-eating. "Here
- nobody ever works, and all eat opium," said a gendarme; and Ah Fu knew a
- woman who ate a dollar's worth in a day. The successful thief will give
- a handful of money to each of his friends, a dress to a woman, pass an
- evening in one of the taverns of Tai-o-hae, during which he treats all
- comers, produce a big lump of opium, and retire to the bush to eat and
- sleep it off. A trader, who did not sell opium, confessed to me that he
- was at his wit's end. "I do not sell it, but others do," said he. "The
- natives only work to buy it; if they walk over to me to sell their
- cotton, they have just to walk over to some one else to buy their opium
- with my money. And why should they be at the bother of two walks? There
- is no use talking," he added--"opium is the currency of this country."
- The man under prevention during my stay at Tai-o-hae lost patience while
- the Chinese opium-seller was being examined in his presence. "Of course
- he sold me opium!" he broke out; "all the Chinese here sell opium. It
- was only to buy opium that I stole; it is only to buy opium that anybody
- steals. And what you ought to do is to let no opium come here, and no
- Chinamen." This is precisely what is done in Samoa by a native
- Government; but the French have bound their own hands, and for forty
- thousand francs sold native subjects to crime and death. This horrid
- traffic may be said to have sprung up by accident. It was Captain Hart
- who had the misfortune to be the means of beginning it, at a time when
- his plantations flourished in the Marquesas, and he found a difficulty
- in keeping Chinese coolies. To-day the plantations are practically
- deserted and the Chinese gone; but in the meanwhile the natives have
- learned the vice, the patent brings in a round sum, and the needy
- Government at Papeete shut their eyes and open their pockets. Of course
- the patentee is supposed to sell to Chinamen alone; equally of course,
- no one could afford to pay forty thousand francs for the privilege of
- supplying a scattered handful of Chinese; and every one knows the truth,
- and all are ashamed of it. French officials shake their heads when opium
- is mentioned; and the agents of the farmer blush for their employment.
- Those that live in glass houses should not throw stones; as a subject of
- the British crown, I am an unwilling shareholder in the largest opium
- business under heaven. But the British case is highly complicated; it
- implies the livelihood of millions; and must be reformed, when it can be
- reformed at all, with prudence. This French business, on the other hand,
- is a nostrum and a mere excrescence. No native industry was to be
- encouraged: the poison is solemnly imported. No native habit was to be
- considered: the vice has been gratuitously introduced. And no creature
- profits, save the Government at Papeete--the not very enviable gentlemen
- who pay them, and the Chinese underlings who do the dirty work.
- CHAPTER IX
- THE HOUSE OF TEMOANA
- The history of the Marquesas is, of late years, much confused by the
- coming and going of the French. At least twice they have seized the
- archipelago, at least once deserted it; and in the meanwhile the natives
- pursued almost without interruption their desultory cannibal wars.
- Through these events and changing dynasties, a single considerable
- figure may be seen to move: that of the high chief, a king, Temoana.
- Odds and ends of his history came to my ears: how he was at first a
- convert of the Protestant mission; how he was kidnapped or exiled from
- his native land, served as cook aboard a whaler, and was shown, for
- small charge, in English seaports; how he returned at last to the
- Marquesas, fell under the strong and benign influence of the late
- bishop, extended his influence in the group, was for a while joint ruler
- with the prelate, and died at last the chief supporter of Catholicism
- and the French. His widow remains in receipt of two pounds a month from
- the French Government. Queen she is usually called, but in the official
- almanac she figures as "_Madame Vaekehu, Grande Chefesse_." His son
- (natural or adoptive, I know not which), Stanislao Moanatini, chief of
- Akaui, serves in Tai-o-hae as a kind of Minister of Public Works; and
- the daughter of Stanislao is High Chiefess of the southern island of
- Tauata. These, then, are the greatest folk of the archipelago; we
- thought them also the most estimable. This is the rule in Polynesia,
- with few exceptions; the higher the family, the better the man--better
- in sense, better in manners, and usually taller and stronger in body. A
- stranger advances blindfold. He scrapes acquaintance as he can. Save the
- tattoo in the Marquesas, nothing indicates the difference of rank; and
- yet almost invariably we found, after we had made them, that our friends
- were persons of station. I have said "usually taller and stronger." I
- might have been more absolute,--over all Polynesia, and a part of
- Micronesia, the rule holds good; the great ones of the isle, and even of
- the village, are greater of bone and muscle, and often heavier of flesh,
- than any commoner. The usual explanation--that the high-born child is
- more industriously shampooed--is probably the true one. In New
- Caledonia, at least, where the difference does not exist, or has never
- been remarked, the practice of shampooing seems to be itself unknown.
- Doctors would be well employed in a study of the point.
- Vaekehu lives at the other end of the town from the Residency, beyond
- the buildings of the mission. Her house is on the European plan: a table
- in the midst of the chief room: photographs and religious pictures on
- the wall. It commands to either hand a charming vista: through the front
- door, a peep of green lawn, scurrying pigs, the pendent fans of the
- coco-palm and the splendour of the bursting surf: through the back,
- mounting forest glades and coronals of precipice. Here, in the strong
- thorough-draught, Her Majesty received us in a simple gown of print, and
- with no mark of royalty but the exquisite finish of her tattooed
- mittens, the elaboration of her manners, and the gentle falsetto in
- which all the highly refined among Marquesan ladies (and Vaekehu above
- all others) delight to sing their language. An adopted daughter
- interpreted, while we gave the news, and rehearsed by name our friends
- of Anaho. As we talked, we could see, through the landward door, another
- lady of the household at her toilet under the green trees; who,
- presently, when her hair was arranged, and her hat wreathed with
- flowers, appeared upon the back verandah with gracious salutations.
- Vaekehu is very deaf; _"merci"_ is her only word of French; and I do not
- know that she seemed clever. An exquisite, kind refinement, with a shade
- of quietism, gathered perhaps from the nuns, was what chiefly struck us.
- Or rather, upon that first occasion, we were conscious of a sense as of
- district-visiting on our part, and reduced evangelical gentility on the
- part of our hostess. The other impression followed after she was more at
- ease, and came with Stanislao and his little girl to dine on board the
- Casco. She had dressed for the occasion: wore white, which very well
- became her strong brown face; and sat among us, eating or smoking her
- cigarette, quite cut off from all society, or only now and then included
- through the intermediary of her son. It was a position that might have
- been ridiculous, and she made it ornamental; making believe to hear and
- to be entertained; her face, whenever she met our eyes, lighting with
- the smile of good society; her contributions to the talk, when she made
- any, and that was seldom, always complimentary and pleasing. No
- attention was paid to the child, for instance, but what she remarked and
- thanked us for. Her parting with each, when she came to leave, was
- gracious and pretty, as had been every step of her behaviour. When Mrs.
- Stevenson held out her hand to say good-bye, Vaekehu took it, held it,
- and a moment smiled upon her; dropped it, and then, as upon a kindly
- afterthought, and with a sort of warmth of condescension, held out both
- hands and kissed my wife upon both cheeks. Given the same relation of
- years and of rank, the thing would have been so done on the boards of
- the Comédie Française; just so might Madame Brohan have warmed and
- condescended to Madame Broisat in the _Marquis de Villemer_. It was my
- part to accompany our guests ashore: when I kissed the little girl
- good-bye at the pier steps, Vaekehu gave a cry of gratification--reached
- down her hand into the boat, took mine, and pressed it with that
- flattering softness which seems the coquetry of the old lady in every
- quarter of the earth. The next moment she had taken Stanislao's arm,
- and they moved off along the pier in the moonlight, leaving me
- bewildered. This was a queen of cannibals; she was tattooed from hand to
- foot, and perhaps the greatest masterpiece of that art now extant, so
- that a while ago, before she was grown prim, her leg was one of the
- sights of Tai-o-hae; she had been passed from chief to chief; she had
- been fought for and taken in war; perhaps, being so great a lady, she
- had sat on the high place, and throned it there, alone of her sex, while
- the drums were going twenty strong and the priests carried up the
- blood-stained baskets of long-pig. And now behold her, out of that past
- of violence and sickening feasts, step forth, in her age, a quiet,
- smooth, elaborate old lady, such as you might find at home (mittened
- also, but not often so well-mannered) in a score of country houses. Only
- Vaekehu's mittens were of dye, not of silk; and they had been paid for,
- not in money, but the cooked flesh of men. It came in my mind with a
- clap, what she could think of it herself, and whether at heart, perhaps,
- she might not regret and aspire after the barbarous and stirring past.
- But when I asked Stanislao--"Ah!" said he, "she is content; she is
- religious, she passes all her days with the sisters."
- Stanislao (Stanislaos, with the final consonant evaded after the
- Polynesian habit) was sent by Bishop Dordillon to South America, and
- there educated by the fathers. His French is fluent, his talk sensible
- and spirited, and in his capacity of ganger-in-chief, he is of excellent
- service to the French. With the prestige of his name and family, and
- with the stick when needful, he keeps the natives working and the roads
- passable. Without Stanislao and the convicts, I am in doubt what would
- become of the present regimen in Nuka-hiva; whether the highways might
- not be suffered to close up, the pier to wash away, and the Residency to
- fall piecemeal about the ears of impotent officials. And yet, though the
- hereditary favourer, and one of the chief props of French authority, he
- has always an eye upon the past. He showed me where the old public
- place had stood, still to be traced by random piles of stone; told me
- how great and fine it was, and surrounded on all sides by populous
- houses, whence, at the beating of the drums, the folk crowded to make
- holiday. The drumbeat of the Polynesian has a strange and gloomy
- stimulation for the nerves of all. White persons feel it--at these
- precipitate sounds their hearts beat faster; and, according to old
- residents, its effect on the natives was extreme. Bishop Dordillon might
- entreat; Temoana himself command and threaten; at the note of the drum
- wild instincts triumphed. And now it might beat upon these ruins, and
- who should assemble? The houses are down, the people dead, their lineage
- extinct; and the sweepings and fugitives of distant bays and islands
- encamp upon their graves. The decline of the dance Stanislao especially
- laments. "_Chaque pays a ses coutumes_," said he; but in the report of
- any gendarme, perhaps corruptly eager to increase the number of délits
- and the instruments of his own power, custom after custom is placed on
- the expurgatorial index. "_Tenez, une danse qui n'est pas permise_,"
- said Stanislao: "_je ne sais pas pourquoi, elle est très jolie, elle va
- comme ça_," and sticking his umbrella upright in the road, he sketched
- the steps and gestures. All his criticisms of the present, all his
- regrets for the past, struck me as temperate and sensible. The short
- term of office of the Resident he thought the chief defect of the
- administration; that officer having scarce begun to be efficient ere he
- was recalled. I thought I gathered, too, that he regarded with some fear
- the coming change from a naval to a civil governor. I am sure at least
- that I regard it so myself; for the civil servants of France have never
- appeared to any foreigner as at all the flower of their country, while
- her naval officers may challenge competition with the world. In all his
- talk, Stanislao was particular to speak of his own country as a land of
- savages; and when he stated an opinion of his own, it was with some
- apologetic preface, alleging that he was "a savage who had travelled."
- There was a deal, in this elaborate modesty, of honest pride. Yet there
- was something in the precaution that saddened me; and I could not but
- fear he was only forestalling a taunt that he had heard too often.
- I recall with interest two interviews with Stanislao. The first was a
- certain afternoon of tropic rain, which we passed together in the
- verandah of the club; talking at times with heightened voices as the
- showers redoubled overhead, passing at times into the billiard-room, to
- consult, in the dim, cloudy daylight, that map of the world which forms
- its chief adornment. He was naturally ignorant of English history, so
- that I had much of news to communicate. The story of Gordon I told him
- in full, and many episodes of the Indian Mutiny, Lucknow, the second
- battle of Cawnpore, the relief of Arrah, the death of poor Spottiswoode,
- and Sir Hugh Rose's hotspur, midland campaign. He was intent to hear;
- his brown face, strongly marked with small-pox, kindled and changed with
- each vicissitude. His eyes glowed with the reflected light of battle;
- his questions were many and intelligent, and it was chiefly these that
- sent us so often to the map. But it is of our parting that I keep the
- strongest sense. We were to sail on the morrow, and the night had
- fallen, dark, gusty, and rainy, when we stumbled up the hill to bid
- farewell to Stanislao. He had already loaded us with gifts; but more
- were waiting. We sat about the table over cigars and green cocoa-nuts;
- claps of wind blew through the house and extinguished the lamp, which
- was always instantly relighted with a single match; and these recurrent
- intervals of darkness were felt as a relief. For there was something
- painful and embarrassing in the kindness of that separation. "_Ah, vous
- devriez rester ici, mon cher ami!_" cried Stanislao. "_Vous êtes les
- gens qu'il faut pour les Kanaques; vous êtes doux, vous et votre
- famille; vous seriez obéis dans toutes les îles._" We had been civil;
- not always that, my conscience told me, and never anything beyond; and
- all this to-do is a measure, not of our considerateness, but of the
- want of it in others. The rest of the evening, on to Vaekehu's and back
- as far as to the pier, Stanislao walked with my arm and sheltered me
- with his umbrella; and after the boat had put off, we could still
- distinguish, in the murky darkness, his gestures of farewell. His words,
- if there were any, were drowned by the rain and the loud surf.
- I have mentioned presents, a vexed question in the South Seas; and one
- which well illustrates the common, ignorant habit of regarding races in
- a lump. In many quarters the Polynesian gives only to receive. I have
- visited islands where the population mobbed me for all the world like
- dogs after the waggon of cat's-meat; and where the frequent proposition,
- "You my pleni (friend)," or (with more of pathos) "You all 'e same my
- father," must be received with hearty laughter and a shout. And perhaps
- everywhere, among the greedy and rapacious, a gift is regarded as a
- sprat to catch a whale. It is the habit to give gifts and to receive
- returns, and such characters, complying with the custom, will look to it
- nearly that they do not lose. But for persons of a different stamp the
- statement must be reversed. The shabby Polynesian is anxious till he has
- received the return gift; the generous is uneasy until he has made it.
- The first is disappointed if you have not given more than he; the second
- is miserable if he thinks he has given less than you. This is my
- experience; if it clash with that of others, I pity their fortune, and
- praise mine: the circumstance cannot change what I have seen, nor lessen
- what I have received. And indeed I find that those who oppose me often
- argue from a ground of singular presumptions; comparing Polynesians with
- an ideal person, compact of generosity and gratitude, whom I never had
- the pleasure of encountering; and forgetting that what is almost poverty
- to us is wealth almost unthinkable to them. I will give one instance: I
- chanced to speak with consideration of these gifts of Stanislao's with a
- certain clever man, a great hater and contemner of Kanakas. "Well! what
- were they!" he cried. "A pack of old men's beards. Trash!" And the same
- gentleman, some half an hour later, being upon a different train of
- thought, dwelt at length on the esteem in which the Marquesans held that
- sort of property, how they preferred it to all others except land, and
- what fancy prices it would fetch. Using his own figures, I computed
- that, in this commodity alone, the gifts of Vaekehu and Stanislao
- represented between two and three hundred dollars; and the queen's
- official salary is of two hundred and forty in the year.
- But generosity on the one hand, and conspicuous meanness on the other,
- are in the South Seas, as at home, the exception. It is neither with any
- hope of gain, nor with any lively wish to please, that the ordinary
- Polynesian chooses and presents his gifts. A plain social duty lies
- before him, which he performs correctly, but without the least
- enthusiasm. And we shall best understand his attitude of mind, if we
- examine our own to the cognate absurdity of marriage presents. There we
- give without any special thought of a return; yet if the circumstance
- arise, and the return be withheld, we shall judge ourselves insulted. We
- give them usually without affection, and almost never with a genuine
- desire to please; and our gift is rather a mark of our own status than a
- measure of our love to the recipients. So in a great measure and with
- the common run of the Polynesians: their gifts are formal; they imply no
- more than social recognition; and they are made and reciprocated, as we
- pay and return our morning visits. And the practice of marking and
- measuring events and sentiments by presents is universal in the island
- world. A gift plays with them the part of stamp and seal; and has
- entered profoundly into the mind of islanders. Peace and war, marriage,
- adoption and naturalisation are celebrated or declared by the acceptance
- or the refusal of gifts; and it is as natural for the islander to bring
- a gift as for us to carry a card-case.
- CHAPTER X
- A PORTRAIT AND A STORY
- I have had occasion several times to name the late bishop, Father
- Dordillon, "Monseigneur," as he is still almost universally called,
- Vicar-Apostolic of the Marquesas and Bishop of Cambysopolis _in
- partibus_. Everywhere in the islands, among all classes and races, this
- fine, old, kindly, cheerful fellow is remembered with affection and
- respect. His influence with the natives was paramount. They reckoned him
- the highest of men--higher than an admiral; brought him their money to
- keep; took his advice upon their purchases; nor would they plant trees
- upon their own land till they had the approval of the father of the
- islands. During the time of the French exodus he singly represented
- Europe, living in the Residency, and ruling by the hand of Temoana. The
- first roads were made under his auspices and by his persuasion. The old
- road between Hatiheu and Anaho was got under way from either side on the
- ground that it would be pleasant for an evening promenade, and brought
- to completion by working on the rivalry of the two villages. The priest
- would boast in Hatiheu of the progress made in Anaho, and he would tell
- the folk of Anaho, "If you don't take care, your neighbours will be over
- the hill before you are at the top." It could not be so done to-day; it
- could then; death, opium, and depopulation had not gone so far; and the
- people of Hatiheu, I was told, still vied with each other in fine
- attire, and used to go out by families, in the cool of the evening,
- boat-sailing and racing in the bay. There seems some truth at least in
- the common view, that this joint reign of Temoana and the bishop was
- the last and brief golden age of the Marquesas. But the civil power
- returned, the mission was packed out of the Residency at twenty-four
- hours' notice, new methods supervened, and the golden age (whatever it
- quite was) came to an end. It is the strongest proof of Father
- Dordillon's prestige that it survived, seemingly without loss, this
- hasty deposition.
- His method with the natives was extremely mild. Among these barbarous
- children he still played the part of the smiling father; and he was
- careful to observe, in all indifferent matters, the Marquesan etiquette.
- Thus, in the singular system of artificial kinship, the bishop had been
- adopted by Vaekehu as a grandson; Miss Fisher, of Hatiheu, as a
- daughter. From that day, Monseigneur never addressed the young lady
- except as his mother, and closed his letters with the formalities of a
- dutiful son. With Europeans he could be strict, even to the extent of
- harshness. He made no distinction against heretics, with whom he was on
- friendly terms; but the rules of his own Church he would see observed;
- and once at least he had a white man clapped in gaol for the desecration
- of a saint's day. But even this rigour, so intolerable to laymen, so
- irritating to Protestants, could not shake his popularity. We shall best
- conceive him by examples nearer home; we may all have known some divine
- of the old school in Scotland, a literal Sabbatarian, a stickler for the
- letter of the law, who was yet in private modest, innocent, genial, and
- mirthful. Much such a man, it seems, was Father Dordillon. And his
- popularity bore a test yet stronger. He had the name, and probably
- deserved it, of a shrewd man in business and one that made the mission
- pay. Nothing so much stirs up resentment as the inmixture in commerce of
- religious bodies; but even rival traders spoke well of Monseigneur.
- His character is best portrayed in the story of the days of his decline.
- A time came when, from the failure of sight, he must desist from his
- literary labours: his Marquesan hymns, grammars, and dictionaries; his
- scientific papers, lives of saints, and devotional poetry. He cast about
- for a new interest: pitched on gardening, and was to be seen all day,
- with spade and water-pot, in his childlike eagerness, actually running
- between the borders. Another step of decay and he must leave his garden
- also. Instantly a new occupation was devised, and he sat in the mission
- cutting paper flowers and wreaths. His diocese was not great enough for
- his activity; the churches of the Marquesas were papered with his
- handiwork, and still he must be making more. "Ah," said he, smiling,
- "when I am dead what a fine time you will have clearing out my trash!"
- He had been dead about six months; but I was pleased to see some of his
- trophies still exposed, and looked upon them with a smile: the tribute
- (if I have read this cheerful character aright) which he would have
- preferred to any useless tears. Disease continued progressively to
- disable him; he who had clambered so stalwartly over the rude rocks of
- the Marquesas, bringing peace to warfaring clans, was for some time
- carried in a chair between the mission and the church, and at last
- confined to bed, impotent with dropsy, and tormented with bed-sores and
- sciatica. Here he lay two months without complaint; and on the 11th
- January 1888, in the seventy-ninth year of his life, and the
- thirty-fourth of his labours in the Marquesas, passed away.
- Those who have a taste for hearing missions, Protestant or Catholic,
- decried, must seek their pleasure elsewhere than in my pages. Whether
- Catholic or Protestant, with all their gross blots, with all their
- deficiency of candour, of humour, and of common sense, the missionaries
- are the best and the most useful whites in the Pacific. This is a
- subject which will follow us throughout; but there is one part of it
- that may conveniently be treated here. The married and the celibate
- missionary, each has his particular advantage and defect. The married
- missionary, taking him at the best, may offer to the native what he is
- much in want of--a higher picture of domestic life; but the woman at
- his elbow tends to keep him in touch with Europe and out of touch with
- Polynesia, and to perpetuate, and even to ingrain, parochial decencies
- far best forgotten. The mind of the female missionary tends, for
- instance, to be continually busied about dress. She can be taught with
- extreme difficulty to think any costume decent but that to which she
- grew accustomed on Clapham Common; and to gratify this prejudice, the
- native is put to useless expense, his mind is tainted with the
- morbidities of Europe, and his health is set in danger. The celibate
- missionary, on the other hand, and whether at best or worst, falls
- readily into native ways of life; to which he adds too commonly what is
- either a mark of celibate man at large, or an inheritance from mediæval
- saints--I mean slovenly habits and an unclean person. There are, of
- course, degrees in this; and the sister (of course, and all honour to
- her) is as fresh as a lady at a ball. For the diet there is nothing to
- be said--it must amaze and shock the Polynesian--but for the adoption of
- native habits there is much. "_Chaque pays a ses coutumes_," said
- Stanislao; these it is the missionary's delicate task to modify; and the
- more he can do so from within, and from a native standpoint, the better
- he will do his work; and here I think the Catholics have sometimes the
- advantage; in the Vicariate of Dordillon, I am sure they had it. I have
- heard the bishop blamed for his indulgence to the natives, and above all
- because he did not rage with sufficient energy against cannibalism. It
- was a part of his policy to live among the natives like an elder
- brother; to follow where he could; to lead where it was necessary; never
- to drive; and to encourage the growth of new habits, instead of
- violently rooting up the old. And it might be better, in the long-run,
- if this policy were always followed.
- It might be supposed that native missionaries would prove more
- indulgent, but the reverse is found to be the case. The new broom sweeps
- clean; and the white missionary of to-day is often embarrassed by the
- bigotry of his native coadjutor. What else should we expect? On some
- islands, sorcery, polygamy, human sacrifice, and tobacco-smoking have
- been prohibited, the dress of the native has been modified, and himself
- warned in strong terms against rival sects of Christianity; all by the
- same man, at the same period of time, and with the like authority. By
- what criterion is the convert to distinguish the essential from the
- unessential? He swallows the nostrum whole; there has been no play of
- mind, no instruction, and, except for some brute utility in the
- prohibitions, no advance. To call things by their proper names, this is
- teaching superstition. It is unfortunate to use the word; so few people
- have read history, and so many have dipped into little atheistic
- manuals, that the majority will rush to a conclusion, and suppose the
- labour lost. And far from that: These semi-spontaneous superstitions,
- varying with the sect of the original evangelist and the customs of the
- island, are found in practice to be highly fructifying; and in
- particular those who have learned and who go forth again to teach them
- offer an example to the world. The best specimen of the Christian hero
- that I ever met was one of these native missionaries. He had saved two
- lives at the risk of his own; like Nathan, he had bearded a tyrant in
- his hour of blood; when a whole white population fled, he alone stood to
- his duty; and his behaviour under domestic sorrow with which the public
- has no concern filled the beholder with sympathy and admiration. A poor
- little smiling laborious man he looked; and you would have thought he
- had nothing in him but that of which indeed he had too much--facile
- good-nature.[3]
- It chances that the only rivals of Monseigneur and his mission in the
- Marquesas were certain of these brown-skinned evangelists, natives from
- Hawaii. I know not what they thought of Father Dordillon: they are the
- only class I did not question; but I suspect the prelate to have
- regarded them askance, for he was eminently human. During my stay at
- Tai-o-hae, the time of the yearly holiday came round at the girls'
- school; and a whole fleet of whale-boats came from Ua-pu to take the
- daughters of that island home. On board of these was Kauwealoha, one of
- the pastors, a fine, rugged old gentleman, of that leonine type so
- common in Hawaii. He paid me a visit in the _Casco_, and there
- entertained me with a tale of one of his colleagues, Kekela, a
- missionary in the great cannibal isle of Hiva-oa. It appears that
- shortly after a kidnapping visit from a Peruvian slaver, the boats of an
- American whaler put into a bay upon that island, were attacked, and made
- their escape with difficulty, leaving their mate, a Mr. Whalon, in the
- hands of the natives. The captive, with his arms bound behind his back,
- was cast into a house; and the chief announced the capture to Kekela.
- And here I begin to follow the version of Kauwealoha; it is a good
- specimen of Kanaka English; and the reader is to conceive it delivered
- with violent emphasis and speaking pantomime.
- "'I got 'Melican mate,' the chief he say. 'What you go do 'Melican
- mate?' Kekela he say.' I go make fire, I go kill, I go eat him,' he say;
- 'you come to-mollow eat piece.' 'I no _want_ eat 'Melican mate!' Kekela
- he say; 'why you want?' 'This bad shippee, this slave shippee,' the
- chief he say. 'One time a shippee he come from Pelu, he take away plenty
- Kanaka, he take away my son. 'Melican mate he bad man. I go eat him; you
- eat piece.' 'I no _want_ eat 'Melican mate!' Kekela he say; and he
- _cly_--all night he cly! To-mollow Kekela he get up, he put on blackee
- coat, he go see chief; he see Missa Whela, him hand tie' like this.
- (_Pantomime_). Kekela he cly. He say chief:--'Chief, you like things of
- mine? you like whaleboat?' 'Yes,' he say. 'You like file-a'm?'
- (fire-arms). 'Yes,' he say. 'You like blackee coat?' 'Yes,' he say.
- Kekela he take Missa Whela by he shoul'a' (shoulder), he take him light
- out house; he give chief he whaleboat, he file-a'm, he blackee coat. He
- take Missa Whela he house, make him sit down with he wife and chil'en.
- Missa Whela all-the-same pelison (prison); he wife, he chil'en in
- America; he cly--O, he cly. Kekela he solly. One day Kekela he see ship.
- (_Pantomime._) He say Missa Whela, 'Ma' Whala?' Missa Whela he say,
- 'Yes.' Kanaka they begin go down beach. Kekela he get eleven Kanaka, get
- oa' (oars), get evely thing. He say Missa Whela, 'Now, you go quick.'
- They jump in whale-boat. 'Now you low!' Kekela he say: 'you low quick,
- quick!' (_Violent pantomime, and a change indicating that the narrator
- has left the boat and returned to the beach._) All the Kanaka they say,
- 'How! 'Melican mate he go away?'--jump in boat; low afta. (_Violent
- pantomime and change again to boat._) Kekela he say, 'Low quick!'"
- Here I think Kauwealoha's pantomime had confused me; I have no more of
- his _ipsissima verba_; and can but add, in my own less spirited manner,
- that the ship was reached, Mr. Whalon taken aboard, and Kekela returned
- to his charge among the cannibals. But how unjust it is to repeat the
- stumblings of a foreigner in a language only partly acquired! A
- thoughtless reader might conceive Kauwealoha and his colleague to be a
- species of amicable baboon; but I have here the antidote. In return for
- his act of gallant charity, Kekela was presented by the American
- Government with a sum of money, and by President Lincoln personally with
- a gold watch. From his letter of thanks, written in his own tongue, I
- give the following extract. I do not envy the man who can read it
- without emotion.
- "When I saw one of your countrymen, a citizen of your great nation,
- ill-treated, and about to be baked and eaten, as a pig is eaten, I ran
- to save him, full of pity and grief at the evil deed of these
- benighted people. I gave my boat for the stranger's life This boat
- came from James Hunnewell, a gift of friendship. It became the ransom
- of this countryman of yours, that he might not be eaten by the savages
- who knew not Jehovah. This was Mr. Whalon, and the date, Jan. 14,
- 1864.
- "As to this friendly deed of mine in saving Mr. Whalon, its seed came
- from your great land, and was brought by certain of your countrymen,
- who had received the love of God. It was planted in Hawaii, and I
- brought it to plant in this land and in these dark regions, that they
- might receive the root of all that is good and true, which is _love_.
- "1. Love to Jehovah.
- "2. Love to self.
- "3. Love to our neighbour.
- "If a man have a sufficiency of these three, he is good and holy, like
- his God, Jehovah, in His triune character (Father, Son, and Holy
- Ghost), one-three, three-one. If he have two and wants one, it is not
- well; and if he have one and wants two, this, indeed, is not well; but
- if he cherishes all three, then is he holy, indeed, after the manner
- of the Bible.
- "This is a great thing for your great nation to boast of before all
- the nations of the earth. From your great land a most precious seed
- was brought to the land of darkness. It was planted here, not by means
- of guns and men-of-war and threatenings. It was planted by means of
- the ignorant, the neglected, the despised. Such was the introduction
- of the word of the Almighty God into this group of Nuuhiwa. Great is
- my debt to Americans, who have taught me all things pertaining to this
- life and to that which is to come.
- "How shall I repay your great kindness to me? Thus David asked of
- Jehovah, and thus I ask of you, the President of the United States.
- This is my only payment--that which I have received of the Lord,
- love--(aloha)."
- FOOTNOTE:
- [3] The reference is to Maka, the Hawaiian missionary, at Butaritari,
- in the Gilberts.
- CHAPTER XI
- LONG-PIG--A CANNIBAL HIGH PLACE
- Nothing more strongly arouses our disgust than cannibalism, nothing so
- surely unmortars a society; nothing, we might plausibly argue, will so
- harden and degrade the minds of those that practise it. And yet we
- ourselves make much the same appearance in the eyes of the Buddhist and
- the vegetarian. We consume the carcases of creatures of like appetites,
- passions, and organs with ourselves; we feed on babes, though not our
- own; and the slaughter-house resounds daily with screams of pain and
- fear. We distinguish, indeed; but the unwillingness of many nations to
- eat the dog, an animal with whom we live on terms of the next intimacy,
- shows how precariously the distinction is grounded. The pig is the main
- element of animal food among the islands; and I had many occasions, my
- mind being quickened by my cannibal surroundings, to observe his
- character and the manner of his death. Many islanders live with their
- pigs as we do with our dogs; both crowd around the hearth with equal
- freedom; and the island pig is a fellow of activity, enterprise, and
- sense. He husks his own cocoa-nuts, and (I am told) rolls them into the
- sun to burst; he is the terror of the shepherd. Mrs. Stevenson, senior,
- has seen one fleeing to the woods with a lamb in his mouth; and I saw
- another come rapidly (and erroneously) to the conclusion that the
- _Casco_ was going down, and swim through the flush water to the rail in
- search of an escape. It was told us in childhood that pigs cannot swim;
- I have known one to leap overboard, swim five hundred yards to shore,
- and return to the house of his original owner. I was once, at Tautira,
- a pig-master on a considerable scale; at first, in my pen, the utmost
- good feeling prevailed; a little sow with a belly-ache came and appealed
- to us for help in the manner of a child; and there was one shapely black
- boar, whom we called Catholicus, for he was a particular present from
- the Catholics of the village, and who early displayed the marks of
- courage and friendliness; no other animal, whether dog or pig, was
- suffered to approach him at his food, and for human beings he showed a
- full measure of that toadying fondness, so common in the lower animals,
- and possibly their chief title to the name. One day, on visiting my
- piggery, I was amazed to see Catholicus draw back from my approach with
- cries of terror; and if I was amazed at the change, I was truly
- embarrassed when I learnt its reason. One of the pigs had been that
- morning killed; Catholicus had seen the murder, he had discovered he was
- dwelling in the shambles, and from that time his confidence and his
- delight in life were ended. We still reserved him a long while, but he
- could not endure the sight of any two-legged creature, nor could we,
- under the circumstances, encounter his eye without confusion. I have
- assisted besides, by the ear, at the act of butchery itself; the
- victim's cries of pain I think I could have borne, but the execution was
- mismanaged, and his expression of terror was contagious: that small
- heart moved to the same tune with ours. Upon such "dread foundations"
- the life of the European reposes, and yet the European is among the less
- cruel of races. The paraphernalia of murder, the preparatory brutalities
- of his existence, are all hid away; an extreme sensibility reigns upon
- the surface; and ladies will faint at the recital of one tithe of what
- they daily expect of their butchers. Some will be even crying out upon
- me in their hearts for the coarseness of this paragraph. And so with the
- island cannibals. They were not cruel; apart from this custom, they are
- a race of the most kindly; rightly speaking, to cut a man's flesh after
- he is dead is far less hateful than to oppress him whilst he lives; and
- even the victims of their appetite were gently used in life and suddenly
- and painlessly despatched at last. In island circles of refinement it
- was doubtless thought bad taste to expatiate on what was ugly in the
- practice.
- Cannibalism is traced from end to end of the Pacific, from the Marquesas
- to New Guinea, from New Zealand to Hawaii, here in the lively haunt of
- its exercise, there by scanty but significant survivals. Hawaii is the
- most doubtful. We find cannibalism chronicled in Hawaii, only in the
- history of a single war, where it seems to have been thought
- exceptional, as in the case of mountain outlaws, such as fell by the
- hand of Theseus. In Tahiti, a single circumstance survived, but that
- appears conclusive. In historic times, when human oblation was made in
- the marae, the eyes of the victim were formally offered to the chief: a
- delicacy to the leading guest. All Melanesia appears tainted. In
- Micronesia, in the Marshalls, with which my acquaintance is no more than
- that of a tourist, I could find no trace at all; and even in the Gilbert
- zone I long looked and asked in vain. I was told tales indeed of men who
- had been eaten in a famine; but these were nothing to my purpose, for
- the same thing is done under the same stress by all kindreds and
- generations of men. At last, in some manuscript notes of Dr. Turner's,
- which I was allowed to consult at Malua, I came on one damning evidence:
- on the island of Onoatoa the punishment for theft was to be killed and
- eaten. How shall we account for the universality of the practice over so
- vast an area, among people of such varying civilisation, and, with
- whatever intermixture, of such different blood? What circumstance is
- common to them all, but that they lived on islands destitute, or very
- nearly so, of animal food? I can never find it in my appetite that man
- was meant to live on vegetables only. When our stores ran low among the
- islands, I grew to weary for the recurrent day when economy allowed us
- to open another tin of miserable mutton. And in at least one ocean
- language, a particular word denotes that a man is "hungry for fish,"
- having reached that stage when vegetables can no longer satisfy, and his
- soul, like those of the Hebrews in the desert, begins to lust after
- flesh-pots. Add to this the evidences of over-population and imminent
- famine already adduced, and I think we see some ground of indulgence for
- the island cannibal.
- It is right to look at both sides of any question; but I am far from
- making the apology of this worse than bestial vice. The higher
- Polynesian races, such as the Tahitians, Hawaiians, and Samoans, had one
- and all outgrown, and some of them had in part forgot, the practice,
- before Cook or Bougainville had shown a topsail in their waters. It
- lingered only in some low islands where life was difficult to maintain,
- and among inveterate savages like the New Zealanders or the Marquesans.
- The Marquesans intertwined man-eating with the whole texture of their
- lives; long-pig was in a sense their currency and sacrament; it formed
- the hire of the artist, illustrated public events, and was the occasion
- and attraction of a feast. To-day they are paying the penalty of this
- bloody commixture. The civil power, in its crusade against man-eating,
- has had to examine one after another all Marquesan arts and pleasures,
- has found them one after another tainted with a cannibal element, and
- one after another has placed them on the proscript list. Their art of
- tattooing stood by itself, the execution exquisite, the designs most
- beautiful and intricate; nothing more handsomely sets off a handsome
- man; it may cost some pain in the beginning, but I doubt if it be near
- so painful in the long-run, and I am sure it is far more becoming than
- the ignoble European practice of tight-lacing among women. And now it
- has been found needful to forbid the art. Their songs and dances were
- numerous (and the law has had to abolish them by the dozen). They now
- face empty-handed the tedium of their uneventful days; and who shall
- pity them? The least rigorous will say that they were justly served.
- Death alone could not satisfy Marquesan vengeance; the flesh must be
- eaten. The chief who seized Mr. Whalon preferred to eat him; and he
- thought he had justified the wish when he explained it was a vengeance.
- Two or three years ago, the people of a valley seized and slew a wretch
- who had offended them. His offence, it is to be supposed, was dire; they
- could not bear to leave their vengeance incomplete, and, under the eyes
- of the French, they did not dare to hold a public festival. The body was
- accordingly divided; and every man retired to his own house to
- consummate the rite in secret, carrying his proportion of the dreadful
- meat in a Swedish match-box. The barbarous substance of the drama and
- the European properties employed offer a seizing contrast to the
- imagination. Yet more striking is another incident of the very year when
- I was there myself, 1888. In the spring, a man and woman skulked about
- the school-house in Hiva-oa till they found a particular child alone.
- Him they approached with honeyed words and carneying manners--"You are
- So-and-so, son of So-and-so?" they asked; and caressed and beguiled him
- deeper in the woods. Some instinct woke in the child's bosom, or some
- look betrayed the horrid purpose of his deceivers. He sought to break
- from them; he screamed; and they, casting off the mask, seized him the
- more strongly and began to run. His cries were heard; his schoolmates,
- playing not far off, came running to the rescue; and the sinister couple
- fled and vanished in the woods. They were never identified; no
- prosecution followed; but it was currently supposed they had some grudge
- against the boy's father, and designed to eat him in revenge. All over
- the islands, as at home among our own ancestors, it will be observed
- that the avenger takes no particular heed to strike an individual. A
- family, a class, a village, a whole valley or island, a whole race of
- mankind, share equally the guilt of any member. So, in the above story,
- the son was to pay the penalty for his father; so Mr. Whalon, the mate
- of an American whaler, was to bleed and be eaten for the misdeeds of a
- Peruvian slaver. I am reminded of an incident in Jaluit in the Marshall
- group, which was told me by an eye-witness, and which I tell here again
- for the strangeness of the scene. Two men had awakened the animosity of
- the Jaluit chiefs; and it was their wives who were selected to be
- punished. A single native served as executioner. Early in the morning,
- in the face of a large concourse of spectators, he waded out upon the
- reef between his victims. These neither complained nor resisted;
- accompanied their destroyer patiently; stooped down, when they had waded
- deep enough, at his command; and he (laying one hand upon the shoulders
- of each) held them under water till they drowned. Doubtless, although my
- informant did not tell me so, their families would be lamenting aloud
- upon the beach.
- It was from Hatiheu that I paid my first visit to a cannibal high place.
- The day was sultry and clouded. Drenching tropical showers succeeded
- bursts of sweltering sunshine. The green pathway of the road wound
- steeply upward. As we went, our little schoolboy guide a little ahead of
- us, Father Simeon had his portfolio in his hand, and named the trees for
- me, and read aloud from his notes the abstract of their virtues.
- Presently the road, mounting, showed us the vale of Hatiheu on a larger
- scale; and the priest, with occasional reference to our guide, pointed
- out the boundaries and told me the names of the larger tribes that lived
- at perpetual war in the old days: one on the north-east, one along the
- beach, one behind upon the mountain. With a survivor of this latter clan
- Father Simeon had spoken; until the pacification he had never been to
- the sea's edge, nor, if I remember exactly, eaten of sea-fish. Each in
- its own district, the septs lived cantoned and beleaguered. One step
- without the boundaries was to affront death. If famine came, the men
- must out to the woods to gather chestnuts and small fruits; even as to
- this day, if the parents are backward in their weekly doles, school must
- be broken up and the scholars sent foraging. But in the old days, when
- there was trouble in one clan, there would be activity in all its
- neighbours; the woods would be laid full of ambushes; and he who went
- after vegetables for himself might remain to be a joint for his
- hereditary foes. Nor was the pointed occasion needful. A dozen different
- natural signs and social junctures called this people to the war-path
- and the cannibal hunt. Let one of chiefly rank have finished his
- tattooing, the wife of one be near upon her time, two of the debouching
- streams have deviated nearer on the beach of Hatiheu, a certain bird
- have been heard to sing, a certain ominous formation of cloud observed
- above the northern sea; and instantly the arms were oiled, and the
- man-hunters swarmed into the wood to lay their fratricidal ambuscades.
- It appears besides that occasionally, perhaps in famine, the priest
- would shut himself in his house, where he lay for a stated period like a
- person dead. When he came forth it was to run for three days through the
- territory of the clan, naked and starving, and to sleep at night alone
- in the high place. It was now the turn of the others to keep the house,
- for to encounter the priest upon his rounds was death. On the eve of the
- fourth day the time of the running was over; the priest returned to his
- roof, the laymen came forth, and in the morning the number of the
- victims was announced. I have this tale of the priest on one
- authority--I think a good one,--but I set it down with diffidence. The
- particulars are so striking that, had they been true, I almost think I
- must have heard them oftener referred to. Upon one point there seems to
- be no question: that the feast was sometimes furnished from within the
- clan. In times of scarcity, all who were not protected by their family
- connections--in the Highland expression, all the commons of the
- clan--had cause to tremble. It was vain to resist, it was useless to
- flee. They were begirt upon all hands by cannibals; and the oven was
- ready to smoke for them abroad in the country of their foes, or at home
- in the valley of their fathers.
- At a certain corner of the road our scholar-guide struck off to his left
- into the twilight of the forest. We were now on one of the ancient
- native roads, plunged in a high vault of wood, and clambering, it
- seemed, at random over boulders and dead trees; but the lad wound in and
- out and up and down without a check, for these paths are to the natives
- as marked as the king's highway is to us; insomuch that, in the days of
- the man-hunt, it was their labour rather to block and deface than to
- improve them. In the crypt of the wood the air was clammy and hot and
- cold; overhead, upon the leaves, the tropical rain uproariously poured,
- but only here and there, as through holes in a leaky roof, a single drop
- would fall, and make a spot upon my mackintosh. Presently the huge trunk
- of a banyan hove in sight, standing upon what seemed the ruins of an
- ancient fort; and our guide, halting and holding forth his arm,
- announced that we had reached the _paepae tapu_.
- _Paepae_ signifies a floor or platform such as a native house is built
- on; and even such a paepae--a paepae hae--may be called a paepae tapu in
- a lesser sense when it is deserted and becomes the haunt of spirits; but
- the public high place, such as I was now treading, was a thing on a
- great scale. As far as my eyes could pierce through the dark
- undergrowth, the floor of the forest was all paved. Three tiers of
- terrace ran on the slope of the hill; in front, a crumbling parapet
- contained the main arena; and the pavement of that was pierced and
- parcelled out with several wells and small enclosures. No trace remained
- of any superstructure, and the scheme of the amphitheatre was difficult
- to seize. I visited another in Hiva-oa, smaller but more perfect, where
- it was easy to follow rows of benches, and to distinguish isolated seats
- of honour for eminent persons; and where, on the upper platform, a
- single joist of the temple or dead-house still remained, its uprights
- richly carved. In the old days the high place was sedulously tended. No
- tree except the sacred banyan was suffered to encroach upon its grades,
- no dead leaf to rot upon the pavement. The stones were smoothly set,
- and I am told they were kept bright with oil. On all sides the guardians
- lay encamped in their subsidiary huts to watch and cleanse it. No other
- foot of man was suffered to draw near; only the priest, in the days of
- his running, came there to sleep--perhaps to dream of his ungodly
- errand; but in the time of the feast, the clan trooped to the high place
- in a body, and each had his appointed seat. There were places for the
- chiefs, the drummers, the dancers, the women, and the priests. The
- drums--perhaps twenty strong, and some of them twelve feet
- high--continuously throbbed in time. In time the singers kept up their
- long-drawn, lugubrious, ululating song; in time, too, the dancers,
- tricked out in singular finery, stepped, leaped, swayed, and
- gesticulated--their plumed fingers fluttering in the air like
- butterflies. The sense of time, in all these ocean races, is extremely
- perfect; and I conceive in such a festival that almost every sound and
- movement fell in one. So much the more unanimously must have grown the
- agitation of the feasters; so much the more wild must have been the
- scene to any European who could have beheld them there, in the strong
- sun and the strong shadow of the banyan, rubbed with saffron to throw in
- a more high relief the arabesque of the tattoo; the women bleached by
- days of confinement to a complexion almost European; the chiefs crowned
- with silver plumes of old men's beards and girt with kirtles of the hair
- of dead women. All manner of island food was meanwhile spread for the
- women and the commons; and, for those who were privileged to eat of it,
- there were carried up to the dead-house the baskets of long-pig. It is
- told that the feasts were long kept up; the people came from them
- brutishly exhausted with debauchery, and the chiefs heavy with their
- beastly food. There are certain sentiments which we call emphatically
- human--denying the honour of that name to those who lack them. In such
- feasts--particularly where the victim had been slain at home, and men
- banqueting on the poor clay of a comrade with whom they played in
- infancy, or a woman whose favours they had shared--the whole body of
- these sentiments is outraged. To consider it too closely is to
- understand, if not to excuse, these fervours of self-righteous old
- ship-captains, who would man their guns, and open fire in passing, on a
- cannibal island.
- And yet it was strange. There, upon the spot, as I stood under the high,
- dripping vault of the forest, with the young priest on the one hand, in
- his kilted gown, and the bright-eyed Marquesan schoolboy on the other,
- the whole business appeared infinitely distant, and fallen in the cold
- perspective and dry light of history. The bearing of the priest,
- perhaps, affected me. He smiled; he jested with the boy, the heir both
- of these feasters and their meat; he clapped his hands, and gave me a
- stave of one of the old, ill-omened choruses. Centuries might have come
- and gone since this slimy theatre was last in operation; and I beheld
- the place with no more emotion than I might have felt in visiting
- Stonehenge. In Hiva-oa, as I began to appreciate that the thing was
- still living and latent about my footsteps, and that it was still within
- the bounds of possibility that I might hear the cry of the trapped
- victim, my historic attitude entirely failed, and I was sensible of some
- repugnance for the natives. But here, too, the priests maintained their
- jocular attitude: rallying the cannibals as upon an eccentricity rather
- absurd than horrible; seeking, I should say, to shame them from the
- practice by good-natured ridicule, as we shame a child from stealing
- sugar. We may here recognise the temperate and sagacious mind of Bishop
- Dordillon.
- CHAPTER XII
- THE STORY OF A PLANTATION
- Taahauku, on the south-westerly coast of the island of Hiva-oa--Tahuku,
- say the slovenly whites--may be called the port of Atuona. It is a
- narrow and small anchorage, set between low cliffy points, and opening
- above upon a woody valley: a little French fort, now disused and
- deserted, overhangs the valley and the inlet. Atuona itself, at the head
- of the next bay, is framed in a theatre of mountains, which dominate the
- more immediate settling of Taahauku and give the salient character of
- the scene. They are reckoned at no higher than four thousand feet; but
- Tahiti with eight thousand, and Hawaii with fifteen, can offer no such
- picture of abrupt, melancholy alps. In the morning, when the sun falls
- directly on their front, they stand like a vast wall: green to the
- summit, if by any chance the summit should be clear--water-courses here
- and there delineated on their face, as narrow as cracks. Towards
- afternoon, the light falls more obliquely, and the sculpture of the
- range comes in relief, huge gorges sinking into shadow, huge, tortuous
- buttresses standing edged with sun. At all hours of the day they strike
- the eye with some new beauty, and the mind with the same menacing gloom.
- The mountains, dividing and deflecting the endless airy deluge of the
- Trade, are doubtless answerable for the climate. A strong draught of
- wind blew day and night over the anchorage. Day and night the same
- fantastic and attenuated clouds fled across the heavens, the same dusky
- cap of rain and vapour fell and rose on the mountain. The land-breezes
- came very strong and chill, and the sea, like the air, was in perpetual
- bustle. The swell crowded into the narrow anchorage like sheep into a
- fold; broke all along both sides, high on the one, low on the other;
- kept a certain blowhole sounding and smoking like a cannon; and spent
- itself at last upon the beach.
- On the side away from Atuona, the sheltering promontory was a nursery of
- coco-trees. Some were mere infants, none had attained to any size, none
- had yet begun to shoot skyward with that whip-like shaft of the mature
- palm. In the young trees the colour alters with the age and growth. Now
- all is of a grass-like hue, infinitely dainty; next the rib grows
- golden, the fronds remaining green as ferns; and then, as the trunk
- continues to mount and to assume its final hue of grey, the fans put on
- manlier and more decided depths of verdure, stand out dark upon the
- distance, glisten against the sun, and flash like silver fountains in
- the assault of the wind. In this young wood of Taahauku all these hues
- and combinations were exampled and repeated by the score. The trees grew
- pleasantly spaced upon a hilly sward, here and there interspersed with a
- rack for drying copra, or a tumble-down hut for storing it. Every here
- and there the stroller had a glimpse of the _Casco_ tossing in the
- narrow anchorage below; and beyond he had ever before him the dark
- amphitheatre of the Atuona mountains and the cliffy bluff that closes it
- to seaward. The trade-wind moving in the fans made a ceaseless noise of
- summer rain; and from time to time, with the sound of a sudden and
- distant drum-beat, the surf would burst in a sea-cave.
- At the upper end of the inlet, its low, cliffy lining sinks, at both
- sides, into a beach. A copra warehouse stands in the shadow of the
- shoreside trees, flitted about for ever by a clan of dwarfish swallows;
- and a line of rails on a high wooden staging bends back into the mouth
- of the valley. Walking on this, the new-landed traveller becomes aware
- of a broad fresh-water lagoon (one arm of which he crosses), and beyond,
- of a grove of noble palms, sheltering the house of the trader, Mr.
- Keane. Overhead, the cocos join in a continuous and lofty roof;
- blackbirds are heard lustily singing; the island cock springs his
- jubilant rattle and airs his golden plumage; cow-bells sound far and
- near in the grove; and when you sit in the broad verandah, lulled by
- this symphony, you may say to yourself, if you are able: "Better fifty
- years of Europe..." Farther on, the floor of the valley is flat and
- green, and dotted here and there with stripling coco-palms. Through the
- midst, with many changes of music, the river trots and brawls; and along
- its course, where we should look for willows, puraos grow in clusters,
- and make shadowy pools after an angler's heart. A vale more rich and
- peaceful, sweeter air, a sweeter voice of rural sounds, I have found
- nowhere. One circumstance alone might strike the experienced: here is a
- convenient beach, deep soil, good water, and yet nowhere any paepaes,
- nowhere any trace of island habitation.
- It is but a few years since this valley was a place choked with jungle,
- the debatable land and battle-ground of cannibals. Two clans laid claim
- to it--neither could substantiate the claim, and the roads lay desert,
- or were only visited by men in arms. It is for this very reason that it
- wears now so smiling an appearance: cleared, planted, built upon,
- supplied with railways, boat-houses, and bath-houses. For, being no
- man's land, it was the more readily ceded to a stranger. The stranger
- was Captain John Hart: Ima Hati, "Broken-arm," the natives call him,
- because when he first visited the islands his arm was in a sling.
- Captain Hart, a man of English birth but an American subject, had
- conceived the idea of cotton culture in the Marquesas during the
- American War, and was at first rewarded with success. His plantation at
- Anaho was highly productive; island cotton fetched a high price, and the
- natives used to debate which was the stronger power, Ima Hati or the
- French: deciding in favour of the captain, because, though the French
- had the most ships, he had the more money.
- He marked Taahauku for a suitable site, acquired it, and offered the
- superintendence to Mr. Robert Stewart, a Fifeshire man, already some
- time in the islands, who had just been ruined by a war on Tauata. Mr.
- Stewart was somewhat averse to the adventure, having some acquaintance
- with Atuona and its notorious chieftain, Moipu. He had once landed
- there, he told me, about dusk, and found the remains of a man and woman
- partly eaten. On his starting and sickening at the sight, one of Moipu's
- young men picked up a human foot, and provocatively staring at the
- stranger, grinned and nibbled at the heel. None need be surprised if Mr.
- Stewart fled incontinently to the bush, lay there all night in a great
- horror of mind, and got off to sea again by daylight on the morrow. "It
- was always a bad place, Atuona," commented Mr. Stewart, in his homely
- Fifeshire voice. In spite of this dire introduction, he accepted the
- captain's offer, was landed at Taahauku with three Chinamen, and
- proceeded to clear the jungle.
- War was pursued at that time, almost without interval, between the men
- of Atuona and the men of Haamau; and one day, from the opposite sides of
- the valley, battle--or I should rather say the noise of battle--raged
- all the afternoon: the shots and insults of the opposing clans passing
- from hill to hill over the heads of Mr. Stewart and his Chinamen. There
- was no genuine fighting; it was like a bicker of schoolboys, only some
- fool had given the children guns. One man died of his exertions in
- running, the only casualty. With night the shots and insults ceased; the
- men of Haamau withdrew, and victory, on some occult principle, was
- scored to Moipu. Perhaps in consequence, there came a day when Moipu
- made a feast, and a party from Haamau came under safe-conduct to eat of
- it. These passed early by Taahauku, and some of Moipu's young men were
- there to be a guard of honour. They were not long gone before there came
- down from Haamau a man, his wife, and a girl of twelve, their daughter,
- bringing fungus. Several Atuona lads were hanging round the store; but
- the day being one of truce none apprehended danger. The fungus was
- weighed and paid for; the man of Haamau proposed he should have his axe
- ground in the bargain; and Mr. Stewart demurring at the trouble, some of
- the Atuona lads offered to grind it for him, and set it on the wheel.
- While the axe was grinding, a friendly native whispered Mr. Stewart to
- have a care of himself, for there was trouble in hand; and, all at once,
- the man of Haamau was seized, and his head and arm stricken from his
- body, the head at one sweep of his own newly sharpened axe. In the first
- alert, the girl escaped among the cotton; and Mr. Stewart, having thrust
- the wife into the house and locked her in from the outside, supposed the
- affair was over. But the business had not passed without noise, and it
- reached the ears of an older girl who had loitered by the way, and who
- now came hastily down the valley, crying as she came for her father.
- Her, too, they seized and beheaded; I know not what they had done with
- the axe, it was a blunt knife that served their butcherly turn upon the
- girl; and the blood spurted in fountains and painted them from head to
- foot. Thus horrible from crime, the party returned to Atuona, carrying
- the heads to Moipu. It may be fancied how the feast broke up; but it is
- notable that the guests were honourably suffered to retire. These passed
- back through Taahauku in extreme disorder; a little after the valley
- began to be overrun with shouting and triumphing braves; and a letter of
- warning coming at the same time to Mr. Stewart, he and his Chinamen took
- refuge with the Protestant missionary in Atuona. That night the store
- was gutted, and the bodies cast in a pit and covered with leaves. Three
- days later the schooner had come in; and things appearing quieter, Mr.
- Stewart and the captain landed in Taahauku to compute the damage and to
- view the grave, which was already indicated by the stench. While they
- were so employed, a party of Moipu's young men, decked with red flannel
- to indicate martial sentiments, came over the hills from Atuona, dug up
- the bodies, washed them in the river, and carried them away on sticks.
- That night the feast began.
- Those who knew Mr. Stewart before this experience declare the man to be
- quite altered. He stuck, however, to his post; and somewhat later, when
- the plantation was already well established, and gave employment to
- sixty Chinamen and seventy natives, he found himself once more in
- dangerous times. The men of Haamau, it was reported, had sworn to
- plunder and erase the settlement; letters came continually from the
- Hawaiian missionary, who acted as intelligence department; and for six
- weeks Mr. Stewart and three other whites slept in the cotton-house at
- night in a rampart of bales, and (what was their best defence)
- ostentatiously practised rifle-shooting by day upon the beach. Natives
- were often there to watch them; the practice was excellent; and the
- assault was never delivered--if it ever was intended, which I doubt, for
- the natives are more famous for false rumours than for deeds of energy.
- I was told the late French war was a case in point; the tribes on the
- beach accusing those in the mountains of designs which they had never
- the hardihood to entertain. And the same testimony to their backwardness
- in open battle reached me from all sides. Captain Hart once landed after
- an engagement in a certain bay; one man had his hand hurt, an old woman
- and two children had been slain; and the captain improved the occasion
- by poulticing the hand, and taunting both sides upon so wretched an
- affair. It is true these wars were often merely formal--comparable with
- duels to the first blood. Captain Hart visited a bay where such a war
- was being carried on between two brothers, one of whom had been thought
- wanting in civility to the guests of the other. About one-half of the
- population served day about upon alternate sides, so as to be well with
- each when the inevitable peace should follow. The forts of the
- belligerents were over against each other, and close by. Pigs were
- cooking. Well-oiled braves, with well-oiled muskets, strutted on the
- paepae or sat down to feast. No business, however needful, could be
- done, and all thoughts were supposed to be centred in this mockery of
- war. A few days later, by a regrettable accident, a man was killed; it
- was felt at once the thing had gone too far, and the quarrel was
- instantly patched up. But the more serious wars were prosecuted in a
- similar spirit; a gift of pigs and a feast made their inevitable end;
- the killing of a single man was a great victory, and the murder of
- defenceless solitaries counted a heroic deed.
- The foot of the cliffs about all these islands is the place of fishing.
- Between Taahauku and Atuona we saw men, but chiefly women, some nearly
- naked, some in thin white or crimson dresses, perched in little
- surf-beat promontories--the brown precipice overhanging them, and the
- convolvulus overhanging that, as if to cut them off the more completely
- from assistance. There they would angle much of the morning; and as fast
- as they caught any fish, eat them, raw and living, where they stood. It
- was such helpless ones that the warriors from the opposite island of
- Tauata slew, and carried home and ate, and were thereupon accounted
- mighty men of valour. Of one such exploit I can give the account of an
- eye-witness. "Portuguese Joe," Mr. Keane's cook, was once pulling an oar
- in an Atuona boat, when they spied a stranger in a canoe with some fish
- and a piece of tapu. The Atuona men cried upon him to draw near and have
- a smoke. He complied, because, I suppose, he had no choice; but he knew,
- poor devil, what he was coming to, and (as Joe said) "he didn't seem to
- care about the smoke." A few questions followed, as to where he came
- from, and what was his business. These he must needs answer, as he must
- needs draw at the unwelcome pipe, his heart the while drying in his
- bosom. And then, of a sudden, a big fellow in Joe's boat leaned over,
- plucked the stranger from his canoe, struck him with a knife in the
- neck--inward and downward, as Joe showed in pantomime more expressive
- than his words--and held him under water, like a fowl, until his
- struggles ceased. Whereupon the long-pig was hauled on board, the boat's
- head turned about for Atuona, and these Marquesan braves pulled home
- rejoicing. Moipu was on the beach and rejoiced with them on their
- arrival. Poor Joe toiled at his oar that day with a white face, yet he
- had no fear for himself. "They were very good to me--gave me plenty
- grub: never wished to eat white man," said he.
- If the most horrible experience was Mr. Stewart's, it was Captain Hart
- himself who ran the nearest danger. He had bought a piece of land from
- Timau, chief of a neighbouring bay, and put some Chinese there to work.
- Visiting the station with one of the Godeffroys, he found his Chinamen
- trooping to the beach in terror; Timau had driven them out, seized their
- effects, and was in war attire with his young men. A boat was despatched
- to Taahauku for reinforcement; as they awaited her return, they could
- see, from the deck of the schooner, Timau and his young men dancing the
- war-dance on the hill-top till past twelve at night; and so soon as the
- boat came (bringing three gendarmes, armed with chassepots, two white
- men from Taahauku station, and some native warriors) the party set out
- to seize the chief before he should awake. Day was not come, and it was
- a very bright moonlight morning, when they reached the hill-top where
- (in a house of palm-leaves) Timau was sleeping off his debauch. The
- assailants were fully exposed, the interior of the hut quite dark; the
- position far from sound. The gendarmes knelt with their pieces ready,
- and Captain Hart advanced alone. As he drew near the door he heard the
- snap of a gun cocking from within, and in sheer self-defence--there
- being no other escape--sprang into the house and grappled Timau. "Timau,
- come with me!" he cried. But Timau--a great fellow, his eyes blood-red
- with the abuse of kava, six foot three in stature--cast him on one side;
- and the captain, instantly expecting to be either shot or brained,
- discharged his pistol in the dark. When they carried Timau out at the
- door into the moonlight, he was already dead, and, upon this
- unlooked-for termination of their sally, the whites appeared to have
- lost all conduct, and retreated to the boats, fired upon by the natives
- as they went. Captain Hart, who almost rivals Bishop Dordillon in
- popularity, shared with him the policy of extreme indulgence to the
- natives, regarding them as children, making light of their defects, and
- constantly in favour of mild measures. The death of Timau has thus
- somewhat weighed upon his mind; the more so, as the chieftain's musket
- was found in the house unloaded. To a less delicate conscience the
- matter will seem light. If a drunken savage elects to cock a fire-arm, a
- gentleman advancing towards him in the open cannot wait to make sure if
- it be charged.
- I have touched on the captain's popularity. It is one of the things that
- most strikes a stranger in the Marquesas. He comes instantly on two
- names, both new to him, both locally famous, both mentioned by all with
- affection and respect--the bishop's and the captain's. It gave me a
- strong desire to meet with the survivor, which was subsequently
- gratified--to the enrichment of these pages. Long after that again, in
- the Place Dolorous--Molokai--I came once more on the traces of that
- affectionate popularity. There was a blind white leper there, an old
- sailor--an "old tough," he called himself--who had long sailed among the
- eastern islands. Him I used to visit, and, being fresh from the scenes
- of his activity, gave him the news. This (in the true island style) was
- largely a chronicle of wrecks; and it chanced I mentioned the case of
- one not very successful captain, and how he had lost a vessel for Mr.
- Hart; thereupon the blind leper broke forth in lamentation. "Did he lose
- a ship of John Hart's?" he cried; "poor John Hart! Well, I'm sorry it
- was Hart's," with needless force of epithet, which I neglect to
- reproduce.
- Perhaps, if Captain Hart's affairs had continued to prosper, his
- popularity might have been different. Success wins glory, but it kills
- affection, which misfortune fosters. And the misfortune which overtook
- the captain's enterprise was truly singular. He was at the top of his
- career. Ile Masse belonged to him, given by the French as an indemnity
- for the robberies at Taahauku. But the Ile Masse was only suitable for
- cattle; and his two chief stations were Anaho, in Nuka-hiva, facing the
- north-east, and Taahauku in Hiva-oa, some hundred miles to the
- southward, and facing the south-west. Both these were on the same day
- swept by a tidal wave, which was not felt in any other bay or island of
- the group. The south coast of Hiva-oa was bestrewn with building timber
- and camphor-wood chests, containing goods; which, on the promise of a
- reasonable salvage, the natives very honestly brought back, the chests
- apparently not opened, and some of the wood after it had been built into
- their houses. But the recovery of jetsam could not affect the result. It
- was impossible the captain should withstand this partiality of fortune;
- and with his fall the prosperity of the Marquesas ended. Anaho is truly
- extinct, Taahauku but a shadow of itself; nor has any new plantation
- arisen in their stead.
- CHAPTER XIII
- CHARACTERS
- There was a certain traffic in our anchorage at Atuona; different indeed
- from the dead inertia and quiescence of the sister-island, Nuka-hiva.
- Sails were seen steering from its mouth; now it would be a whale-boat
- manned with native rowdies, and heavy with copra for sale; now perhaps a
- single canoe come after commodities to buy. The anchorage was besides
- frequented by fishers; not only the lone females perched in niches of
- the cliff, but whole parties, who would sometimes camp and build a fire
- upon the beach, and sometimes lie in their canoes in the midst of the
- haven and jump by turns in the water; which they would cast eight or
- nine feet high, to drive, as we supposed, the fish into their nets. The
- goods the purchasers came to buy were sometimes quaint. I remarked one
- outrigger returning with a single ham swung from a pole in the stern.
- And one day there came into Mr. Keane's store a charming lad,
- excellently mannered, speaking French correctly though with a babyish
- accent; very handsome too, and much of a dandy, as was shown not only in
- his shining raiment, but by the nature of his purchases. These were five
- ship-biscuits, a bottle of scent, and two balls of washing blue. He was
- from Tauata, whither he returned the same night in an outrigger, daring
- the deep with these young-ladyish treasures. The gross of the native
- passengers were more ill-favoured: tall, powerful fellows, well
- tattooed, and with disquieting manners. Something coarse and jeering
- distinguished them, and I was often reminded of the slums of some great
- city. One night, as dusk was falling, a whale-boat put in on that part
- of the beach where I chanced to be alone. Six or seven ruffianly fellows
- scrambled out; all had enough English to give me "good-bye," which was
- the ordinary salutation; or "good-morning," which they seemed to regard
- as an intensitive; jests followed, they surrounded me with harsh
- laughter and rude looks, and I was glad to move away. I had not yet
- encountered Mr. Stewart, or I should have been reminded of his first
- landing at Atuona and the humorist who nibbled at the heel. But their
- neighbourhood depressed me; and I felt, if I had been there a castaway
- and out of reach of help, my heart would have been sick.
- Nor was the traffic altogether native. While we lay in the anchorage
- there befell a strange coincidence. A schooner was observed at sea and
- aiming to enter. We knew all the schooners in the group, but this
- appeared larger than any; she was rigged, besides, after the English
- manner; and, coming to an anchor some way outside the _Casco_, showed at
- last the blue ensign. There were at that time, according to rumour, no
- fewer than four yachts in the Pacific; but it was strange that any two
- of them should thus lie side by side in that outlandish inlet: stranger
- still that in the owner of the _Nyanza_, Captain Dewar, I should find a
- man of the same country and the same county with myself, and one whom I
- had seen walking as a boy on the shores of the Alpes Maritimes.
- We had besides a white visitor from shore who came and departed in a
- crowded whale-boat manned by natives; having read of yachts in the
- Sunday papers, and being fired with the desire to see one. Captain
- Chase, as they called him, an old whaler-man, thickset and
- white-bearded, with a strong Indiana drawl; years old in the country, a
- good backer in battle, and one of those dead shots whose practice at the
- target struck terror in the braves of Haamau. Captain Chase dwelt
- farther east in a bay called Hanamate, with a Mr. M'Callum; or rather
- they had dwelt together once, and were now amicably separated. The
- captain is to be found near one end of the bay, in a wreck of a house,
- and waited on by a Chinese. At the point of the opposing corner another
- habitation stands on a tall paepae. The surf runs there exceeding heavy,
- seas of seven and eight feet high bursting under the walls of the house,
- which is thus continually filled with their clamour, and rendered fit
- only for solitary, or at least for silent, inmates. Here it is that Mr.
- M'Callum, with a Shakespeare and a Burns, enjoys the society of the
- breakers. His name and his Burns testify to Scottish blood; but he is an
- American born, somewhere far east; followed the trade of a
- ship-carpenter; and was long employed, the captain of a hundred Indians,
- breaking up wrecks about Cape Flattery. Many of the whites who are to be
- found scattered in the South Seas represent the more artistic portion of
- their class; and not only enjoy the poetry of that new life, but came
- there on purpose to enjoy it. I have been shipmates with a man, no
- longer young, who sailed upon that voyage, his first time to sea, for
- the mere love of Samoa; and it was a few letters in a newspaper that
- sent him on that pilgrimage. Mr. M'Callum was another instance of the
- same. He had read of the South Seas; loved to read of them; and let
- their image fasten in his heart; till at length he could refrain no
- longer--must set forth, a new Rudel, for that unseen homeland--and has
- now dwelt for years in Hiva-oa, and will lay his bones there in the end
- with full content; having no desire to behold again the places of his
- boyhood, only, perhaps--once, before he dies--the rude and wintry
- landscape of Cape Flattery. Yet he is an active man, full of schemes;
- has bought land of the natives; has planted five thousand coco-palms;
- has a desert island in his eye, which he desires to lease, and a
- schooner in the stocks, which he has laid and built himself, and even
- hopes to finish. Mr. M'Callum and I did not meet, but, like gallant
- troubadours, corresponded in verse. I hope he will not consider it a
- breach of copyright if I give here a specimen of his muse. He and
- Bishop Dordillon are the two European bards of the Marquesas.
- "Sail, ho! Ahoy! _Casco_,
- First among the pleasure fleet
- That came around to greet
- These isles from San Francisco.
- And first, too; only one
- Among the literary men
- That this way has ever been--
- Welcome, then, to Stevenson.
- Please not offended be
- At this little notice
- Of the _Casco_, Captain Otis
- With the novelist's family.
- _Avoir une voyage magnifical_
- Is our wish sincere,
- That you'll have from here
- _Allant sur la Grande Pacifical_."
- But our chief visitor was one Mapiao, a great Tahuku--which seems to
- mean priest, wizard, tattooer, practiser of any art, or, in a word,
- esoteric person--and a man famed for his eloquence on public occasions
- and witty talk in private. His first appearance was typical of the man.
- He came down clamorous to the eastern landing, where the surf was
- running very high; scorned all our signals to go round the bay; carried
- his point, was brought aboard at some hazard to our skiff, and set down
- in one corner of the cockpit to his appointed task. He had been hired,
- as one cunning in the art, to make my old men's beards into a wreath:
- what a wreath for Celia's arbour! His own beard (which he carried, for
- greater safety, in a sailor's knot) was not merely the adornment of his
- age, but a substantial piece of property. One hundred dollars was the
- estimated value; and as Brother Michel never knew a native to deposit a
- greater sum with Bishop Dordillon, our friend was a rich man in virtue
- of his chin. He had something of an East Indian cast, but taller and
- stronger; his nose hooked, his face narrow, his forehead very high, the
- whole elaborately tattooed. I may say I have never entertained a guest
- so trying. In the least particular he must be waited on; he would not go
- to the scuttle-butt for water; it must be given him in his hand; if aid
- were denied him, he would fold his arms, bow his head, and go without;
- only the work would suffer. Early the first forenoon he called aloud for
- biscuit and salmon; biscuit and ham were brought; he looked on them
- inscrutably, and signed they should be set aside. A number of
- considerations crowded on my mind; how the sort of work on which he was
- engaged was probably tapu in a higher degree; should by rights, perhaps,
- be transacted on a tapu platform which no female might approach; and it
- was possible that fish might be the essential diet. Some salted fish I
- therefore brought him, and along with that a glass of rum: at sight of
- which Mapiao displayed extraordinary animation, pointed to the zenith,
- made a long speech in which I picked up _umati_--the word for the
- sun--and signed to me once more to place these dainties out of reach. At
- last I had understood, and every day the programme was the same. At an
- early period of the morning his dinner must be set forth on the roof of
- the house and at a proper distance, full in view but just out of reach;
- and not until the fit hour, which was the point of noon, would the
- artificer partake. This solemnity was the cause of an absurd
- misadventure. He was seated plaiting, as usual, at the beards, his
- dinner arrayed on the roof, and not far off a glass of water standing.
- It appears he desired to drink; was of course far too great a gentleman
- to rise and get the water for himself; and spying Mrs. Stevenson,
- imperiously signed to her to hand it. The signal was misunderstood; Mrs.
- Stevenson was, by this time, prepared for any eccentricity on the part
- of our guest; and instead of passing him the water, flung his dinner
- overboard. I must do Mapiao justice: all laughed, but his laughter rang
- the loudest.
- These troubles of service were at worst occasional; the embarrassment of
- the man's talk incessant. He was plainly a practised conversationalist;
- the nicety of his inflections, the elegance of his gestures, and the
- fine play of his expression, told us that. We, meanwhile, sat like
- aliens in a playhouse; we could see the actors were upon some material
- business and performing well, but the plot of the drama remained
- undiscoverable. Names of places, the name of Captain Hart, occasional
- disconnected words, tantalised without enlightening us; and the less we
- understood, the more gallantly, the more copiously, and with still the
- more explanatory gestures, Mapiao returned to the assault. We could see
- his vanity was on the rack; being come to a place where that fine jewel
- of his conversational talent could earn him no respect; and he had times
- of despair when he desisted from the endeavour, and instants of
- irritation when he regarded us with unconcealed contempt. Yet for me, as
- the practitioner of some kindred mystery to his own, he manifested to
- the last a measure of respect. As we sat under the awning in opposite
- corners of the cockpit, he braiding hairs from dead men's chins, I
- forming runes upon a sheet of folio paper, he would nod across to me as
- one Tahuku to another, or, crossing the cockpit, study for a while my
- shapeless scrawl and encourage me with a heartfelt "_mitai_!--good!" So
- might a deaf painter sympathise far off with a musician, as the slave
- and master of some uncomprehended and yet kindred art. A silly trade he
- doubtless considered it; but a man must make an allowance for
- barbarians, _chaque pays a ses coutumes_--and he felt the principle was
- there.
- The time came at last when his labours, which resembled those rather of
- Penelope than Hercules, could be no more spun out, and nothing remained
- but to pay him and say farewell. After a long, learned argument in
- Marquesan, I gathered that his mind was set on fish-hooks; with three of
- which, and a brace of dollars, I thought he was not ill rewarded for
- passing his forenoons in our cockpit, eating, drinking, delivering his
- opinions, and pressing the ship's company into his menial service. For
- all that, he was a man of so high a bearing and so like an uncle of my
- own who should have gone mad and got tattooed, that I applied to him,
- when we were both on shore, to know if he were satisfied. "_Mitai
- ehipe?_" I asked. And he, with rich unction, offering at the same time
- his hand--"_Mitai ehipe, mitai kaekae; kaoha nui!_"--or, to translate
- freely: "The ship is good, the victuals are up to the mark, and we part
- in friendship." Which testimonial uttered, he set off along the beach
- with his head bowed and the air of one deeply injured.
- I saw him go, on my side, with relief. It would be more interesting to
- learn how our relation seemed to Mapiao. His exigence, we may suppose,
- was merely loyal. He had been hired by the ignorant to do a piece of
- work; and he was bound that he would do it the right way. Countless
- obstacles, continual ignorant ridicule, availed not to dissuade him. He
- had his dinner laid out; watched it, as was fit, the while he worked;
- ate it at the fit hour; was in all things served and waited on; and
- could take his hire in the end with a clear conscience, telling himself
- the mystery was performed duly, the beards rightfully braided, and we
- (in spite of ourselves) correctly served. His view of our stupidity,
- even he, the mighty talker, must have lacked language to express. He
- never interfered with my Tahuku work; civilly praised it, idle as it
- seemed; civilly supposed that I was competent in my own mystery: such
- being the attitude of the intelligent and the polite. And we, on the
- other hand--who had yet the most to gain or lose, since the product was
- to be ours--who had professed our disability by the very act of hiring
- him to do it--were never weary of impeding his own more important
- labours, and sometimes lacked the sense and the civility to refrain from
- laughter.
- CHAPTER XIV
- IN A CANNIBAL VALLEY
- The road from Taahauku to Atuona skirted the north-westerly side of the
- anchorage, somewhat high up, edged, and sometimes shaded, by the
- splendid flowers of the _flamboyant_--its English name I do not know. At
- the turn of the land, Atuona came in view: a long beach, a heavy and
- loud breach of surf, a shore-side village scattered among trees, and the
- guttered mountains drawing near on both sides above a narrow and rich
- ravine. Its infamous repute perhaps affected me; but I thought it the
- loveliest, and by far the most ominous and gloomy, spot on earth.
- Beautiful it surely was; and even more salubrious. The healthfulness of
- the whole group is amazing; that of Atuona almost in the nature of a
- miracle. In Atuona, a village planted in a shore-side marsh, the houses
- standing everywhere intermingled with the pools of a taro-garden, we
- find every condition of tropical danger and discomfort; and yet there
- are not even mosquitoes--not even the hateful day-fly of Nuka-hiva--and
- fever, and its concomitant, the island fe'efe'e,[4] are unknown.
- This is the chief station of the French on the man-eating isle of
- Hiva-oa. The sergeant of gendarmerie enjoys the style of the
- vice-resident, and hoists the French colours over a quite extensive
- compound. A Chinaman, a waif from the plantation, keeps a restaurant in
- the rear quarters of the village; and the mission is well represented by
- the sisters' school and Brother Michel's church. Father Orens, a
- wonderful octogenarian, his frame scarce bowed, the fire of his eye
- undimmed, has lived, and trembled, and suffered in this place since
- 1843. Again and again, when Moipu had made coco-brandy, he has been
- driven from his house into the woods. "A mouse that dwelt in a cat's
- ear" had a more easy resting-place; and yet I have never seen a man that
- bore less mark of years. He must show us the church, still decorated
- with the bishop's artless ornaments of paper--the last work of
- industrious old hands, and the last earthly amusement of a man that was
- much of a hero. In the sacristy we must see his sacred vessels, and, in
- particular, a vestment which was a "_vraie curiosité_," because it had
- been given by a gendarme. To the Protestant there is always something
- embarrassing in the eagerness with which grown and holy men regard these
- trifles; but it was touching and pretty to see Orens, his aged eyes
- shining in his head, display his sacred treasures.
- _August 26._--The vale behind the village, narrowing swiftly to a mere
- ravine, was choked with profitable trees. A river gushed in the midst.
- Overhead, the tall coco-palms made a primary covering; above that, from
- one wall of the mountain to another, the ravine was roofed with cloud;
- so that we moved below, amid teeming vegetation, in a covered house of
- heat. On either hand, at every hundred yards, instead of the houseless,
- disembowelling paepaes of Nuka-hiva, populous houses turned out their
- inhabitants to cry "Kaoha!" to the passers-by. The road, too, was busy:
- strings of girls, fair and foul, as in less favoured countries; men
- bearing breadfruit; the sisters, with a little guard of pupils; a fellow
- bestriding a horse--passed and greeted us continually; and now it was a
- Chinaman who came to the gate of his flower-yard, and gave us "Good-day"
- in excellent English; and a little farther on it would be some natives
- who set us down by the wayside, made us a feast of mummy-apple, and
- entertained us as we ate with drumming on a tin case. With all this fine
- plenty of men and fruit, death is at work here also. The population,
- according to the highest estimate, does not exceed six hundred in the
- whole vale of Atuona; and yet, when I once chanced to put the question,
- Brother Michel counted up ten whom he knew to be sick beyond recovery.
- It was here, too, that I could at last gratify my curiosity with the
- sight of a native house in the very article of dissolution. It had
- fallen flat along the paepae, its poles sprawling ungainly; the rains
- and the mites contended against it; what remained seemed sound enough,
- but much was gone already; and it was easy to see how the insects
- consumed the walls as if they had been bread, and the air and the rain
- ate into them like vitriol.
- A little ahead of us, a young gentleman, very well tattooed, and dressed
- in a pair of white trousers and a flannel shirt, had been marching
- unconcernedly. Of a sudden, without apparent cause, he turned back, took
- us in possession and led us undissuadably along a by-path to the river's
- edge. There, in a nook of the most attractive amenity, he bade us to sit
- down: the stream splashing at our elbow, a shock of nondescript greenery
- enshrining us from above; and thither, after a brief absence, he brought
- us a cocoa-nut, a lump of sandal-wood, and a stick he had begun to
- carve: the nut for present refreshment, the sandal-wood for a precious
- gift, and the stick--in the simplicity of his vanity--to harvest
- premature praise. Only one section was yet carved, although the whole
- was pencil-marked in lengths; and when I proposed to buy it, Poni (for
- that was the artist's name) recoiled in horror. But I was not to be
- moved, and simply refused restitution, for I had long wondered why a
- people who displayed, in their tattooing, so great a gift of arabesque
- invention, should display it nowhere else. Here, at last, I had found
- something of the same talent in another medium; and I held the
- incompleteness, in these days of world-wide brummagem, for a happy mark
- of authenticity. Neither my reasons nor my purpose had I the means of
- making clear to Poni; I could only hold on to the stick, and bid the
- artist follow me to the gendarmerie, where I should find interpreters
- and money; but we gave him, in the meanwhile, a boat-call in return for
- his sandal-wood. As he came behind us down the vale he sounded upon this
- continually. And continually, from the wayside houses, there poured
- forth little groups of girls in crimson, or of men in white. And to
- these must Poni pass the news of who the strangers were, of what they
- had been doing, of why it was that Poni had a boat-whistle; and of why
- he was now being haled to the vice-residency, uncertain whether to be
- punished or rewarded, uncertain whether he had lost a stick or made a
- bargain, but hopeful on the whole, and in the meanwhile highly consoled
- by the boat-whistle. Whereupon he would tear himself away from this
- particular group of inquirers, and once more we would hear the shrill
- call in our wake.
- _August 27._--I made a more extended circuit in the vale with Brother
- Michel. We were mounted on a pair of sober nags, suitable to these rude
- paths; the weather was exquisite, and the company in which I found
- myself no less agreeable than the scenes through which I passed. We
- mounted at first by a steep grade along the summit of one of those
- twisted spurs that, from a distance, mark out provinces of sun and shade
- upon the mountain-side. The ground fell away on either hand with an
- extreme declivity. From either hand, out of profound ravines, mounted
- the song of falling water and the smoke of household fires. Here and
- there the hills of foliage would divide, and our eye would plunge down
- upon one of these deep-nested habitations. And still, high in front,
- arose the precipitous barrier of the mountain, greened over where it
- seemed that scarce a harebell could find root, barred with the zigzags
- of a human road where it seemed that not a goat could scramble. And in
- truth, for all the labour that it cost, the road is regarded even by the
- Marquesans as impassable; they will not risk a horse on that, ascent;
- and those who lie to the westward come and go in their canoes. I never
- knew a hill to lose so little on a near approach: a consequence, I must
- suppose, of its surprising steepness. When we turned about, I was amazed
- to behold so deep a view behind, and so high a shoulder of blue sea,
- crowned by the whale-like island of Motane. And yet the wall of mountain
- had not visibly dwindled, and I could even have fancied, as I raised my
- eyes to measure it, that it loomed higher than before.
- We struck now into covert paths, crossed and heard more near at hand the
- bickering of the streams, and tasted the coolness of those recesses
- where the houses stood. The birds sang about us as we descended. All
- along our path my guide was being hailed by voices: "Mikaël--Kaoha,
- Mikaël!" From the doorstep, from the cotton-patch, or out of the deep
- grove of island-chestnuts, these friendly cries arose, and were cheerily
- answered as we passed. In a sharp angle of a glen, on a rushing brook
- and under fathoms of cool foliage, we struck a house upon a well-built
- paepae, the fire brightly burning under the popoi-shed against the
- evening meal; and here the cries became a chorus, and the house folk,
- running out, obliged us to dismount and breathe. It seemed a numerous
- family: we saw eight at least; and one of these honoured me with a
- particular attention. This was the mother, a woman naked to the waist,
- of an aged countenance, but with hair still copious and black, and
- breasts still erect and youthful. On our arrival I could see she
- remarked me, but, instead of offering any greeting, disappeared at once
- into the bush. Thence she returned with two crimson flowers. "Good-bye!"
- was her salutation, uttered not without coquetry; and as she said it she
- pressed the flowers into my hand--"Good-bye! I speak Inglis." It was
- from a whaler-man, who (she informed me) was "a plenty good chap," that
- she had learned my language; and I could not but think how handsome she
- must have been in these times of her youth, and could not but guess that
- some memories of the dandy whaler-man prompted her attentions to myself.
- Nor could I refrain from wondering what had befallen her lover; in the
- rain and mire of what sea-ports he had tramped since then; in what close
- and garish drinking-dens had found his pleasure; and in the ward of what
- infirmary dreamed his last of the Marquesas. But she, the more
- fortunate, lived on in her green island. The talk, in this lost house
- upon the mountains, ran chiefly upon Mapiao and his visits to the
- _Casco_: the news of which had probably gone abroad by then to all the
- island, so that there was no paepae in Hiva-oa where they did not make
- the subject of excited comment.
- Not much beyond we came upon a high place in the foot of the ravine. Two
- roads divided it, and met in the midst. Save for this intersection the
- amphitheatre was strangely perfect, and had a certain ruder air of
- things Roman. Depths of foliage and the bulk of the mountain kept it in
- a grateful shadow. On the benches several young folk sat clustered or
- apart. One of these, a girl perhaps fourteen years of age, buxom and
- comely, caught the eye of Brother Michel. Why was she not at
- school?--she was done with school now. What was she doing here?--she
- lived here now. Why so?--no answer but a deepening blush. There was no
- severity in Brother Michel's manner; the girl's own confusion told her
- story. "_Elle a honte_," was the missionary's comment, as we rode away.
- Near by in the stream, a grown girl was bathing naked in a goyle between
- two stepping-stones; and it amused me to see with what alacrity and real
- alarm she bounded on her many-coloured under-clothes. Even in these
- daughters of cannibals shame was eloquent.
- It is in Hiva-oa, owing to the inveterate cannibalism of the natives,
- that local beliefs have been most rudely trodden underfoot. It was here
- that three religious chiefs were set under a bridge, and the women of
- the valley made to defile over their heads upon the roadway: the poor,
- dishonoured fellows sitting there (all observers agree) with streaming
- tears. Not only was one road driven across the high place, but two roads
- intersected in its midst. There is no reason to suppose that the last
- was done of purpose, and perhaps it was impossible entirely to avoid the
- numerous sacred places of the islands. But these things are not done
- without result. I have spoken already of the regard of Marquesans for
- the dead, making (as it does) so strange a contrast with their unconcern
- for death. Early on this day's ride, for instance, we encountered a
- petty chief, who inquired (of course) where we were going, and suggested
- by way of amendment: "Why do you not rather show him the cemetery?" I
- saw it; it was but newly opened, the third within eight years. They are
- great builders here in Hiva-oa; I saw in my ride paepaes that no
- European dry-stone mason could have equalled, the black volcanic stones
- were laid so justly, the corners were so precise, the levels so true;
- but the retaining-wall of the new graveyard stood apart, and seemed to
- be a work of love. The sentiment of honour for the dead is therefore not
- extinct. And yet observe the consequence of violently countering men's
- opinions. Of the four prisoners in Atuona gaol, three were of course
- thieves; the fourth was there for sacrilege. He had levelled up a piece
- of the graveyard--to give a feast upon, as he informed the court--and
- declared he had no thought of doing wrong. Why should he? He had been
- forced at the point of the bayonet to destroy the sacred places of his
- own piety; when he had recoiled from the task, he had been jeered at for
- a superstitious fool. And now it is supposed he will respect our
- European superstitions as by second nature.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [4] Elephantiasis.
- CHAPTER XV
- THE TWO CHIEFS OF ATUONA
- It had chanced (as the _Casco_ beat through the Bordelais Straits for
- Taahauku) she approached on one board very near the land in the opposite
- isle of Tauata, where houses were to be seen in a grove of tall
- coco-palms. Brother Michel pointed out the spot. "I am at home now,"
- said he. "I believe I have a large share in these cocoa-nuts; and in
- that house madame my mother lives with her two husbands!" "With two
- husbands?" somebody inquired. "_C'est ma honte_," replied the brother
- drily.
- A word in passing on the two husbands. I conceive the brother to have
- expressed himself loosely. It seems common enough to find a native lady
- with two consorts; but these are not two husbands. The first is still
- the husband; the wife continues to be referred to by his name; and the
- position of the coadjutor, or _pikio_, although quite regular, appears
- undoubtedly subordinate. We had opportunities to observe one household
- of the sort. The _pikio_ was recognised; appeared openly along with the
- husband when the lady was thought to be insulted, and the pair made
- common cause like brothers. At home the inequality was more apparent.
- The husband sat to receive and entertain visitors; the _pikio_ was
- running the while to fetch cocoa-nuts like a hired servant, and I
- remarked he was sent on these errands in preference even to the son.
- Plainly we have here no second husband; plainly we have the tolerated
- lover. Only, in the Marquesas, instead of carrying his lady's fan and
- mantle, he must turn his hand to do the husband's housework.
- The sight of Brother Michel's family estate led the conversation for
- some while upon the method and consequence of artificial kinship. Our
- curiosity became extremely whetted; the brother offered to have the
- whole of us adopted, and some two days later we became accordingly the
- children of Paaaeua, appointed chief of Atuona. I was unable to be
- present at the ceremony, which was primitively simple. The two Mrs.
- Stevensons and Mr. Osbourne, along with Paaaeua, his wife, and an
- adopted child of theirs, son of a shipwrecked Austrian, sat down to an
- excellent island meal, of which the principal and the only necessary
- dish was pig. A concourse watched them through the apertures of the
- house; but none, not even Brother Michel, might partake; for the meal
- was sacramental, and either creative or declaratory of the new
- relationship. In Tahiti things are not so strictly ordered; when Ori and
- I "made brothers," both our families sat with us at table, yet only he
- and I, who had eaten with intention, were supposed to be affected by the
- ceremony. For the adoption of an infant I believe no formality to be
- required; the child is handed over by the natural parents, and grows up
- to inherit the estates of the adoptive. Presents are doubtless
- exchanged, as at all junctures of island life, social or international;
- but I never heard of any banquet--the child's presence at the daily
- board perhaps sufficing. We may find the rationale in the ancient
- Arabian idea that a common diet makes a common blood, with its
- derivative axiom that "he is the father who gives the child its morning
- draught." In the Marquesan practice, the sense would thus be evanescent;
- from the Tahitian, a mere survival, it will have entirely fled. An
- interesting parallel will probably occur to many of my readers.
- What is the nature of the obligation assumed at such a festival? It will
- vary with the characters of those engaged, and with the circumstances of
- the case. Thus it would be absurd to take too seriously our adoption at
- Atuona. On the part of Paaaeua it was an affair of social ambition;
- when he agreed to receive us in his family the man had not so much as
- seen us, and knew only that we were inestimably rich and travelled in a
- floating palace. We, upon our side, ate of his baked meats with no true
- _animus affiliandi_, but moved by the single sentiment of curiosity. The
- affair was formal, and a matter of parade, as when in Europe sovereigns
- call each other cousin. Yet, had we stayed at Atuona, Paaaeua would have
- held himself bound to establish us upon his land, and to set apart young
- men for our service, and trees for our support. I have mentioned the
- Austrian. He sailed in one of two sister ships, which left the Clyde in
- coal; both rounded the Horn, and both, at several hundred miles of
- distance, though close on the same point of time, took fire at sea on
- the Pacific. One was destroyed; the derelict iron frame of the second,
- after long, aimless cruising, was at length recovered, refitted, and
- hails to-day from San Francisco. A boat's crew from one of these
- disasters reached, after great hardships, the isle of Hiva-oa. Some of
- these men vowed they would never again confront the chances of the sea;
- but alone of them all the Austrian has been exactly true to his
- engagement, remains where he landed, and designs to die where he has
- lived. Now, with such a man, falling and taking root among islanders,
- the processes described may be compared to a gardener's graft. He passes
- bodily into the native stock; ceases wholly to be alien; has entered the
- commune of the blood, shares the prosperity and consideration of his new
- family, and is expected to impart with the same generosity the fruits of
- his European skill and knowledge. It is this implied engagement that so
- frequently offends the ingrafted white. To snatch an immediate
- advantage--to get (let us say) a station for his store--he will play
- upon the native custom and become a son or a brother for the day,
- promising himself to cast down the ladder by which he shall have
- ascended, and repudiate the kinship so soon as it shall grow burdensome.
- And he finds there are two parties to the bargain. Perhaps his
- Polynesian relative is simple, and conceived the blood-bond literally;
- perhaps he is shrewd, and himself entered the covenant with a view to
- gain. And either way the store is ravaged, the house littered with lazy
- natives; and the richer the man grows, the more numerous, the more idle,
- and the more affectionate he finds his native relatives. Most men thus
- circumstanced contrive to buy or brutally manage to enforce their
- independence; but many vegetate without hope, strangled by parasites.
- We had no cause to blush with Brother Michel. Our new parents were kind,
- gentle, well-mannered, and generous in gifts; the wife was a most
- motherly woman, the husband a man who stood justly high with his
- employers. Enough has been said to show why Moipu should be deposed; and
- in Paaaeua the French had found a reputable substitute. He went always
- scrupulously dressed, and looked the picture of propriety, like a dark,
- handsome, stupid, and probably religious young man hot from a European
- funeral. In character he seemed the ideal of what is known as the good
- citizen. He wore gravity like an ornament. None could more nicely
- represent the desired character as an appointed chief, the outpost of
- civilisation and reform. And yet, were the French to go and native
- manners to revive, fancy beholds him crowned with old men's beards and
- crowding with the first to a man-eating festival. But I must not seem to
- be unjust to Paaaeua. His respectability went deeper than the skin; his
- sense of the becoming sometimes nerved him for unexpected rigours.
- One evening Captain Otis and Mr. Osbourne were on shore in the village.
- All was agog; dancing had begun; it was plain it was to be a night of
- festival, and our adventurers were overjoyed at their good fortune. A
- strong fall of rain drove them for shelter to the house of Paaaeua,
- where they were made welcome, wiled into a chamber, and shut in.
- Presently the rain took off, the fun was to begin in earnest, and the
- young bloods of Atuona came round the house and called to my
- fellow-travellers through the interstices of the wall. Late into the
- night the calls were continued and resumed, and sometimes mingled with
- taunts; late into the night the prisoners, tantalised by the noises of
- the festival, renewed their efforts to escape. But all was vain; right
- across the door lay that god-fearing householder, Paaaeua, feigning
- sleep; and my friends had to forego their junketing. In this incident,
- so delightfully European, we thought we could detect three strands of
- sentiment. In the first place, Paaaeua had a charge of souls: these were
- young men, and he judged it right to withhold them from the primrose
- path. Secondly, he was a public character, and it was not fitting that
- his guests should countenance a festival of which he disapproved. So
- might some strict clergyman at home address a worldly visitor: "Go to
- the theatre if you like, but, by your leave, not from my house!"
- Thirdly, Paaaeua was a man jealous and with some cause (as shall be
- shown) for jealousy; and the feasters were the satellites of his
- immediate rival, Moipu.
- For the adoption had caused much excitement in the village; it made the
- strangers popular. Paaaeua, in his difficult posture of appointed chief,
- drew strength and dignity from their alliance, and only Moipu and his
- followers were malcontent. For some reason, nobody (except myself)
- appears to dislike Moipu. Captain Hart, who has been robbed and
- threatened by him; Father Orens, whom he has fired at, and repeatedly
- driven to the woods; my own family, and even the French officials--all
- seemed smitten with an irrepressible affection for the man. His fall had
- been made soft; his son, upon his death, was to succeed Paaaeua in the
- chieftaincy; and he lived, at the time of our visit, in the shoreward
- part of the village in a good house, and with a strong following of
- young men, his late braves and pot-hunters. In this society, the coming
- of the _Casco_, the adoption, the return feast on board, and the
- presents exchanged between the whites and their new parents, were
- doubtless eagerly and bitterly canvassed. It was felt that a few years
- ago the honours would have gone elsewhere. In this unwonted business, in
- this reception of some hitherto undreamed-of and outlandish
- potentate--some Prester John or old Assaracus--a few years back it would
- have been the part of Moipu to play the hero and the host, and his young
- men would have accompanied and adorned the various celebrations as the
- acknowledged leaders of society. And now, by a malign vicissitude of
- fortune, Moipu must sit in his house quite unobserved; and his young men
- could but look in at the door while their rivals feasted. Perhaps M.
- Grévy felt a touch of bitterness towards his successor when he beheld
- him figure on the broad stage of the centenary of eighty-nine; the visit
- of the _Casco_ which Moipu had missed by so few years was a more unusual
- occasion in Atuona than a centenary in France; and the dethroned chief
- determined to reassert himself in the public eye.
- Mr. Osbourne had gone into Atuona photographing; the population of the
- village had gathered together for the occasion on the place before the
- church, and Paaaeua, highly delighted with this new appearance of his
- family, played the master of ceremonies. The church had been taken, with
- its jolly architect before the door; the nuns with their pupils; sundry
- damsels in the ancient and singularly unbecoming robes of tapa; and
- Father Orens in the midst of a group of his parishioners. I know not
- what else was in hand, when the photographer became aware of a sensation
- in the crowd, and, looking around, beheld a very noble figure of a man
- appear upon the margin of a thicket and stroll nonchalantly near. The
- nonchalance was visibly affected; it was plain that he came there to
- arouse attention, and his success was instant. He was introduced; he was
- civil, he was obliging, he was always ineffably superior and certain of
- himself; a well-graced actor. It was presently suggested that he should
- appear in his war costume; he gracefully consented; and returned in that
- strange, inappropriate, and ill-omened array (which very well became
- his handsome person) to strut in a circle of admirers, and be
- thenceforth the centre of photography. Thus had Moipu effected his
- introduction, as by accident, to the white strangers, made it a favour
- to display his finery, and reduced his rival to a secondary _rôle_ on
- the theatre of the disputed village. Paaaeua felt the blow; and, with a
- spirit we never dreamed he could possess, asserted his priority. It was
- found impossible that day to get a photograph of Moipu alone; for
- whenever he stood up before the camera his successor placed himself
- unbidden by his side, and gently but firmly held to his position. The
- portraits of the pair, Jacob and Esau, standing shoulder to shoulder,
- one in his careful European dress, one in his barbaric trappings, figure
- the past and present of their island. A graveyard with its humble
- crosses would be the aptest symbol of the future.
- We are all impressed with the belief that Moipu had planned his campaign
- from the beginning to the end. It is certain that he lost no time in
- pushing his advantage. Mr. Osbourne was inveigled to his house; various
- gifts were fished out of an old sea-chest; Father Orens was called into
- service as interpreter, and Moipu formally proposed to "make brothers"
- with Mata-Galahi--Glass-Eyes,--the not very euphonious name under which
- Mr. Osbourne passed in the Marquesas. The feast of brotherhood took
- place on board the _Casco_. Paaaeua had arrived with his family, like a
- plain man; and his presents, which had been numerous, had followed one
- another, at intervals through several days. Moipu, as if to mark at
- every point the opposition, came with a certain feudal pomp, attended by
- retainers bearing gifts of all descriptions, from plumes of old men's
- beard to little, pious, Catholic engravings.
- I had met the man before this in the village, and detested him on sight;
- there was something indescribably raffish in his looks and ways that
- raised my gorge; and when man-eating was referred to, and he laughed a
- low, cruel laugh, part boastful, part bashful, like one reminded of
- some dashing peccadillo, my repugnance was mingled with nausea. This is
- no very human attitude, nor one at all becoming in a traveller. And,
- seen more privately, the man improved. Something negroid in character
- and face was still displeasing; but his ugly mouth became attractive
- when he smiled, his figure and bearing were certainly noble, and his
- eyes superb. In his appreciation of jams and pickles, in his delight in
- the reverberating mirrors of the dining cabin, and consequent endless
- repetition of Moipus and Mata-Galahis, he showed himself engagingly a
- child. And yet I am not sure; and what seemed childishness may have been
- rather courtly art. His manners struck me as beyond the mark; they were
- refined and caressing to the point of grossness, and when I think of the
- serene absent-mindedness with which he first strolled in upon our party,
- and then recall him running on hands and knees along the cabin sofas,
- pawing the velvet, dipping into the beds, and bleating commendatory
- "_mitais_" with exaggerated emphasis, like some enormous over-mannered
- ape, I feel the more sure that both must have been calculated. And I
- sometimes wonder next, if Moipu were quite alone in this polite
- duplicity, and ask myself whether the _Casco_ were quite so much admired
- in the Marquesas as our visitors desired us to suppose.
- I will complete this sketch of an incurable cannibal grandee with two
- incongruous traits. His favourite morsel was the human hand, of which he
- speaks to-day with an ill-favoured lustfulness. And when he said
- good-bye to Mrs. Stevenson, holding her hand, viewing her with tearful
- eyes, and chanting his farewell improvisation in the falsetto of
- Marquesan high society, he wrote upon her mind a sentimental impression
- which I try in vain to share.
- PART II
- THE PAUMOTUS
- CHAPTER I
- THE DANGEROUS ARCHIPELAGO--ATOLLS AT A DISTANCE
- In the early morning of 4th September a whale-boat manned by natives
- dragged us down the green lane of the anchorage and round the spouting
- promontory. On the shore level it was a hot, breathless, and yet crystal
- morning; but high overhead the hills of Atuona were all cowled in cloud,
- and the ocean-river of the trades streamed without pause. As we crawled
- from under the immediate shelter of the land, we reached at last the
- limit of their influence. The wind fell upon our sails in puffs, which
- strengthened and grew more continuous; presently the _Casco_ heeled down
- to her day's work; the whale-boat, quite outstripped, clung for a noisy
- moment to her quarter; the stipulated bread, rum, and tobacco were
- passed in; a moment more and the boat was in our wake, and our late
- pilots were cheering our departure.
- This was the more inspiriting as we were bound for scenes so different,
- and though on a brief voyage, yet for a new province of creation. That
- wide field of ocean, called loosely the South Seas, extends from tropic
- to tropic, and from perhaps 120 degrees W. to 150 degrees E., a
- parallelogram of one hundred degrees by forty-seven, where degrees are
- the most spacious. Much of it lies vacant, much is closely sown with
- isles, and the isles are of two sorts. No distinction is so continually
- dwelt upon in South Sea talk as that between the "low" and the "high"
- island, and there is none more broadly marked in nature. The Himalayas
- are not more different from the Sahara. On the one hand, and chiefly in
- groups of from eight to a dozen, volcanic islands rise above the sea;
- few reach an altitude of less than 4,000 feet; one exceeds 13,000; their
- tops are often obscured in cloud, they are all clothed with various
- forests, all abound in food, and are all remarkable for picturesque and
- solemn scenery. On the other hand, we have the atoll; a thing of
- problematic origin and history, the reputed creature of an insect
- apparently unidentified; rudely annular in shape; enclosing a lagoon;
- rarely extending beyond a quarter of a mile at its chief width; often
- rising at its highest point to less than the stature of a man--man
- himself, the rat and the land crab, its chief inhabitants; not more
- variously supplied with plants; and offering to the eye, even when
- perfect, only a ring of glittering beach and verdant foliage, enclosing
- and enclosed by the blue sea.
- In no quarter are the atolls so thickly congregated, in none are they so
- varied in size from the greatest to the least, and in none is navigation
- so beset with perils, as in that archipelago that we were now to thread.
- The huge system of the trades is, for some reason, quite confounded by
- this multiplicity of reefs; the wind intermits, squalls are frequent
- from the west and south-west, hurricanes are known. The currents are,
- besides, inextricably intermixed; dead reckoning becomes a farce; the
- charts are not to be trusted; and such is the number and similarity of
- these islands that, even when you have picked one up, you may be none
- the wiser. The reputation of the place is consequently infamous;
- insurance offices exclude it from their field, and it was not without
- misgiving that my captain risked the _Casco_ in such waters. I believe,
- indeed, it is almost understood that yachts are to avoid this baffling
- archipelago; and it required all my instances--and all Mr. Otis's
- private taste for adventure--to deflect our course across its midst.
- For a few days we sailed with a steady trade, and a steady westerly
- current setting us to leeward; and toward sundown of the seventh it was
- supposed we should have sighted Takaroa, one of Cook's so-called King
- George Islands. The sun set; yet a while longer the old
- moon--semi-brilliant herself, and with a silver belly, which was her
- successor--sailed among gathering clouds; she, too, deserted us; stars
- of every degree of sheen, and clouds of every variety of form, disputed
- the sub-lustrous night; and still we gazed in vain for Takaroa. The mate
- stood on the bowsprit, his tall grey figure slashing up and down against
- the stars, and still
- "nihil astra præter
- Vidit et undas."
- The rest of us were grouped at the port anchor davit, staring with no
- less assiduity, but with far less hope on the obscure horizon. Islands
- we beheld in plenty, but they were of "such stuff as dreams are made
- on," and vanished at a wink, only to appear in other places; and by and
- by not only islands, but refulgent and revolving lights began to stud
- the darkness; light-houses of the mind or of the wearied optic nerve,
- solemnly shining and winking as we passed. At length the mate himself
- despaired, scrambled on board again from his unrestful perch, and
- announced that we had missed our destination. He was the only man of
- practice in these waters, our sole pilot, shipped for that end at
- Tai-o-hae. If he declared we had missed Takaroa, it was not for us to
- quarrel with the fact, but, if we could, to explain it. We had certainly
- run down our southing. Our canted wake upon the sea and our somewhat
- drunken-looking course upon the chart both testified with no less
- certainty to an impetuous westward current. We had no choice but to
- conclude we were again set down to leeward; and the best we could do was
- to bring the _Casco_ to the wind, keep a good watch, and expect morning.
- I slept that night, as was then my somewhat dangerous practice, on deck
- upon the cockpit bench. A stir at last awoke me, to see all the eastern
- heaven dyed with faint orange, the binnacle lamp already dulled against
- the brightness of the day, and the steersman leaning eagerly across the
- wheel. "There it is, sir!" he cried, and pointed in the very eyeball of
- the dawn. For a while I could see nothing but the bluish ruins of the
- morning bank, which lay far along the horizon, like melting icebergs.
- Then the sun rose, pierced a gap in these _débris_ of vapours, and
- displayed an inconsiderable islet, flat as a plate upon the sea, and
- spiked with palms of disproportioned altitude.
- So far, so good. Here was certainly an atoll, and we were certainly got
- among the archipelago. But which? And where? The isle was too small for
- either Takaroa: in all our neighbourhood, indeed, there was none so
- inconsiderable, save only Tikei; and Tikei, one of Roggewein's so-called
- Pernicious Islands, seemed beside the question. At that rate, instead of
- drifting to the west, we must have fetched up thirty miles to windward.
- And how about the current? It had been setting us down, by observation,
- all these days: by the deflection of our wake, it should be setting us
- down that moment. When had it stopped? When had it begun again? and what
- kind of torrent was that which had swept us eastward in the interval? To
- these questions, so typical of navigation in that range of isles, I have
- no answer. Such were at least the facts; Tikei our island turned out to
- be; and it was our first experience of the dangerous archipelago, to
- make our landfall thirty miles out.
- The sight of Tikei, thrown direct against the splendour of the morning,
- robbed of all its colour, and deformed with disproportioned trees like
- bristles on a broom, had scarce prepared us to be much in love with
- atolls. Later the same day we saw under more fit conditions the island
- of Taiaro. "Lost in the Sea" is possibly the meaning of the name. And it
- was so we saw it; lost in blue sea and sky: a ring of white beach, green
- underwood, and tossing palms, gem-like in colour; of a fairy, of a
- heavenly prettiness. The surf ran all around it, white as snow, and
- broke at one point, far to seaward, on what seemed an uncharted reef.
- There was no smoke, no sign of man; indeed, the isle is not inhabited,
- only visited at intervals. And yet a trader (Mr. Narii Salmon) was
- watching from the shore and wondering at the unexpected ship. I have
- spent since then long months upon low islands; I know the tedium of
- their undistinguished days; I know the burden of their diet. With
- whatever envy we may have looked from the deck on these green coverts,
- it was with a tenfold greater that Mr. Salmon and his comrades saw us
- steer, in our trim ship, to seaward.
- The night fell lovely in the extreme. After the moon went down, the
- heaven was a thing to wonder at for stars. And as I lay in the cockpit
- and looked upon the steersman I was haunted by Emerson's verses:
- "And the lone seaman all the night
- Sails astonished among stars."
- By this glittering and imperfect brightness, about four bells in the
- first watch we made our third atoll, Raraka. The low line of the isle
- lay straight along the sky; so that I was at first reminded of a
- towpath, and we seemed to be mounting some engineered and navigable
- stream. Presently a red star appeared, about the height and brightness
- of a danger signal, and with that my simile was changed; we seemed
- rather to skirt the embankment of a railway, and the eye began to look
- instinctively for the telegraph-posts, and the ear to expect the coming
- of a train. Here and there, but rarely, faint tree-tops broke the level.
- And the sound of the surf accompanied us, now in a drowsy monotone, now
- with a menacing swing.
- The isle lay nearly east and west, barring our advance on Fakarava. We
- must, therefore, hug the coast until we gained the western end, where,
- through a passage eight miles wide, we might sail southward between
- Raraka and the next isle, Kauehi. We had the wind free, a lightish air;
- but clouds of an inky blackness were beginning to arise, and at times
- it lightened--without thunder. Something, I know not what, continually
- set us up upon the island. We lay more and more to the nor'ard; and you
- would have thought the shore copied our manoeuvre and outsailed us.
- Once and twice Raraka headed us again--again, in the sea fashion, the
- quite innocent steersman was abused--and again the _Casco_ kept away.
- Had I been called on, with no more light than that of our experience, to
- draw the configuration of that island, I should have shown a series of
- bow-window promontories, each overlapping the other to the nor'ard, and
- the trend of the land from the south-east to the north-west, and behold,
- on the chart it lay near east and west in a straight line.
- We had but just repeated our manoeuvre and kept away--for not more
- than five minutes the railway embankment had been lost to view and the
- surf to hearing--when I was aware of land again, not only on the weather
- bow, but dead ahead. I played the part of the judicious landsman,
- holding my peace till the last moment; and presently my mariners
- perceived it for themselves.
- "Land ahead!" said the steersman.
- "By God, it's Kauehi!" cried the mate.
- And so it was. And with that I began to be sorry for cartographers. We
- were scarce doing three and a half; and they asked me to believe that
- (in five minutes) we had dropped an island, passed eight miles of open
- water, and run almost high and dry upon the next. But my captain was
- more sorry for himself to be afloat in such a labyrinth; laid the
- _Casco_ to, with the log line up and down, and sat on the stern rail and
- watched it till the morning. He had enough of night in the Paumotus.
- By daylight on the 9th we began to skirt Kauehi, and had now an
- opportunity to see near at hand the geography of atolls. Here and there,
- where it was high, the farther side loomed up; here and there the near
- side dipped entirely and showed a broad path of water into the lagoon;
- here and there both sides were equally abased, and we could look right
- through the discontinuous ring to the sea horizon on the south.
- Conceive, on a vast scale, the submerged hoop of the duck-hunter,
- trimmed with green rushes to conceal his head--water within, water
- without--you have the image of the perfect atoll. Conceive one that has
- been partly plucked of its rush fringe; you have the atoll of Kauehi.
- And for either shore of it at closer quarters, conceive the line of some
- old Roman highway traversing a wet morass, and here sunk out of view and
- there re-arising, crowned with a green tuft of thicket; only instead of
- the stagnant waters of a marsh, the live ocean now boiled against, now
- buried the frail barrier. Last night's impression in the dark was thus
- confirmed by day, and not corrected. We sailed indeed by a mere causeway
- in the sea, of nature's handiwork, yet of no greater magnitude than many
- of the works of man.
- The isle was uninhabited; it was all green brush and white sand, set in
- transcendently blue water; even the coco-palms were rare, though some of
- these completed the bright harmony of colour by hanging out a fan of
- golden yellow. For long there was no sign of life beyond the vegetable,
- and no sound but the continuous grumble of the surf. In silence and
- desertion these fair shores slipped past, and were submerged and rose
- again with clumps of thicket from the sea. And then a bird or two
- appeared, hovering and crying; swiftly these became more numerous, and
- presently, looking ahead, we were aware of a vast effervescence of
- winged life. In this place the annular isle was mostly under water,
- carrying here and there on its submerged line a wooded islet. Over one
- of these the birds hung and flew with an incredible density like that of
- gnats or hiving bees; the mass flashed white and black, and heaved and
- quivered, and the screaming of the creatures rose over the voice of the
- surf in a shrill clattering whirr. As you descend some inland valley, a
- not dissimilar sound announces the nearness of a mill and pouring river.
- Some stragglers, as I said, came to meet our approach; a few still hung
- about the ship as we departed. The crying died away, the last pair of
- wings was left behind, and once more the low shores of Kauehi streamed
- past our eyes in silence like a picture. I supposed at the time that the
- birds lived, like ants or citizens, concentred where we saw them. I have
- been told since (I know not if correctly) that the whole isle, or much
- of it, is similarly peopled; and that the effervescence at a single spot
- would be the mark of a boat's crew of egg-hunters from one of the
- neighbouring inhabited atolls. So that here at Kauehi, as the day before
- at Taiaro, the _Casco_ sailed by under the fire of unsuspected eyes. And
- one thing is surely true, that even on these ribbons of land an army
- might lie hid and no passing mariner divine its presence.
- CHAPTER II
- FAKARAVA: AN ATOLL AT HAND
- By a little before noon we were running down the coast of our
- destination, Fakarava: the air very light, the sea near smooth; though
- still we were accompanied by a continuous murmur from the beach, like
- the sound of a distant train. The isle is of a huge longitude, the
- enclosed lagoon thirty miles by ten or twelve, and the coral tow-path,
- which they call the land, some eighty or ninety miles by (possibly) one
- furlong. That part by which we sailed was all raised; the underwood
- excellently green, the topping wood of coco-palms continuous--a mark, if
- I had known it, of man's intervention. For once more, and once more
- unconsciously, we were within hail of fellow-creatures, and that vacant
- beach was but a pistol-shot from the capital city of the archipelago.
- But the life of an atoll, unless it be enclosed, passes wholly on the
- shores of the lagoon; it is there the villages are seated, there the
- canoes ply and are drawn up; and the beach of the ocean is a place
- accursed and deserted, the fit scene only for wizardry and shipwreck,
- and in the native belief a haunting ground of murderous spectres.
- By and by we might perceive a breach in the low barrier; the woods
- ceased; a glittering point ran into the sea, tipped with an emerald
- shoal, the mark of entrance. As we drew near we met a little run of
- sea--the private sea of the lagoon having there its origin and end, and
- here, in the jaws of the gateway, trying vain conclusions with the more
- majestic heave of the Pacific. The _Casco_ scarce avowed a shock; but
- there are times and circumstances when these harbour mouths of inland
- basins vomit floods, deflecting, burying, and dismasting ships. For,
- conceive a lagoon perfectly sealed but in the one point, and that of
- merely navigable width; conceive the tide and wind to have heaped for
- hours together in that coral fold a superfluity of waters, and the tide
- to change and the wind fall--the open sluice of some great reservoirs at
- home will give an image of the unstemmable effluxion.
- We were scarce well headed for the pass before all heads were craned
- over the rail. For the water, shoaling under our board, became changed
- in a moment to surprising hues of blue and grey; and in its transparency
- the coral branched and blossomed, and the fish of the inland sea cruised
- visibly below us, stained and stripped, and even beaked like parrots. I
- have paid in my time to view many curiosities; never one so curious as
- that first sight over the ship's rail in the lagoon of Fakarava. But let
- not the reader be deceived with hope. I have since entered, I suppose,
- some dozen atolls in different parts of the Pacific, and the experience
- has never been repeated. That exquisite hue and transparency of
- submarine day, and these shoals of rainbow fish have not enraptured me
- again.
- Before we could raise our eyes from that engaging spectacle the schooner
- had slipped betwixt the pier-heads of the reef, and was already quite
- committed to the sea within. The containing shores are so little
- erected, and the lagoon itself is so great, that, for the more part, it
- seemed to extend without a check to the horizon. Here and there, indeed,
- where the reef carried an inlet, like a signet-ring upon a finger, there
- would be a pencilling of palms; here and there, the green wall of wood
- ran solid for a length of miles; and on the port hand, under the highest
- grove of trees, a few houses sparkled white--Rotoava, the metropolitan
- settlement of the Paumotus. Hither we beat in three tacks, and came to
- an anchor close in shore, in the first smooth water since we had left
- San Francisco, five fathoms deep, where a man might look overboard all
- day at the vanishing cable, the coral patches, and the many-coloured
- fish.
- Fakarava was chosen to be the seat of Government from nautical
- considerations only. It is eccentrically situate; the productions, even
- for a low island, poor; the population neither many nor--for Low
- Islanders--industrious. But the lagoon has two good passages, one to
- leeward, one to windward, so that in all states of the wind it can be
- left and entered, and this advantage, for a government of scattered
- islands, was decisive. A pier of coral, landing-stairs, a harbour light
- upon a staff and pillar, and two spacious Government bungalows in a
- handsome fence, give to the northern end of Rotoava a great air of
- consequence. This is confirmed on the one hand by an empty prison, on
- the other by a gendarmerie pasted over with handbills in Tahitian,
- land-law notices from Papeete, and republican sentiments from Paris,
- signed (a little after date) "Jules Grévy, _Perihidente_." Quite at the
- far end a belfried Catholic chapel concludes the town; and between, on a
- smooth floor of white coral sand and under the breezy canopy of
- coco-palms, the houses of the natives stand irregularly scattered, now
- close on the lagoon for the sake of the breeze, now back under the palms
- for love of shadow.
- Not a soul was to be seen. But for the thunder of the surf on the far
- side, it seemed you might have heard a pin drop anywhere about that
- capital city. There was something thrilling in the unexpected silence,
- something yet more so in the unexpected sound. Here before us a sea
- reached to the horizon, rippling like an inland mere; and, behold! close
- at our back another sea assaulted with assiduous fury the reverse of the
- position. At night the lantern was run up and lit a vacant pier. In one
- house lights were seen and voices heard, where the population (I was
- told) sat playing cards. A little beyond, from deep in the darkness of
- the palm grove, we saw the glow and smelt the aromatic odour of a coal
- of cocoa-nut husk, a relic of the evening kitchen. Crickets sang; some
- shrill thing whistled in a tuft of weeds; and the mosquito hummed and
- stung. There was no other trace that night of man, bird, or insect in
- the isle. The moon, now three days old, and as yet but a silver crescent
- on a still visible sphere, shone through the palm canopy with vigorous
- and scattered lights. The alleys where we walked were smoothed and
- weeded like a boulevard; here and there were plants set out; here and
- there dusky cottages clustered in the shadow, some with verandahs. A
- public garden by night, a rich and fashionable watering-place in a
- by-season, offer sights and vistas not dissimilar. And still, on the one
- side, stretched the lapping mere, and from the other the deep sea still
- growled in the night. But it was most of all on board, in the dead
- hours, when I had been better sleeping, that the spell of Fakarava
- seized and held me. The moon was down. The harbour lantern and two of
- the greater planets drew vari-coloured wakes on the lagoon. From shore
- the cheerful watch-cry of cocks rang out at intervals above the
- organ-point of surf. And the thought of this depopulated capital, this
- protracted thread of annular island with its crest of coco-palms and
- fringe of breakers, and that tranquil inland sea that stretched before
- me till it touched the stars, ran in my head for hours with delight.
- So long as I stayed upon that isle these thoughts were constant. I lay
- down to sleep, and woke again with an unblunted sense of my
- surroundings. I was never weary of calling up the image of that narrow
- causeway, on which I had my dwelling, lying coiled like a serpent, tail
- to mouth, in the outrageous ocean, and I was never weary of passing--a
- mere quarter-deck parade--from the one side to the other, from the
- shady, habitable shores of the lagoon to the blinding desert and
- uproarious breakers of the opposite beach. The sense of insecurity in
- such a thread of residence is more than fanciful. Hurricanes and tidal
- waves over-leap these humble obstacles; Oceanus remembers his strength,
- and, where houses stood and palms flourished, shakes his white beard
- again over the barren coral. Fakarava itself has suffered; the trees
- immediately beyond my house were all of recent replantation; and Anaa is
- only now recovered from a heavier stroke. I knew one who was then
- dwelling in the isle. He told me that he and two ship captains walked to
- the sea beach. There for a while they viewed the on-coming breakers,
- till one of the captains clapped suddenly his hand before his eyes and
- cried aloud that he could endure no longer to behold them. This was in
- the afternoon; in the dark hours of the night the sea burst upon the
- island like a flood; the settlement was razed, all but the church and
- presbytery; and, when day returned, the survivors saw themselves
- clinging in an abattis of uprooted coco-palms and ruined houses.
- Danger is but a small consideration. But men are more nicely sensible of
- a discomfort; and the atoll is a discomfortable home. There are some,
- and these probably ancient, where a deep soil has formed and the most
- valuable fruit-trees prosper. I have walked in one, with equal
- admiration and surprise, through a forest of huge breadfruits, eating
- bananas and stumbling among taro as I went. This was in the atoll of
- Namorik in the Marshall group, and stands alone in my experience. To
- give the opposite extreme, which is yet far more near the average, I
- will describe the soil and productions of Fakarava. The surface of that
- narrow strip is for the more part of broken coral limestone, like
- volcanic clinkers, and excruciating to the naked foot; in some atolls, I
- believe, not in Fakarava, it gives a fine metallic ring when struck.
- Here and there you come upon a bank of sand, exceeding fine and white,
- and these parts are the least productive. The plants (such as they are)
- spring from and love the broken coral, whence they grow with that
- wonderful verdancy that makes the beauty of the atoll from the sea. The
- coco-palm in particular luxuriates in that stern _solum_, striking down
- his roots to the brackish, percolated water, and bearing his green head
- in the wind with every evidence of health and pleasure. And yet even
- the coco-palm must be helped in infancy with some extraneous nutriment,
- and through much of the low archipelago there is planted with each nut a
- piece of ship's biscuit and a rusty nail. The pandanus comes next in
- importance, being also a food tree; and he, too, does bravely. A green
- bush called _miki_ runs everywhere; occasionally a purao is seen; and
- there are several useless weeds. According to M. Cuzent, the whole
- number of plants on an atoll such as Fakarava will scarce exceed, even
- if it reaches to, one score. Not a blade of grass appears; not a grain
- of humus, save when a sack or two has been imported to make the
- semblance of a garden; such gardens as bloom in cities on the
- window-sill. Insect life is sometimes dense; a cloud of mosquitoes, and,
- what is far worse, a plague of flies blackening our food, have sometimes
- driven us from a meal on Apemama; and even in Fakarava the mosquitoes
- were a pest. The land crab may be seen scuttling to his hole, and at
- night the rats besiege the houses and the artificial gardens. The crab
- is good eating; possibly so is the rat; I have not tried. Pandanus fruit
- is made, in the Gilberts, into an agreeable sweetmeat, such as a man may
- trifle with at the end of a long dinner; for a substantial meal I have
- no use for it. The rest of the food-supply, in a destitute atoll such as
- Fakarava, can be summed up in the favourite jest of the
- archipelago--cocoa-nut beefsteak. Cocoa-nut green, cocoa-nut ripe,
- cocoa-nut germinated; cocoa-nut to eat and cocoa-nut to drink; cocoa-nut
- raw and cooked, cocoa-nut hot and cold--such is the bill of fare. And
- some of the entrees are no doubt delicious. The germinated nut, cooked
- in the shell and eaten with a spoon, forms a good pudding; cocoa-nut
- milk--the expressed juice of a ripe nut, not the water of a green
- one--goes well in coffee, and is a valuable adjunct in cookery through
- the South Seas; and cocoa-nut salad, if you be a millionaire, and can
- afford to eat the value of a field of corn for your dessert, is a dish
- to be remembered with affection. But when all is done there is a
- sameness, and the Israelites of the low islands murmur at their manna.
- The reader may think I have forgot the sea. The two beaches do certainly
- abound in life, and they are strangely different. In the lagoon the
- water shallows slowly on a bottom of fine slimy sand, dotted with clumps
- of growing coral. Then comes a strip of tidal beach on which the ripples
- lap. In the coral clumps the great holy-water clam (_Tridacna_) grows
- plentifully; a little deeper lie the beds of the pearl-oyster and sail
- the resplendent fish that charmed us at our entrance; and these are all
- more or less vigorously coloured. But the other shells are white like
- lime, or faintly tinted with a little pink, the palest possible display;
- many of them dead besides, and badly rolled. On the ocean side, on the
- mounds of the steep beach, over all the width of the reef right out to
- where the surf is bursting, in every cranny, under every scattered
- fragment of the coral, an incredible plenty of marine life displays the
- most wonderful variety and brilliancy of hues. The reef itself has no
- passage of colour but is imitated by some shell. Purple and red and
- white, and green and yellow, pied and striped and clouded, the living
- shells wear in every combination the livery of the dead reef--if the
- reef be dead--so that the eye is continually baffled and the collector
- continually deceived. I have taken shells for stones and stones for
- shells, the one as often as the other. A prevailing character of the
- coral is to be dotted with small spots of red, and it is wonderful how
- many varieties of shell have adopted the same fashion and donned the
- disguise of the red spot. A shell I had found in plenty in the Marquesas
- I found here also unchanged in all things else, but there were the red
- spots. A lively little crab wore the same marking. The case of the
- hermit or soldier crab was more conclusive, being the result of
- conscious choice. This nasty little wrecker, scavenger, and squatter has
- learned the value of a spotted house; so it be of the right colour he
- will choose the smallest shard, tuck himself in a mere corner of a
- broken whorl, and go about the world half naked; but I never found him
- in this imperfect armour unless it was marked with the red spot.
- Some two hundred yards distant is the beach of the lagoon. Collect the
- shells from each, set them side by side, and you would suppose they came
- from different hemispheres; the one so pale, the other so brilliant; the
- one prevalently white, the other of a score of hues, and infected with
- the scarlet spot like a disease. This seems the more strange, since the
- hermit crabs pass and repass the island, and I have met them by the
- Residency well, which is about central, journeying either way. Without
- doubt many of the shells in the lagoon are dead. But why are they dead?
- Without doubt the living shells have a very different background set for
- imitation. But why are these so different? We are only on the threshold
- of the mysteries.
- Either beach, I have said, abounds with life. On the sea-side and in
- certain atolls this profusion of vitality is even shocking: the rock
- under foot is mined with it. I have broken oft--notably in Funafuti and
- Arorai[5]--great lumps of ancient weathered rock that rang under my
- blows like iron, and the fracture has been full of pendent worms as long
- as my hand, as thick as a child's finger, of a slightly pinkish white,
- and set as close as three or even four to the square inch. Even in the
- lagoon, where certain shell-fish seem to sicken, others (it is
- notorious) prosper exceedingly and make the riches of these islands.
- Fish, too, abound; the lagoon is a closed fish-pond, such as might
- rejoice the fancy of an abbot; sharks swarm there, and chiefly round the
- passages, to feast upon this plenty, and you would suppose that man had
- only to prepare his angle. Alas! it is not so. Of these painted fish
- that came in hordes about the entering _Casco_, some bore poisonous
- spines, and others were poisonous if eaten. The stranger must refrain,
- or take his chance of painful and dangerous sickness. The native, on his
- own isle, is a safe guide; transplant him to the next, and he is as
- helpless as yourself. For it is a question both of time and place. A
- fish caught in a lagoon may be deadly; the same fish caught the same day
- at sea, and only a few hundred yards without the passage, will be
- wholesome eating: in a neighbouring isle perhaps the case will be
- reversed; and perhaps a fortnight later you shall be able to eat of them
- indifferently from within and from without. According to the natives,
- these bewildering vicissitudes are ruled by the movement of the heavenly
- bodies. The beautiful planet Venus plays a great part in all island
- tales and customs; and among other functions, some of them more awful,
- she regulates the season of good fish. With Venus in one phase, as we
- had her, certain fish were poisonous in the lagoon: with Venus in
- another, the same fish was harmless and a valued article of diet. White
- men explain these changes by the phases of the coral.
- It adds a last touch of horror to the thought of this precarious annular
- gangway in the sea, that even what there is of it is not of honest rock,
- but organic, part alive, part putrescent; even the clean sea and the
- bright fish about it poisoned, the most stubborn boulder burrowed in by
- worms, the lightest dust venomous as an apothecary's drugs.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [5] Arorai is in the Gilberts, Funafuti in the Ellice Islands.--Ed.
- CHAPTER III
- A HOUSE TO LET IN A LOW ISLAND
- Never populous, it was yet by a chapter of accidents that I found the
- island so deserted that no sound of human life diversified the hours;
- that we walked in the trim public garden of a town, among closed houses,
- without even a lodging-bill in a window to prove some tenancy in the
- back quarters; and, when we visited the Government bungalow, that Mr.
- Donat, acting Vice-Resident, greeted us alone, and entertained us with
- cocoa-nut punches in the Sessions Hall and seat of judgment of that
- widespread archipelago, our glasses standing arrayed with summonses and
- census returns. The unpopularity of the late Vice-Resident had begun the
- movement of exodus, his native employés resigning court appointments and
- retiring each to his own coco-patch in the remoter districts of the
- isle. Upon the back of that, the Governor in Papeete issued a decree:
- All land in the Paumotus must be defined and registered by a certain
- date. Now, the folk of the archipelago are half nomadic; a man can
- scarce be said to belong to a particular atoll; he belongs to several,
- perhaps holds a stake and counts cousinship in half a score; and the
- inhabitants of Rotoava in particular, man, woman, and child, and from
- the gendarme to the Mormon prophet and the schoolmaster, owned--I was
- going to say land--owned at least coral blocks and growing coco-palms in
- some adjacent isle. Thither--from the gendarme to the babe in arms, the
- pastor followed by his flock, the schoolmaster carrying along with him
- his scholars, and the scholars with their books and slates--they had
- taken ship some two days previous to our arrival, and were all now
- engaged disputing boundaries. Fancy overhears the shrillness of their
- disputation mingle with the surf and scatter sea-fowl. It was admirable
- to observe the completeness of their flight, like that of hibernating
- birds; nothing left but empty houses, like old nests to be reoccupied in
- spring; and even the harmless necessary dominie borne with them in their
- transmigration. Fifty odd set out, and only seven, I was informed,
- remained. But when I made a feast on board the _Casco_, more than seven,
- and nearer seven times seven, appeared to be my guests. Whence they
- appeared, how they were summoned, whither they vanished when the feast
- was eaten, I have no guess. In view of low island tales, and that awful
- frequentation which makes men avoid the seaward beaches of an atoll,
- some two score of those that ate with us may have returned, for the
- occasion, from the kingdom of the dead.
- It was this solitude that put it in our minds to hire a house, and
- become, for the time being, indwellers of the isle--a practice I have
- ever since, when it was possible, adhered to. Mr. Donat placed us, with
- that intent, under the convoy of one Taniera Mahinui, who combined the
- incongruous characters of catechist and convict. The reader may smile,
- but I affirm he was well qualified for either part. For that of convict,
- first of all, by a good substantial felony, such as in all lands casts
- the perpetrator in chains and dungeons. Taniera was a man of birth--the
- chief a while ago, as he loved to tell, of a district in Anaa of 800
- souls. In an evil hour it occurred to the authorities in Papeete to
- charge the chiefs with the collection of the taxes. It is a question if
- much were collected; it is certain that nothing was handed on; and
- Taniera, who had distinguished himself by a visit to Papeete and some
- high living in restaurants, was chosen for the scapegoat. The reader
- must understand that not Taniera but the authorities in Papeete were
- first in fault. The charge imposed was disproportioned. I have not yet
- heard of any Polynesian capable of such a burden; honest and upright
- Hawaiians--one in particular, who was admired even by the whites as an
- inflexible magistrate--have stumbled in the narrow path of the trustee.
- And Taniera, when the pinch came, scorned to denounce accomplices;
- others had shared the spoil, he bore the penalty alone. He was condemned
- in five years. The period, when I had the pleasure of his friendship,
- was not yet expired; he still drew prison rations, the sole and not
- unwelcome reminder of his chains, and, I believe, looked forward to the
- date of his enfranchisement with mere alarm. For he had no sense of
- shame in the position; complained of nothing but the defective table of
- his place of exile; regretted nothing but the fowls and eggs and fish of
- his own more favoured island. And as for his parishioners, they did not
- think one hair the less of him. A schoolboy, mulcted in ten thousand
- lines of Greek and dwelling sequestered in the dormitories, enjoys
- unabated consideration from his fellows. So with Taniera: a marked man,
- not a dishonoured; having fallen under the lash of the unthinkable gods;
- a Job, perhaps, or say a Taniera in the den of lions. Songs are likely
- made and sung about this saintly Robin Hood. On the other hand, he was
- even highly qualified for his office in the Church; being by nature a
- grave, considerate, and kindly man; his face rugged and serious, his
- smile bright; the master of several trades, a builder both of boats and
- houses; endowed with a fine pulpit voice; endowed besides with such a
- gift of eloquence that at the grave of the late chief of Fakarava he set
- all the assistants weeping. I never met a man of a mind more
- ecclesiastical; he loved to dispute and to inform himself of doctrine
- and the history of sects; and when I showed him the cuts in a volume of
- Chambers's "Encyclopædia"--except for one of an ape--reserved his whole
- enthusiasm for cardinals' hats, censers, candlesticks, and cathedrals.
- Methought when he looked upon the cardinal's hat a voice said low in his
- ear: "Your foot is on the ladder."
- Under the guidance of Taniera we were soon installed in what I believe
- to have been the best-appointed private house in Fakarava. It stood just
- beyond the church in an oblong patch of cultivation. More than three
- hundred sacks of soil were imported from Tahiti for the Residency
- garden; and this must shortly be renewed, for the earth blows away,
- sinks in crevices of the coral, and is sought for at last in vain. I
- know not how much earth had gone to the garden of my villa; some at
- least, for an alley of prosperous bananas ran to the gate, and over the
- rest of the enclosure, which was covered with the usual clinker-like
- fragments of smashed coral, not only coco-palms and mikis but also
- fig-trees flourished, all of a delicious greenness. Of course there was
- no blade of grass. In front a picket fence divided us from the white
- road, the palm-fringed margin of the lagoon, and the lagoon itself,
- reflecting clouds by day and stars by night. At the back, a bulwark of
- uncemented coral enclosed us from the narrow belt of bush and the nigh
- ocean beach where the seas thundered, the roar and wash of them still
- humming in the chambers of the house.
- This itself was of one story, verandahed front and back. It contained
- three rooms, three sewing-machines, three sea-chests, chairs, tables, a
- pair of beds, a cradle, a double-barrelled gun, a pair of enlarged
- coloured photographs, a pair of coloured prints after Wilkie and
- Mulready, and a French lithograph with the legend: "_Le brigade du
- Général Lepasset brûlant son drapeau devant Metz._" Under the stilts of
- the house a stove was rusting, till we drew it forth and put it in
- commission. Not far off was the burrow in the coral whence we supplied
- ourselves with brackish water. There was live stock, besides, on the
- estate--cocks and hens and a brace of ill-regulated cats, whom Taniera
- came every morning with the sun to feed on grated cocoa-nut. His voice
- was our regular réveille, ringing pleasantly about the garden:
- "Pooty--pooty--poo--poo--poo!"
- Far as we were from the public offices, the nearness of the chapel made
- our situation what is called eligible in advertisements, and gave us a
- side look on some native life. Every morning, as soon as he had fed the
- fowls, Taniera set the bell agoing in the small belfry; and the
- faithful, who were not very numerous, gathered to prayers. I was once
- present: it was the Lord's day, and seven females and eight males
- composed the congregation. A woman played precentor, starting with a
- longish note; the catechist joined in upon the second bar; and then the
- faithful in a body. Some had printed hymn-books which they followed;
- some of the rest filled up with "eh--eh--eh," the Paumotuan tol-de-rol.
- After the hymn, we had an antiphonal prayer or two; and then Taniera
- rose from the front bench, where he had been sitting in his catechist's
- robes, passed within the altar-rails, opened his Tahitian Bible, and
- began to preach from notes. I understood one word--the name of God; but
- the preacher managed his voice with taste, used rare and expressive
- gestures, and made a strong impression of sincerity. The plain service,
- the vernacular Bible, the hymn-tunes mostly on an English pattern--"God
- save the Queen," I was informed, a special favourite,--all, save some
- paper flowers upon the altar, seemed not merely but austerely
- Protestant. It is thus the Catholics have met their low island
- proselytes half-way.
- Taniera had the keys of our house; it was with him I made my bargain, if
- that could be called a bargain in which all was remitted to my
- generosity; it was he who fed the cats and poultry, he who came to call
- and pick a meal with us like an acknowledged friend; and we long fondly
- supposed he was our landlord. This belief was not to bear the test of
- experience; and, as my chapter has to relate, no certainty succeeded it.
- We passed some days of airless quiet and great heat; shell-gatherers
- were warned from the ocean beach, where sunstroke waited them from ten
- till four; the highest palm hung motionless, there was no voice audible
- but that of the sea on the far side. At last, about four of a certain
- afternoon, long cat's-paws flawed the face of the lagoon; and presently
- in the tree-tops there awoke the grateful bustle of the trades, and all
- the houses and alleys of the island were fanned out. To more than one
- enchanted ship, that had lain long becalmed in view of the green shore,
- the wind brought deliverance; and by daylight on the morrow a schooner
- and two cutters lay moored in the port of Rotoava. Not only in the outer
- sea, but in the lagoon itself, a certain traffic woke with the reviving
- breeze; and among the rest one François, a half-blood, set sail with the
- first light in his own half-decked cutter. He had held before a court
- appointment; being, I believe, the Residency sweeper-out. Trouble
- arising with the unpopular Vice-Resident, he had thrown his honours
- down, and fled to the far parts of the atoll to plant cabbages--or at
- least coco-palms. Thence he was now driven by such need as even a
- Cincinnatus must acknowledge, and fared for the capital city, the seat
- of his late functions, to exchange half a ton of copra for necessary
- flour. And here, for a while, the story leaves to tell of his voyaging.
- It must tell, instead, of our house, where, toward seven at night, the
- catechist came suddenly in with his pleased air of being welcome; armed
- besides with a considerable bunch of keys. These he proceeded to try on
- the sea-chests, drawing each in turn from its place against the wall.
- Heads of strangers appeared in the doorway and volunteered suggestions.
- All in vain. Either they were the wrong keys or the wrong boxes, or the
- wrong man was trying them. For a little Taniera fumed and fretted; then
- had recourse to the more summary method of the hatchet; one of the
- chests was broken open, and an armful of clothing, male and female,
- baled out and handed to the strangers on the verandah.
- These were François, his wife, and their child. About eight A.M., in the
- midst of the lagoon, their cutter had capsized in jibbing. They got her
- righted, and though she was still full of water put the child on board.
- The mainsail had been carried away, but the jib still drew her
- sluggishly along, and François and the woman swam astern and worked the
- rudder with their hands. The cold was cruel; the fatigue, as time went
- on, became excessive; and in that preserve of sharks, fear haunted them.
- Again and again, François, the half-breed, would have desisted and gone
- down; but the woman, whole blood of an amphibious race, still supported
- him with cheerful words. I am reminded of a woman of Hawaii who swam
- with her husband, I dare not say how many miles, in a high sea, and came
- ashore at last with his dead body in her arms. It was about five in the
- evening, after nine hours' swimming, that François and his wife reached
- land at Rotoava. The gallant fight was won, and instantly the more
- childish side of native character appears. They had supped, and told and
- retold their story, dripping as they came; the flesh of the woman, whom
- Mrs. Stevenson helped to shift, was cold as stone; and François, having
- changed to a dry cotton shirt and trousers, passed the remainder of the
- evening on my floor and between open doorways, in a thorough draught.
- Yet François, the son of a French father, speaks excellent French
- himself and seems intelligent.
- It was our first idea that the catechist, true to his evangelical
- vocation, was clothing the naked from his superfluity. Then it came out
- that François was but dealing with his own. The clothes were his, so was
- the chest, so was the house. François was in fact the landlord. Yet you
- observe he had hung back on the verandah while Taniera tried his
- 'prentice hand upon the locks; and even now, when his true character
- appeared, the only use he made of the estate was to leave the clothes of
- his family drying on the fence. Taniera was still the friend of the
- house, still fed the poultry, still came about us on his daily visits;
- François, during the remainder of his stay, holding bashfully aloof. And
- there was stranger matter. Since François had lost the whole load of his
- cutter, the half ton of copra, an axe, bowls, knives, and
- clothes--since he had in a manner to begin the world again, and his
- necessary flour was not yet bought or paid for--I proposed to advance
- him what he needed on the rent. To my enduring amazement he refused, and
- the reason he gave--if that can be called a reason which but darkens
- counsel--was that Taniera was his friend. His friend, you observe, not
- his creditor. I inquired into that, and was assured that Taniera, an
- exile in a strange isle, might possibly be in debt himself, but
- certainly was no man's creditor.
- Very early one morning we were awakened by a bustling presence in the
- yard, and found our camp had been surprised by a tall, lean, old native
- lady, dressed in what were obviously widow's weeds. You could see at a
- glance she was a notable woman, a housewife, sternly practical, alive
- with energy, and with fine possibilities of temper. Indeed there was
- nothing native about her but the skin; and the type abounds, and is
- everywhere respected nearer home. It did us good to see her scour the
- grounds, examining the plants and chickens; watering, feeding, trimming
- them; taking angry, purpose-like possession. When she neared the house
- our sympathy abated; when she came to the broken chest I wished I were
- elsewhere. We had scarce a word in common; but her whole lean body spoke
- for her with indignant eloquence. "My chest!" it cried, with a stress on
- the possessive. "My chest--broken open! This is a fine state of things!"
- I hastened to lay the blame where it belonged--on François and his
- wife--and found I had made things worse instead of better. She repeated
- the names at first with incredulity, then with despair. A while she
- seemed stunned, next fell to disembowelling the box, piling the goods on
- the floor, and visibly computing the extent of François's ravages; and
- presently after she was observed in high speech with Taniera, who seemed
- to hang an ear like one reproved.
- Here, then, by all known marks, should be my landlady at last; here was
- every character of the proprietor fully developed. Should I not
- approach her on the still depending question of my rent? I carried the
- point to an adviser. "Nonsense!" he cried. "That's the old woman, the
- mother. It doesn't belong to her. I believe that's the man the house
- belongs to," and he pointed to one of the coloured photographs on the
- wall. On this I gave up all desire of understanding; and when the time
- came for me to leave, in the judgment-hall of the archipelago, and with
- the awful countenance of the acting Governor, I duly paid my rent to
- Taniera. He was satisfied, and so was I. But what had he to do with it?
- Mr. Donat, acting magistrate and a man of kindred blood, could throw no
- light upon the mystery; a plain private person, with a taste for
- letters, cannot be expected to do more.
- CHAPTER IV
- TRAITS AND SECTS IN THE PAUMOTUS
- The most careless reader must have remarked a change of air since the
- Marquesas. The house, crowded with effects, the bustling housewife
- counting her possessions, the serious, indoctrinated island pastor, the
- long fight for life in a lagoon: here are traits of a new world. I read
- in a pamphlet (I will not give the author's name) that the Marquesan
- especially resembles the Paumotuan. I should take the two races, though
- so near in neighbourhood, to be extremes of Polynesian diversity. The
- Marquesan is certainly the most beautiful of human races, and one of the
- tallest--the Paumotuan averaging a good inch shorter, and not even
- handsome; the Marquesan open-handed, inert, insensible to religion,
- childishly self-indulgent--the Paumotuan greedy, hardy, enterprising, a
- religious disputant, and with a trace of the ascetic character.
- Yet a few years ago, and the people of the archipelago were crafty
- savages. Their isles might be called sirens' isles, not merely from the
- attraction they exerted on the passing mariner, but from the perils that
- awaited him on shore. Even to this day, in certain outlying islands,
- danger lingers: and the civilised Paumotuan dreads to land and hesitates
- to accost his backward brother. But, except in these, to-day the peril
- is a memory. When our generation were yet in the cradle and playroom it
- was still a living fact. Between 1830 and 1840, Hao, for instance, was a
- place of the most dangerous approach, where ships were seized and crews
- kidnapped. As late as 1856, the schooner _Sarah Ann_ sailed from
- Papeete and was seen no more. She had women on board, and children, the
- captain's wife, a nursemaid, a baby, and the two young sons of a Captain
- Steven on their way to the mainland for schooling. All were supposed to
- have perished in a squall. A year later, the captain of the _Julia_,
- coasting along the island variously called Bligh, Lagoon, and Tematangi,
- saw armed natives follow the course of his schooner, clad in many
- coloured stuffs. Suspicion was at once aroused; the mother of the lost
- children was profuse of money; and one expedition having found the place
- deserted and returned content with firing a few shots, she raised and
- herself accompanied another. None appeared to greet or to oppose them;
- they roamed a while among abandoned huts and empty thickets; then formed
- two parties and set forth to beat, from end to end, the pandanus jungle
- of the island. One man remained alone by the landing-place--Teina, a
- chief of Anaa, leader of the armed natives who made the strength of the
- expedition. Now that his comrades were departed this way and that, on
- their laborious exploration, the silence fell profound; and this silence
- was the ruin of the islanders. A sound of stones rattling caught the ear
- of Teina. He looked, thinking to perceive a crab, and saw instead the
- brown hand of a human being issue from a fissure in the ground. A shout
- recalled the search parties and announced their doom to the buried
- caitiffs. In the cave below, sixteen were found crouching among human
- bones and singular and horrid curiosities. One was a head of golden
- hair, supposed to be a relic of the captain's wife, another was half of
- the body of a European child, sun-dried and stuck upon a stick,
- doubtless with some design of wizardry.
- The Paumotuan is eager to be rich. He saves, grudges, buries money,
- fears not work. For a dollar each, two natives passed the hours of
- daylight cleaning our ship's copper. It was strange to see them so
- indefatigable and so much at ease in the water--working at times with
- their pipes lighted, the smoker at times submerged and only the glowing
- bowl above the surface; it was stranger still to think they were next
- congeners to the incapable Marquesan. But the Paumotuan not only saves,
- grudges, and works, he steals besides; or, to be more precise, he
- swindles. He will never deny a debt, he only flees his creditor. He is
- always keen for an advance; so soon as he has fingered it he disappears.
- He knows your ship; so soon as it nears one island, he is off to
- another. You may think you know his name; he has already changed it.
- Pursuit in that infinity of isles were fruitless. The result can be
- given in a nutshell. It has been actually proposed in a Government
- report to secure debts by taking a photograph of the debtor; and the
- other day in Papeete credits on the Paumotus to the amount of sixteen
- thousand pounds were sold for less than forty--_quatre cent mille francs
- pour moins de mille francs_. Even so, the purchase was thought
- hazardous; and only the man who made it and who had special
- opportunities could have dared to give so much.
- The Paumotuan is sincerely attached to those of his own blood and
- household. A touching affection sometimes unites wife and husband. Their
- children, while they are alive, completely rule them; after they are
- dead, their bones or their mummies are often jealously preserved and
- carried from atoll to atoll in the wanderings of the family. I was told
- there were many houses in Fakarava with the mummy of a child locked in a
- sea-chest; after I heard it, I would glance a little jealously at those
- by my own bed; in that cupboard, also, it was possible there was a tiny
- skeleton.
- The race seems in a fair way to survive. From fifteen islands, whose
- rolls I had occasion to consult, I found a proportion of 59 births to 47
- deaths for 1887. Dropping three out of the fifteen, there remained for
- the other twelve the comfortable ratio of 50 births to 32 deaths. Long
- habits of hardship and activity doubtless explain the contrast with
- Marquesan figures. But the Paumotuan displays, besides, a certain
- concern for health and the rudiments of a sanitary discipline. Public
- talk with these free-spoken people plays the part of the Contagious
- Diseases Act; incomers to fresh islands anxiously inquire if all be
- well; and syphilis, when contracted, is successfully treated with
- indigenous herbs. Like their neighbours of Tahiti, from whom they have
- perhaps imbibed the error, they regard leprosy with comparative
- indifference, elephantiasis with disproportionate fear. But, unlike
- indeed to the Tahitian, their alarm puts on the guise of self-defence.
- Any one stricken with this painful and ugly malady is confined to the
- ends of villages, denied the use of paths and highways, and condemned to
- transport himself between his house and coco-patch by water only, his
- very footprint being held infectious. Fe'efe'e, being a creature of
- marshes and the sequel of malarial fever, is not original in atolls. On
- the single isle of Makatea, where the lagoon is now a marsh, the disease
- has made a home. Many suffer: they are excluded (if Mr. Wilmot be right)
- from much of the comfort of society; and it is believed they take a
- secret vengeance. The dejections of the sick are considered highly
- poisonous. Early in the morning, it is narrated, aged and malicious
- persons creep into the sleeping village, and stealthily make water at
- the doors of the houses of young men. Thus they propagate disease; thus
- they breathe on and obliterate comeliness and health, the objects of
- their envy. Whether horrid fact or more abominable legend, it equally
- depicts that something bitter and energetic which distinguishes
- Paumotuan man.
- The archipelago is divided between two main religions, Catholic and
- Mormon. They front each other proudly with a false air of permanence;
- yet are but shapes, their membership in a perpetual flux. The Mormon
- attends mass with devotion; the Catholic sits attentive at a Mormon
- sermon, and to-morrow each may have transferred allegiance. One man had
- been a pillar of the Church of Rome for fifteen years; his wife dying,
- he decided that must be a poor religion that could not save a man his
- wife, and turned Mormon. According to one informant, Catholicism was
- the more fashionable in health, but on the approach of sickness it was
- judged prudent to secede. As a Mormon, there were five chances out of
- six you might recover; as a Catholic, your hopes were small; and this
- opinion is perhaps founded on the comfortable rite of unction.
- We all know what Catholics are, whether in the Paumotus or at home. But
- the Paumotuan Mormon seemed a phenomenon apart. He marries but the one
- wife, uses the Protestant Bible, observes Protestant forms of worship,
- forbids the use of liquor and tobacco, practises adult baptism by
- immersion, and after every public sin, rechristens the backslider. I
- advised with Mahinui, whom I found well informed in the history of the
- American Mormons, and he declared against the least connection. "_Pour
- moi_," said he, with a fine charity, "_les Mormons ici un petit
- Catholiques_." Some months later I had an opportunity to consult an
- orthodox fellow-countryman, an old dissenting Highlander, long settled
- in Tahiti, but still breathing of the heather of Tiree. "Why do they
- call themselves Mormons?" I asked. "My dear, and that is my question!"
- he exclaimed. "For by all that I can hear of their doctrine, I have
- nothing to say against it, and their life, it is above reproach." And
- for all that, Mormons they are, but of the earlier sowing: the so-called
- Josephites, the followers of Joseph Smith, the opponents of Brigham
- Young.
- Grant, then, the Mormons to be Mormons. Fresh points at once arise:
- "What are the Israelites? and what the Kanitus?" For a long while back
- the sect had been divided into Mormons proper and so-called Israelites,
- I never could hear why. A few years since there came a visiting
- missionary of the name of Williams, who made an excellent collection,
- and retired, leaving fresh disruption imminent. Something irregular (as
- I was told) in his way of "opening the service" had raised partisans and
- enemies; the church was once more rent asunder; and a new sect, the
- Kanitu, issued from the division. Since then Kanitus and Israelites,
- like the Cameronians and the United Presbyterians, have made common
- cause; and the ecclesiastical history of the Paumotus is, for the
- moment, uneventful. There will be more doing before long, and these
- isles bid fair to be the Scotland of the South. Two things I could never
- learn. The nature of the innovations of the Rev. Mr. Williams none would
- tell me, and of the meaning of the name Kanitu none had a guess. It was
- not Tahitian, it was not Marquesan; it formed no part of that ancient
- speech of the Paumotus, now passing swiftly into obsolescence. One man,
- a priest, God bless him! said it was the Latin for a little dog. I have
- found it since as the name of a god in New Guinea; it must be a bolder
- man than I who should hint at a connection. Here, then, is a singular
- thing: a brand-new sect, arising by popular acclamation, and a nonsense
- word invented for its name.
- The design of mystery seems obvious, and according to a very intelligent
- observer, Mr. Magee of Mangareva, this element of the mysterious is a
- chief attraction of the Mormon Church. It enjoys some of the status of
- Freemasonry at home, and there is for the convert some of the
- exhilaration of adventure. Other attractions are certainly conjoined.
- Perpetual rebaptism, leading to a succession of baptismal feasts, is
- found, both from the social and the spiritual side, a pleasing feature.
- More important is the fact that all the faithful enjoy office; perhaps
- more important still, the strictness of the discipline. "The veto on
- liquor," said Mr. Magee, "brings them plenty members." There is no doubt
- these islanders are fond of drink, and no doubt they refrain from the
- indulgence; a bout on a feast-day, for instance, may be followed by a
- week or a month of rigorous sobriety. Mr. Wilmot attributes this to
- Paumotuan frugality and the love of hoarding; it goes far deeper. I have
- mentioned that I made a feast on board the _Casco_. To wash down ship's
- bread and jam, each guest was given the choice of rum or syrup, and out
- of the whole number only one man voted--in a defiant tone, and amid
- shouts of mirth--for "Trum"! This was in public. I had the meanness to
- repeat the experiment, whenever I had a chance, within the four walls of
- my house; and three at least, who had refused at the festival, greedily
- drank rum behind a door. But there were others thoroughly consistent. I
- said the virtues of the race were bourgeois and puritan; and how
- bourgeois is this! how puritanic! how Scottish! and how Yankee!--the
- temptation, the resistance, the public hypocritical conformity, the
- Pharisees, the Holy Willies, and the true disciples. With such a people
- the popularity of an ascetic Church appears legitimate; in these strict
- rules, in this perpetual supervision, the weak find their advantage, the
- strong a certain pleasure; and the doctrine of rebaptism, a clean bill
- and a fresh start, will comfort many staggering professors.
- There is yet another sect, or what is called a sect--no doubt
- improperly--that of the Whistlers. Duncan Cameron, so clear in favour of
- the Mormons, was no less loud in condemnation of the Whistlers. Yet I do
- not know; I still fancy there is some connection, perhaps fortuitous,
- probably disavowed. Here at least are some doings in the house of an
- Israelite clergyman (or prophet) in the island Anaa, of which I am
- equally sure that Duncan would disclaim and the Whistlers hail them for
- an imitation of their own. My informant, a Tahitian and a Catholic,
- occupied one part of the house; the prophet and his family lived in the
- other. Night after night the Mormons, in the one end, held their evening
- sacrifice of song; night after night, in the other, the wife of the
- Tahitian lay awake and listened to their singing with amazement. At
- length she could contain herself no longer, woke her husband, and asked
- him what he heard. "I hear several persons singing hymns," said he.
- "Yes," she returned, "but listen again! Do you not hear something
- supernatural?" His attention thus directed, he was aware of a strange
- buzzing voice--and yet he declared it was beautiful--which justly
- accompanied the singers. The next day he made inquiries. "It is a
- spirit," said the prophet, with entire simplicity, "which has lately
- made a practice of joining us at family worship." It did not appear the
- thing was visible, and, like other spirits raised nearer home in these
- degenerate days, it was rudely ignorant, at first could only buzz, and
- had only learned of late to bear a part correctly in the music.
- The performances of the Whistlers are more business-like. Their meetings
- are held publicly with open doors, all being "cordially invited to
- attend." The faithful sit about the room--according to one informant,
- singing hymns; according to another, now singing and now whistling; the
- leader, the wizard--let me rather say, the medium--sits in the midst,
- enveloped in a sheet and silent; and presently, from just above his
- head, or sometimes from the midst of the roof, an aerial whistling
- proceeds, appalling to the inexperienced. This, it appears, is the
- language of the dead; its purport is taken down progressively by one of
- the expert, writing, I was told, "as fast as a telegraph operator"; and
- the communications are at last made public. They are of the baldest
- triviality; a schooner is perhaps announced, some idle gossip reported
- of a neighbour, or if the spirit shall have been called to consultation
- on a case of sickness, a remedy may be suggested. One of these,
- immersion in scalding water, not long ago proved fatal to the patient.
- The whole business is very dreary, very silly, and very European; it has
- none of the picturesque qualities of similar conjurations in New
- Zealand; it seems to possess no kernel of possible sense, like some that
- I shall describe among the Gilbert islanders. Yet I was told that many
- hardy, intelligent natives were inveterate whistlers. "Like Mahinui?" I
- asked, willing to have a standard; and I was told "Yes." Why should I
- wonder? Men more enlightened than my convict catechist sit down at home
- to follies equally sterile and dull.
- The medium is sometimes female. It was a woman, for instance, who
- introduced these practices on the north coast of Taiarapu, to the
- scandal of her own connections, her brother-in-law in particular
- declaring she was drunk. But what shocked Tahiti might seem fit enough
- in the Paumotus, the more so as certain women there possess, by the gift
- of nature, singular and useful powers. They say they are honest,
- well-intentioned ladies, some of them embarrassed by their weird
- inheritance. And indeed the trouble caused by this endowment is so
- great, and the protection afforded so infinitesimally small, that I
- hesitate whether to call it a gift or a hereditary curse. You may rob
- this lady's coco-patch, steal her canoes, burn down her house, and slay
- her family scatheless; but one thing you must not do: you must not lay a
- hand upon her sleeping-mat, or your belly will swell, and you can only
- be cured by the lady or her husband. Here is the report of an
- eyewitness, Tasmanian born, educated, a man who has made
- money--certainly no fool. In 1886 he was present in a house on Makatea,
- where two lads began to skylark on the mats, and were (I think) ejected.
- Instantly after, their bellies began to swell; pains took hold on them;
- all manner of island remedies were exhibited in vain, and rubbing only
- magnified their sufferings. The man of the house was called, explained
- the nature of the visitation, and prepared the cure. A cocoa-nut was
- husked, filled with herbs, and with all the ceremonies of a launch, and
- the utterance of spells in the Paumotuan language, committed to the sea.
- From that moment the pains began to grow more easy and the swelling to
- subside. The reader may stare. I can assure him, if he moved much among
- old residents of the archipelago, he would be driven to admit one thing
- of two--either that there is something in the swollen bellies or nothing
- in the evidence of man.
- I have not met these gifted ladies; but I had an experience of my own,
- for I have played, for one night only, the part of the whistling spirit.
- It had been blowing wearily all day, but with the fall of night the wind
- abated, and the moon, which was then full, rolled in a clear sky. We
- went southward down the island on the side of the lagoon, walking
- through long-drawn forest aisles of palm, and on a floor of snowy sand.
- No life was abroad, nor sound of life; till in a clear part of the isle
- we spied the embers of a fire, and not far off, in a dark house, heard
- natives talking softly. To sit without a light, even in company, and
- under cover, is for a Paumotuan a somewhat hazardous extreme. The whole
- scene--the strong moonlight and crude shadows on the sand, the scattered
- coals, the sound of the low voices from the house, and the lap of the
- lagoon along the beach--put me (I know not how) on thoughts of
- superstition. I was barefoot, I observed my steps were noiseless, and
- drawing near to the dark house, but keeping well in shadow, began to
- whistle. "The Heaving of the Lead" was my air--no very tragic piece.
- With the first note the conversation and all movement ceased; silence
- accompanied me while I continued; and when I passed that way on my
- return, I found the lamp was lighted in the house, but the tongues were
- still mute. All night, as I now think, the wretches shivered and were
- silent. For indeed, I had no guess at the time at the nature and
- magnitude of the terrors I inflicted, or with what grisly images the
- notes of that old song had peopled the dark house.
- CHAPTER V
- A PAUMOTUAN FUNERAL
- No, I had no guess of these men's terrors. Yet I had received ere that a
- hint, if I had understood; and the occasion was a funeral.
- A little apart in the main avenue of Rotoava, in a low hut of leaves
- that opened on a small enclosure, like a pigsty on a pen, an old man
- dwelt solitary with his aged wife. Perhaps they were too old to migrate
- with the others; perhaps they were too poor, and had no possessions to
- dispute. At least they had remained behind; and it thus befell that they
- were invited to my feast. I dare say it was quite a piece of politics in
- the pigsty whether to come or not to come, and the husband long
- swithered between curiosity and age, till curiosity conquered, and they
- came, and in the midst of that last merry-making death tapped him on the
- shoulder. For some days, when the sky was bright and the wind cool, his
- mat would be spread in the main highway of the village, and he was to be
- seen lying there inert, a mere handful of man, his wife inertly seated
- by his head. They seemed to have outgrown alike our needs and faculties;
- they neither spoke nor listened; they suffered us to pass without a
- glance; the wife did not fan, she seemed not to attend upon her husband,
- and the two poor antiques sat juxtaposed under the high canopy of palms,
- the human tragedy reduced to its bare elements, a sight beyond pathos,
- stirring a thrill of curiosity. And yet there was one touch of the
- pathetic haunted me: that so much youth and expectation should have run
- in these starved veins, and the man should have squandered all his lees
- of life on a pleasure party.
- On the morning of 17th September the sufferer died, and, time pressing,
- he was buried the same day at four. The cemetery lies to seaward behind
- Government House; broken coral, like so much road-metal, forms the
- surface; a few wooden crosses, a few inconsiderable upright stones,
- designate graves; a mortared wall, high enough to lean on, rings it
- about; a clustering shrub surrounds it with pale leaves. Here was the
- grave dug that morning, doubtless by uneasy diggers, to the sound of the
- nigh sea and the cries of sea-birds; meanwhile the dead man waited in
- his house, and the widow and another aged woman leaned on the fence
- before the door, no speech upon their lips, no speculation in their
- eyes.
- Sharp at the hour the procession was in march, the coffin wrapped in
- white and carried by four bearers; mourners behind--not many, for not
- many remained in Rotoava, and not many in black, for these were poor;
- the men in straw hats, white coats, and blue trousers or the gorgeous
- parti-coloured pariu, the Tahitian kilt; the women, with a few
- exceptions, brightly habited. Far in the rear came the widow, painfully
- carrying the dead man's mat; a creature aged beyond humanity, to the
- likeness of some missing link.
- The dead man had been a Mormon; but the Mormon clergyman was gone with
- the rest to wrangle over boundaries in the adjacent isle, and a layman
- took his office. Standing at the head of the open grave, in a white coat
- and blue pariu, his Tahitian Bible in his hand and one eye bound with a
- red handkerchief, he read solemnly that chapter in Job which has been
- read and heard over the bones of so many of our fathers, and with a good
- voice offered up two prayers. The wind and the surf bore a burthen. By
- the cemetery gate a mother in crimson suckled an infant rolled in blue.
- In the midst the widow sat upon the ground and polished one of the
- coffin-stretchers with a piece of coral; a little later she had turned
- her back to the grave and was playing with a leaf. Did she understand?
- God knows. The officiant paused a moment, stooped, and gathered and
- threw reverently on the coffin a handful of rattling coral. Dust to
- dust: but the grains of this dust were gross like cherries, and the true
- dust that was to follow sat near by, still cohering (as by a miracle) in
- the tragic resemblance of a female ape.
- So far, Mormon or not, it was a Christian funeral. The well-known
- passage had been read from Job, the prayers had been rehearsed, the
- grave was filled, the mourners straggled homeward. With a little coarser
- grain of covering earth, a little nearer outcry of the sea, a stronger
- glare of sunlight on the rude enclosure, and some incongruous colours of
- attire, the well-remembered form had been observed.
- By rights it should have been otherwise. The mat should have been buried
- with its owner; but, the family being poor, it was thriftily reserved
- for a fresh service. The widow should have flung herself upon the grave
- and raised the voice of official grief, the neighbours have chimed in,
- and the narrow isle rung for a space with lamentation. But the widow was
- old; perhaps she had forgotten, perhaps never understood, and she played
- like a child with leaves and coffin-stretchers. In all ways my guest was
- buried with maimed rites. Strange to think that his last conscious
- pleasure was the _Casco_ and my feast; strange to think that he had
- limped there, an old child, looking for some new good. And the good
- thing, rest, had been allotted him.
- But though the widow had neglected much, there was one part she must not
- utterly neglect. She came away with the dispersing funeral; but the dead
- man's mat was left behind upon the grave, and I learned that by set of
- sun she must return to sleep there. This vigil is imperative. From
- sundown till the rising of the morning star the Paumotuan must hold his
- watch above the ashes of his kindred. Many friends, if the dead have
- been a man of mark, will keep the watchers company; they will be well
- supplied with coverings against the weather; I believe they bring food,
- and the rite is persevered in for two weeks. Our poor survivor, if,
- indeed, she properly survived, had little to cover, and few to sit with
- her; on the night of the funeral a strong squall chased her from her
- place of watch; for days the weather held uncertain and outrageous; and
- ere seven nights were up she had desisted, and returned to sleep in her
- low roof. That she should be at the pains of returning for so short a
- visit to a solitary house, that this borderer of the grave should fear a
- little wind and a wet blanket, filled me at the time with musings. I
- could not say she was indifferent; she was so far beyond me in
- experience that the court of my criticism waived jurisdiction; but I
- forged excuses, telling myself she had perhaps little to lament, perhaps
- suffered much, perhaps understood nothing. And lo! in the whole affair
- there was no question whether of tenderness or piety, and the sturdy
- return of this old remnant was a mark either of uncommon sense or of
- uncommon fortitude.
- Yet one thing had occurred that partly set me on the trail. I have said
- the funeral passed much as at home. But when all was over, when we were
- trooping in decent silence from the graveyard gate and down the path to
- the settlement, a sudden inbreak of a different spirit startled and
- perhaps dismayed us. Two people walked not far apart in our procession:
- my friend Mr. Donat--Donat-Rimarau--"Donat the much-handed"--acting
- Vice-Resident, present ruler of the archipelago, by far the man of chief
- importance on the scene, but known besides for one of an unshakable good
- temper; and a certain comely, strapping young Paumotuan woman, the
- comeliest on the isle, not (let us hope) the bravest or the most polite.
- Of a sudden, ere yet the grave silence of the funeral was broken, she
- made a leap at the Resident, with pointed finger shrieked a few words
- and fell back again with a laughter, not a natural mirth. "What did she
- say to you?" I asked. "She did not speak to _me_," said Donat, a shade
- perturbed; "she spoke to the ghost of the dead man." And the purport of
- her speech was this: "See there! Donat will be a fine feast for you
- to-night."
- "M. Donat called it a jest," I wrote at the time in my diary. "It seemed
- to me more in the nature of a terrified conjuration, as though she would
- divert the ghost's attention from herself. A cannibal race may well have
- cannibal phantoms." The guesses of the traveller appear foredoomed to be
- erroneous; yet in these I was precisely right. The woman had stood by in
- terror at the funeral, being then in a dread spot, the graveyard. She
- looked on in terror to the coming night, with that ogre, a new spirit,
- loosed upon the isle. And the words she had cried in Donat's face were
- indeed a terrified conjuration, basely to shield herself, basely to
- dedicate another in her stead. One thing is to be said in her excuse.
- Doubtless she partly chose Donat because he was a man of great
- good-nature, but partly, too, because he was a man of the half-caste.
- For I believe all natives regard white blood as a kind of talisman
- against the powers of hell. In no other way can they explain the
- unpunished recklessness of Europeans.
- CHAPTER VI
- GRAVEYARD STORIES
- With my superstitious friend, the islander, I fear I am not wholly
- frank, often leading the way with stories of my own, and being always a
- grave and sometimes an excited hearer. But the deceit is scarce mortal,
- since I am as pleased to hear as he to tell, as pleased with the story
- as he with the belief; and besides, it is entirely needful. For it is
- scarce possible to exaggerate the extent and empire of his
- superstitions; they mould his life, they colour his thinking; and when
- he does not speak to me of ghosts, and gods, and devils, he is playing
- the dissembler and talking only with his lips. With thoughts so
- different, one must indulge the other; and I would rather that I should
- indulge his superstition than he my incredulity. Of one thing, besides,
- I may be sure: Let me indulge it as I please, I shall not hear the
- whole; for he is already on his guard with me, and the amount of the
- lore is boundless.
- I will give but a few instances at random, chiefly from my own doorstep
- in Upolu, during the past month (October 1890). One of my workmen was
- sent the other day to the banana patch, there to dig; this is a hollow
- of the mountain, buried in woods, out of all sight and cry of mankind;
- and long before dusk Lafaele was back again beside the cook-house with
- embarrassed looks; he dared not longer stay alone, he was afraid of
- "spilits in the bush." It seems these are the souls of the unburied
- dead, haunting where they fell, and wearing woodland shapes of pig, or
- bird, or insect; the bush is full of them, they seem to eat nothing,
- slay solitary wanderers apparently in spite, and at times, in human
- form, go down the villages and consort with the inhabitants undetected.
- So much I learned a day or so after, walking in the bush with a very
- intelligent youth, a native. It was a little before noon; a grey day and
- squally; and perhaps I had spoken lightly. A dark squall burst on the
- side of the mountain; the woods shook and cried; the dead leaves rose
- from the ground in clouds, like butterflies; and my companion came
- suddenly to a full stop. He was afraid, he said, of the trees falling;
- but as soon as I had changed the subject of our talk he proceeded with
- alacrity. A day or two before, a messenger came up the mountain from
- Apia with a letter; I was in the bush, he must await my return, then
- wait till I had answered: and before I was done his voice sounded shrill
- with terror of the coming night and the long forest road. These are the
- commons. Take the chiefs. There has been a great coming and going of
- signs and omens in our group. One river ran down blood; red eels were
- captured in another; an unknown fish was thrown upon the coast, an
- ominous word found written on its scales. So far we might be reading in
- a monkish chronicle; now we come on a fresh note, at once modern and
- Polynesian. The gods of Upolu and Savaii, our two chief islands,
- contended recently at cricket. Since then they are at war. Sounds of
- battle are heard to roll along the coast. A woman saw a man swim from
- the high seas and plunge direct into the bush; he was no man of that
- neighbourhood; and it was known he was one of the gods, speeding to a
- council. Most perspicuous of all, a missionary on Savaii, who is also a
- medical man, was disturbed late in the night by knocking; it was no hour
- for the dispensary, but at length he woke his servant and sent him to
- inquire; the servant, looking from a window, beheld crowds of persons,
- all with grievous wounds, lopped limbs, broken heads, and bleeding
- bulletholes; but when the door was opened all had disappeared. They were
- gods from the field of battle. Now, these reports have certainly
- significance; it is not hard to trace them to political grumblers or to
- read in them a threat of coming trouble; from that merely human side I
- found them ominous myself. But it was the spiritual side of their
- significance that was discussed in secret council by my rulers. I shall
- best depict this mingled habit of the Polynesian mind by two connected
- instances. I once lived in a village, the name of which I do not mean to
- tell. The chief and his sister were persons perfectly intelligent:
- gentlefolk, apt of speech. The sister was very religious, a great
- church-goer, one that used to reprove me if I stayed away; I found
- afterwards that she privately worshipped a shark. The chief himself was
- somewhat of a freethinker; at the least a latitudinarian: he was a man,
- besides, filled with European knowledge and accomplishments; of an
- impassive, ironical habit; and I should as soon have expected
- superstition in Mr. Herbert Spencer. Hear the sequel. I had discovered
- by unmistakable signs that they buried too shallow in the village
- graveyard, and I took my friend, as the responsible authority, to task.
- "There is something wrong about your graveyard," said I, "which you must
- attend to, or it may have very bad results." Something wrong? "What is
- it?" he asked, with an emotion that surprised me. "If you care to go
- along there any evening about nine o'clock you can see for yourself,"
- said I. He stepped backward. "A ghost!" he cried.
- In short, in the whole field of the South Seas, there is not one to
- blame another. Half blood and whole, pious and debauched, intelligent
- and dull, all men believe in ghosts, all men combine with their recent
- Christianity fear of and a lingering faith in the old island deities.
- So, in Europe, the gods of Olympus slowly dwindled into village bogies;
- so to-day, the theological Highlander sneaks from under the eye of the
- Free Church divine to lay an offering by a sacred well.
- I try to deal with the whole matter here because of a particular quality
- in Paumotuan superstitions. It is true I heard them told by a man with a
- genius for such narrations. Close about our evening lamp, within sound
- of the island surf, we hung on his words, thrilling. The reader, in far
- other scenes, must listen close for the faint echo.
- This bundle of weird stories sprang from the burial and the woman's
- selfish conjuration. I was dissatisfied with what I heard, harped upon
- questions, and struck at last this vein of metal. It is from sundown to
- about four in the morning that the kinsfolk camp upon the grave; and
- these are the hours of the spirits' wanderings. At any time of the
- night--it may be earlier, it may be later--a sound is to be heard below,
- which is the noise of his liberation; at four sharp, another and louder
- marks the instant of the re-imprisonment; between-whiles, he goes his
- malignant rounds. "Did you ever see an evil spirit?" was once asked of a
- Paumotuan. "Once." "Under what form?" "It was in the form of a crane."
- "And how did you know that crane to be a spirit?" was asked. "I will
- tell you," he answered; and this was the purport of his inconclusive
- narrative. His father had been dead nearly a fortnight; others had
- wearied of the watch; and as the sun was setting, he found himself by
- the grave alone. It was not yet dark, rather the hour of the afterglow,
- when he was aware of a snow-white crane upon the coral mound; presently
- more cranes came, some white, some black; then the cranes vanished, and
- he saw in their place a white cat, to which there was silently joined a
- great company of cats of every hue conceivable; then these also
- disappeared, and he was left astonished.
- This was an anodyne appearance. Take instead the experience of
- Rua-a-mariterangi on the isle of Katiu. He had a need for some pandanus,
- and crossed the isle to the sea-beach, where it chiefly flourishes. The
- day was still, and Rua was surprised to hear a crashing sound among the
- thickets, and then the fall of a considerable tree. Here must be some
- one building a canoe; and he entered the margin of the wood to find and
- pass the time of day with this chance neighbour. The crashing sounded
- more at hand; and then he was aware of something drawing swiftly near
- among the tree-tops. It swung by its heels downward, like an ape, so
- that its hands were free for murder; it depended safely by the slightest
- twigs; the speed of its coming was incredible; and soon Rua recognised
- it for a corpse, horrible with age, its bowels hanging as it came.
- Prayer was the weapon of Christian in the Valley of the Shadow, and it
- is to prayer that Rua-a-mariterangi attributes his escape. No merely
- human expedition had availed.
- This demon was plainly from the grave; yet you will observe he was
- abroad by day. And inconsistent as it may seem with the hours of the
- night watch and the many references to the rising of the morning star,
- it is no singular exception. I could never find a case of another who
- had seen this ghost, diurnal and arboreal in its habits; but others have
- heard the fall of the tree, which seems the signal of its coming. Mr.
- Donat was once pearling on the uninhabited isle of Haraiki. It was a day
- without a breath of wind, such as alternate in the archipelago with days
- of contumelious breezes. The divers were in the midst of the lagoon upon
- their employment; the cook, a boy of ten, was over his pots in the camp.
- Thus were all souls accounted for except a single native who accompanied
- Donat into the woods in quest of sea-fowls' eggs. In a moment, out of
- the stillness, came the sound of the fall of a great tree. Donat would
- have passed on to find the cause. "No," cried his companion, "that was
- no tree. It was something _not right_. Let us go back to camp." Next
- Sunday the divers were turned on, all that part of the isle was
- thoroughly examined, and sure enough no tree had fallen. A little later
- Mr. Donat saw one of his divers flee from a similar sound, in similar
- unaffected panic, on the same isle. But neither would explain, and it
- was not till afterwards, when he met with Rua, that he learned the
- occasion of their terrors.
- But whether by day or night, the purpose of the dead in these abhorred
- activities is still the same. In Samoa, my informant had no idea of the
- food of the bush spirits; no such ambiguity would exist in the mind of a
- Paumotuan. In that hungry archipelago, living and dead must alike toil
- for nutriment; and the race having been cannibal in the past, the
- spirits are so still. When the living ate the dead, horrified nocturnal
- imagination drew the shocking inference that the dead might eat the
- living. Doubtless they slay men, doubtless even mutilate them, in mere
- malice. Marquesan spirits sometimes tear out the eyes of travellers; but
- even that may be more practical than appears, for the eye is a cannibal
- dainty. And certainly the root-idea of the dead, at least in the far
- eastern islands, is to prowl for food. It was as a dainty morsel for a
- meal that the woman denounced Donat at the funeral. There are spirits
- besides who prey in particular not on the bodies but on the souls of the
- dead. The point is clearly made in a Tahitian story. A child fell sick,
- grew swiftly worse, and at last showed signs of death. The mother
- hastened to the house of a sorcerer, who lived hard by. "You are yet in
- time," said he; "a spirit has just run past my door carrying the soul of
- your child wrapped in the leaf of a purao; but I have a spirit stronger
- and swifter who will run him down ere he has time to eat it." Wrapped in
- a leaf: like other things edible and corruptible.
- Or take an experience of Mr. Donat's on the island of Anaa. It was a
- night of a high wind, with violent squalls; his child was very sick, and
- the father, though he had gone to bed, lay wakeful, hearkening to the
- gale. All at once a fowl was violently dashed on the house wall.
- Supposing he had forgot to put it in shelter with the rest, Donat arose,
- found the bird (a cock) lying on the verandah, and put it in the
- hen-house, the door of which he securely fastened. Fifteen minutes later
- the business was repeated, only this time, as it was being dashed
- against the wall, the bird crew. Again Donat replaced it, examining the
- hen-house thoroughly and finding it quite perfect; as he was so engaged
- the wind puffed out his light, and he must grope back to the door a good
- deal shaken. Yet a third time the bird was dashed upon the wall; a third
- time Donat set it, now near dead, beside its mates; and he was scarce
- returned before there came a rush, like that of a furious strong man,
- against the door, and a whistle as loud as that of a railway engine rang
- about the house. The sceptical reader may here detect the finger of the
- tempest; but the women gave up all for lost and clustered on the beds
- lamenting. Nothing followed, and I must suppose the gale somewhat
- abated, for presently after a chief came visiting. He was a bold man to
- be abroad so late, but doubtless carried a bright lantern. And he was
- certainly a man of counsel, for as soon as he heard the details of these
- disturbances he was in a position to explain their nature. "Your child,"
- said he, "must certainly die. This is the evil spirit of our island who
- lies in wait to eat the spirits of the newly dead." And then he went on
- to expatiate on the strangeness of the spirit's conduct. He was not
- usually, he explained, so open of assault, but sat silent on the
- house-top, waiting, in the guise of a bird, while within the people
- tended the dying and bewailed the dead, and had no thought of peril. But
- when the day came and the doors were opened and men began to go abroad,
- blood-stains on the wall betrayed the tragedy.
- This is the quality I admire in Paumotuan legend. In Tahiti the
- spirit-eater is said to assume a vesture which has much more of pomp,
- but how much less of horror. It has been seen by all sorts and
- conditions, native and foreign; only the last insists it is a meteor. My
- authority was not so sure. He was riding with his wife about two in the
- morning; both were near asleep, and the horses not much better. It was a
- brilliant and still night, and the road wound over a mountain, near by a
- deserted marae (old Tahitian temple). All at once the appearance passed
- above them: a form of light; the head round and greenish; the body
- long, red, and with a focus of yet redder brilliancy about the midst. A
- buzzing hoot accompanied its passage; it flew direct out of one marae,
- and direct for another down the mountain-side. And this, as my informant
- argued, is suggestive. For why should a mere meteor frequent the altars
- of abominable gods? The horses, I should say, were equally dismayed with
- their riders. Now I am not dismayed at all--not even agreeably. Give me
- rather the bird upon the house-top and the morning blood-gouts on the
- wall.
- But the dead are not exclusive in their diet. They carry with them to
- the grave, in particular, the Polynesian taste for fish, and enter at
- times with the living into a partnership in fishery. Rua-a-mariterangi
- is again my authority; I feel it diminishes the credit of the fact, but
- how it builds up the image of this inveterate ghost-seer! He belongs to
- the miserably poor island of Taenga, yet his father's house was always
- well supplied. As Rua grew up he was called at last to go a-fishing with
- this fortunate parent. They rowed into the lagoon at dusk, to an
- unlikely place, and the boy lay down in the stern, and the father began
- vainly to cast his line over the bows. It is to be supposed that Rua
- slept; and when he awoke there was the figure of another beside his
- father, and his father was pulling in the fish hand over hand. "Who is
- that man, father?" Rua asked. "It is none of your business," said the
- father; and Rua supposed the stranger had swum off to them from shore.
- Night after night they fared into the lagoon, often to the most unlikely
- places; night after night the stranger would suddenly be seen on board,
- and as suddenly be missed; and morning after morning the canoe returned
- laden with fish. "My father is a very lucky man," thought Rua. At last,
- one fine day, there came first one boat party and then another who must
- be entertained; father and son put off later than usual into the lagoon;
- and before the canoe was landed it was four o'clock, and the morning
- star was close on the horizon. Then the stranger appeared seized with
- some distress; turned about, showing for the first time his face, which
- was that of one long dead, with shining eyes; stared into the east, set
- the tips of his fingers to his mouth like one a-cold, uttered a strange,
- shuddering sound between a whistle and a moan--a thing to freeze the
- blood; and, the daystar just rising from the sea, he suddenly was not.
- Then Rua understood why his father prospered, why his fishes rotted
- early in the day, and why some were always carried to the cemetery and
- laid upon the graves. My informant is a man not certainly averse to
- superstition, but he keeps his head, and takes a certain superior
- interest, which I may be allowed to call scientific. The last point
- reminding him of some parallel practice in Tahiti, he asked Rua if the
- fish were left, or carried home again after a formal dedication. It
- appears old Mariterangi practised both methods; sometimes treating his
- shadowy partner to a mere oblation, sometimes honestly leaving his fish
- to rot upon the grave.
- It is plain we have in Europe stories of a similar complexion; and the
- Polynesian _varua ino_ or _aitu o le vao_ is clearly the near kinsman of
- the Transylvanian vampire. Here is a tale in which the kinship appears
- broadly marked. On the atoll of Penrhyn, then still partly savage, a
- certain chief was long the salutary terror of the natives. He died, he
- was buried; and his late neighbours had scarce tasted the delights of
- licence ere his ghost appeared about the village. Fear seized upon all;
- a council was held of the chief men and sorcerers; and with the approval
- of the Rarotongan missionary, who was as frightened as the rest, and in
- the presence of several whites--my friend Mr. Ben Hird being one--the
- grave was opened, deepened until water came, and the body re-interred
- face down. The still recent staking of suicides in England and the
- decapitation of vampires in the east of Europe form close parallels.
- So in Samoa only the spirits of the unburied awake fear. During the late
- war many fell in the bush; their bodies, sometimes headless, were
- brought back by native pastors and interred; but this (I know not why)
- was insufficient, and the spirit still lingered on the theatre of death.
- When peace returned a singular scene was enacted in many places, and
- chiefly round the high gorges of Lotoanuu, where the struggle was long
- centred and the loss had been severe. Kinswomen of the dead came
- carrying a mat or sheet and guided by survivors of the fight. The place
- of death was earnestly sought out; the sheet was spread upon the ground;
- and the women, moved with pious anxiety, sat about and watched it. If
- any living thing alighted it was twice brushed away; upon the third
- coming it was known to be the spirit of the dead, was folded in, carried
- home and buried beside the body; and the aitu rested. The rite was
- practised beyond doubt in simple piety; the repose of the soul was its
- object: its motive, reverent affection. The present king disowns indeed
- all knowledge of a dangerous aitu; he declares the souls of the unburied
- were only wanderers in limbo, lacking an entrance to the proper country
- of the dead, unhappy, nowise hurtful. And this severely classic opinion
- doubtless represents the views of the enlightened. But the flight of my
- Lafaele marks the grosser terrors of the ignorant.
- This belief in the exorcising efficacy of funeral rites perhaps explains
- a fact, otherwise amazing, that no Polynesian seems at all to share our
- European horror of human bones and mummies. Of the first they made their
- cherished ornaments; they preserved them in houses or in mortuary caves;
- and the watchers of royal sepulchres dwelt with their children among the
- bones of generations. The mummy, even in the making, was as little
- feared. In the Marquesas, on the extreme coast, it was made by the
- household with continual unction and exposure to the sun; in the
- Carolines, upon the farthest west, it is still cured in the smoke of the
- family hearth. Head-hunting, besides, still lives around my doorstep in
- Samoa. And not ten years ago, in the Gilberts, the widow must disinter,
- cleanse, polish, and thenceforth carry about her, by day and night, the
- head of her dead husband. In all these cases we may suppose the process,
- whether of cleansing or drying, to have fully exorcised the aitu.
- But the Paumotuan belief is more obscure. Here the man is duly buried,
- and he has to be watched. He is duly watched, and the spirit goes abroad
- in spite of watches. Indeed, it is not the purpose of the vigils to
- prevent these wanderings; only to mollify by polite attention the
- inveterate malignity of the dead. Neglect (it is supposed) may irritate
- and thus invite his visits, and the aged and weakly sometimes balance
- risks and stay at home. Observe, it is the dead man's kindred and next
- friends who thus deprecate his fury with nocturnal watchings. Even the
- placatory vigil is held perilous, except in company, and a boy was
- pointed out to me in Rotoava, because he had watched alone by his own
- father. Not the ties of the dead, nor yet their proved character, affect
- the issue. A late Resident, who died in Fakarava of sunstroke, was
- beloved in life and is still remembered with affection; none the less
- his spirit went about the island clothed with terrors, and the
- neighbourhood of Government House was still avoided after dark. We may
- sum up the cheerful doctrine thus: All men become vampires, and the
- vampire spares none. And here we come face to face with a tempting
- inconsistency. For the whistling spirits are notoriously clannish; I
- understood them to wait upon and to enlighten kinsfolk only, and that
- the medium was always of the race of the communicating spirit. Here,
- then, we have the bonds of the family, on the one hand, severed at the
- hour of death; on the other, helpfully persisting.
- The child's soul in the Tahitian tale was wrapped in leaves. It is the
- spirits of the newly dead that are the dainty. When they are slain, the
- house is stained with blood. Rua's dead fisherman was decomposed;
- so--and horribly--was his arboreal demon. The spirit, then, is a thing
- material; and it is by the material ensigns of corruption that he is
- distinguished from the living man. This opinion is widespread, adds a
- gross terror to the more ugly Polynesian tales, and sometimes defaces
- the more engaging with a painful and incongruous touch. I will give two
- examples sufficiently wide apart, one from Tahiti, one from Samoa.
- And first from Tahiti. A man went to visit the husband of his sister,
- then some time dead. In her life the sister had been dainty in the
- island fashion, and went always adorned with a coronet of flowers. In
- the midst of the night the brother awoke and was aware of a heavenly
- fragrance going to and fro in the dark house. The lamp I must suppose to
- have burned out; no Tahitian would have lain down without one lighted. A
- while he lay wondering and delighted; then called upon the rest. "Do
- none of you smell flowers?" he asked. "O," said his brother-in-law, "we
- are used to that here." The next morning these two men went walking, and
- the widower confessed that his dead wife came about the house
- continually, and that he had even seen her. She was shaped and dressed
- and crowned with flowers as in her lifetime; only she moved a few inches
- above the earth with a very easy progress, and flitted dryshod above the
- surface of the river. And now comes my point: It was always in a back
- view that she appeared; and these brothers-in-law, debating the affair,
- agreed that this was to conceal the inroads of corruption.
- Now for the Samoan story. I owe it to the kindness of Dr. F. Otto
- Sierich, whose collection of folk-tales I expect with a high degree of
- interest. A man in Manu'a was married to two wives and had no issue. He
- went to Savaii, married there a third, and was more fortunate. When his
- wife was near her time he remembered he was in a strange island, like a
- poor man; and when his child was born he must be shamed for lack of
- gifts. It was in vain his wife dissuaded him. He returned to his father
- in Manu'a seeking help; and with what he could get he set off in the
- night to re-embark. Now his wives heard of his coming; they were
- incensed he did not stay to visit them; and on the beach, by his canoe,
- intercepted and slew him. Now the third wife lay asleep in Savaii; her
- babe was born and slept by her side; and she was awakened by the spirit
- of her husband. "Get up," he said, "my father is sick in Manu'a and we
- must go to visit him." "It is well," said she; "take you the child,
- while I carry its mats." "I cannot carry the child," said the spirit; "I
- am too cold from the sea." When they were got on board the canoe the
- wife smelt carrion. "How is this?" she said. "What have you in the canoe
- that I should smell carrion?" "It is nothing in the canoe," said the
- spirit. "It is the land-wind blowing down the mountains, where some
- beast lies dead." It appears it was still night when they reached
- Manu'a--the swiftest passage on record--and as they entered the reef the
- bale-fires burned in the village. Again she asked him to carry the
- child; but now he need no more dissemble. "I cannot carry your child,"
- said he, "for I am dead, and the fires you see are burning for my
- funeral."
- The curious may learn in Dr. Sierich's book the unexpected sequel of the
- tale. Here is enough for my purpose. Though the man was but new dead,
- the ghost was already putrefied, as though putrefaction were the mark
- and of the essence of a spirit. The vigil on the Paumotuan grave does
- not extend beyond two weeks, and they told me this period was thought to
- coincide with that of the resolution of the body. The ghost always
- marked with decay--the danger seemingly ending with the process of
- dissolution--here is tempting matter for the theorist. But it will not
- do. The lady of the flowers had been long dead, and her spirit was still
- supposed to bear the brand of perishability. The Resident had been more
- than a fortnight buried, and his vampire was still supposed to go the
- rounds.
- Of the lost state of the dead, from the lurid Mangaian legend, in which
- infernal deities hocus and destroy the souls of all, to the various
- submarine and aerial limbos where the dead feast, float idle, or resume
- the occupations of their life on earth, it would be wearisome to tell.
- One story I give, for it is singular in itself, is well known in Tahiti,
- and has this of interest, that it is post-Christian, dating indeed from
- but a few years back. A princess of the reigning house died; was
- transported to the neighbouring isle of Raiatea; fell there under the
- empire of a spirit who condemned her to climb coco-palms all day and
- bring him the nuts; was found after some time in this miserable
- servitude by a second spirit, one of her own house; and by him, upon her
- lamentations, reconveyed to Tahiti, where she found her body still
- waked, but already swollen with the approaches of corruption. It is a
- lively point in the tale that, on the sight of this dishonoured
- tabernacle, the princess prayed she might continue to be numbered with
- the dead. But it seems it was too late, her spirit was replaced by the
- least dignified of entrances, and her startled family beheld the body
- move. The seemingly purgatorial labours, the helpful kindred spirit, and
- the horror of the princess at the sight of her tainted body, are all
- points to be remarked.
- The truth is, the tales are not necessarily consistent in themselves;
- and they are further darkened for the stranger by an ambiguity of
- language. Ghosts, vampires, spirits, and gods are all confounded. And
- yet I seem to perceive that (with exceptions) those whom we would count
- gods were less maleficent. Permanent spirits haunt and do murder in
- corners of Samoa; but those legitimate gods of Upolu and Savaii, whose
- wars and cricketings of late convulsed society, I did not gather to be
- dreaded, or not with a like fear. The spirit of Anaa that ate souls is
- certainly a fearsome inmate; but the high gods, even of the archipelago,
- seem helpful. Mahinui--from whom our convict-catechist had been
- named--the spirit of the sea, like a Proteus endowed with endless
- avatars, came to the assistance of the shipwrecked and carried them
- ashore in the guise of a ray-fish. The same divinity bore priests from
- isle to isle about the archipelago, and by his aid, within the century,
- persons have been seen to fly. The tutelar deity of each isle is
- likewise helpful, and by a particular form of wedge-shaped cloud on the
- horizon announces the coming of a ship.
- To one who conceives of these atolls, so narrow, so barren, so beset
- with sea, here would seem a superfluity of ghostly denizens. And yet
- there are more. In the various brackish pools and ponds, beautiful women
- with long red hair are seen to rise and bathe; only (timid as mice) on
- the first sound of feet upon the coral they dive again for ever. They
- are known to be healthy and harmless living people, dwellers of an
- underworld; and the same fancy is current in Tahiti, where also they
- have the hair red. _Tetea_ is the Tahitian name; the Paumotuan,
- _Mokurea_.
- PART III
- THE EIGHT ISLANDS
- CHAPTER I
- THE KONA COAST
- Of the island of Hawaii, though I have passed days becalmed under its
- lee, and spent a week upon its shores, I have never yet beheld the
- profile. Dense clouds continued to enshroud it far below its midst; not
- only the zone of snow and fire, but a great part of the forest region,
- covered or at least veiled by a perpetual rain. And yet even on my first
- sight, beholding so little and that through a glass from the deck of the
- _Casco_, the rude plutonic structure of the isle was conspicuous. Here
- was none of the accustomed glitter of the beach, none of the close
- shoreside forests of the typical high island. All seemed black and
- barren, and to slope sheer into the sea. Unexpected movements of the
- land caught the attention, folds that glittered with a certain
- vitreosity; black mouths of caves; ranges of low cliffs, vigorously
- designed awhile in sun and shadow, and that sank again into the general
- declivity of the island glacis. Under its gigantic cowl of cloud, the
- coast frowned upon us with a face of desolation.
- On my return I passed from a humming city, with shops and palaces and
- busy wharves, plying cabs and tramcars, telephones in operation and a
- railway in the building; mounted a strong and comfortable local steamer;
- sailed under desolate shores indeed, but guided in the night by sea and
- harbour lights; and was set down at last in a village uninhabited by any
- white, the creature of pure native taste--of which, what am I to say but
- that I know no such village in Europe? A well-to-do western hamlet in
- the States would be the closest parallel; and it is a moderate prophecy
- to call it so already.
- Hookena is its name. It stands on the same coast which I had wondered at
- before from the tossing _Casco_; the same coast on which the far voyager
- Cook ended a noble career not very nobly. That district of Kona where he
- fell is one illustrious in the history of Hawaii. It was at first the
- centre of the dominion of the great Kamehameha. There, in an unknown
- sepulchre, his bones are still hidden; there, too, his reputed
- treasures, spoils of a buccaneer, lie, and are still vainly sought for,
- in one of the thousand caverns of the lava. There the tabus were first
- broken, there the missionaries first received; and but for the new use
- of ships and the new need of harbours, here might be still the chief
- city and the organs of the kingdom. Yet a nearer approach confirmed the
- impression of the distance. It presents to the seaward one immense
- decline. Streams of lava have followed and submerged each other down
- this slope, and overflowed into the sea. These cooled and shrank, and
- were buried under fresh inundations, or dislocated by fresh tremors of
- the mountain. A multiplicity of caves is the result. The mouths of caves
- are everywhere; the lava is tunnelled with corridors and halls; under
- houses high on the mountain, the sea can be heard throbbing in the
- bowels of the land; and there is one gallery of miles, which has been
- used by armies as a pass. Streams are thus unknown. The rain falls
- continually in the highlands: an isle that rises nearly fourteen
- thousand feet sheer from the sea could never fail of rain; but the
- treasure is squandered on a sieve; and by sunless conduits returns
- unseen into the ocean. Corrugated slopes of lava, bristling lava cliffs,
- spouts of metallic clinkers, miles of coast without a well or rivulet;
- scarce anywhere a beach, nowhere a harbour: here seems a singular land
- to be contended for in battle as a seat for courts and princes. Yet it
- possessed in the eyes of the natives one more than countervailing
- advantage. The windward shores of the isle are beaten by a monstrous
- surf; there are places where goods and passengers must be hauled up and
- lowered by a rope, there are coves which even the daring boatmen of
- Hamakua dread to enter; and men live isolated in their hamlets or
- communicate by giddy footpaths in the cliff. Upon the side of Kona, the
- table-like margin of the lava affords almost everywhere a passage by
- land; and the waves, reduced by the vast breakwater of the island, allow
- an almost continual communication by way of sea.
- Yet even here the surf of the Pacific appears formidable to the stranger
- as he lands, and daily delights him with its beauty as he walks the
- shore.
- It was on a Saturday afternoon that the steamer _Hall_ conveyed me to
- Hookena. She was charged with tourists on their way to the volcano; and
- I found it hard to justify my choice of a week in an unheard-of hamlet,
- rather than a visit to one of the admitted marvels of the world. I do
- not know that I can justify it now and to a larger audience. I should
- prefer, indeed, to have seen both; but I was at the time embarrassed
- with arrears of work; it was imperative that I should choose; and I
- chose one week in a Kona village and another in the lazaretto, and
- renounced the craters of Maunaloa and Haleakala. For there are some so
- constituted as to find a man or a society more curious than the highest
- mountain; some, in whom the lava foreshores of Kona and Kaú will move as
- deep a wonder as the fiery vents that made them what they are.
- The land and sea breezes alternate on the Kona coast with regularity;
- and the veil of rain draws up and down the talus of the mountain, now
- retiring to the zone of forests, now descending to the margin of the
- sea. It was in one of the latter and rarer moments that I was set on
- board a whale boat full of intermingled barrels, passengers, and
- oarsmen. The rain fell and blotted the crude and sombre colours of the
- scene. The coast rose but a little way; it was then intercepted by the
- cloud: and for all that appeared, we might have been landing on an isle
- of some two hundred feet of elevation. On the immediate foreshore, under
- a low cliff, there stood some score of houses, trellised and
- verandahed, set in narrow gardens, and painted gaudily in green and
- white; the whole surrounded and shaded by a grove of cocoa-palms and
- fruit trees, springing (as by miracle) from the bare lava. In front, the
- population of the neighbourhood were gathered for the weekly incident,
- the passage of the steamer; sixty to eighty strong, and attended by a
- disproportionate allowance of horses, mules, and donkeys; for this land
- of rock is, singular to say, a land of breeding. The green trees, the
- painted houses, the gay dresses of the women, were everywhere relieved
- on the uncompromising blackness of the lava; and the rain, which fell
- unheeded by the sightseers, blended and beautified the contrast.
- The boat was run in upon a breaker, and we passengers ejected on a flat
- rock where the next wave submerged us to the knees. There we continued
- to stand, the rain drenching us from above, the sea from below, like
- people mesmerised; and as we were all (being travellers) tricked out
- with the green garlands of departure, we must have offered somewhat the
- same appearance as a shipwrecked picnic.
- The purser spied and introduced me to my host, ex-judge Nahinu, who was
- then deep in business, despatching and receiving goods. He was dressed
- in pearl-grey tweed like any self-respecting Englishman; only the band
- of his wide-awake was made of peacock's feather.--"House by and by,"
- said he, his English being limited, and carried me to the shelter of a
- rather lofty shed. On three sides it was open, on the fourth closed by a
- house; it was reached from without by five or six wooden steps; on the
- fourth side, a farther flight of ten conducted to the balcony of the
- house; a table spread with goods divided it across, so that I knew it
- for the village store and (according to the laws that rule in country
- life) the village lounging-place. People sat with dangling feet along
- the house verandah, they sat on benches on the level of the shed or
- among the goods upon the counter; they came and went, they talked and
- waited; they opened, skimmed, and pocketed half-read, their letters;
- they opened the journal, and found a moment, not for the news, but for
- the current number of the story: methought, I might have been in France,
- and the paper the _Petit Journal_ instead of the _Nupepa Eleele_. On
- other islands I had been the centre of attention; here none observed my
- presence. One hundred and ten years before, the ancestors of these
- indifferents had looked in the faces of Cook and his seamen with
- admiration and alarm, called them gods, called them volcanoes; took
- their clothes for a loose skin, confounded their hats and their heads,
- and described their pockets as a "treasure door, through which they
- plunge their hands into their bodies and bring forth cutlery and
- necklaces and cloth and nails," and to-day the coming of the most
- attractive stranger failed (it would appear) to divert them from Miss
- Porter's _Scottish Chiefs_: for that was the novel of the day.
- My host returned, and led me round the shore among the mules and donkeys
- to his house. Like all the houses of the hamlet, it was on the European
- or, to be more descriptive, on the American plan. The parlour was fitted
- with the usual furniture and ornamented with the portraits of Kamehameha
- the third, Lunalilo, Kalakaua, the queen consort of the isles, and Queen
- Victoria. There was a Bible on the table, other books stood on a shelf.
- A comfortable bedroom was placed at my service, the welcome afforded me
- was cordial and unembarrassed, the food good and plentiful. My host, my
- hostess; his grown daughters, strapping lassies; his young hopefuls,
- misbehaving at a meal or perfunctorily employed upon their school-books:
- all that I found in that house, beyond the speech and a few exotic
- dishes on the table, would have been familiar and exemplary in Europe.
- I walked that night beside the sea. The steamer with its lights and
- crowd of tourists was gone by; it had left me alone among these aliens,
- and I felt no touch of strangeness. The trim, lamp-lit houses shining
- quietly, like villas, each in its narrow garden; the gentle sound of
- speech from within; the room that awaited my return, with the lamp, and
- the books, and the spectacled householder studying his Bible:--there was
- nothing changed; it was in such conditions I had myself grown up, and
- played, a child, beside the borders of another sea. And some ten miles
- from where I walked, Cook was adored as a deity; his bones, when he was
- dead, were cleansed for worship; his entrails devoured in a mistake by
- rambling children.
- A day of session in the Hookena Court-house equally surprised me. The
- judge, a very intelligent, serious Hawaiian, sat behind a table, taking
- careful notes; two policemen, with their bright metal badges, standing
- attention at his back or bustling forth on errands. The plaintiff was a
- Portuguese. For years, he had kept store and raised cattle in the
- district, without trouble or dispute. His store stood always open, it
- was standing so seven miles away at the moment of the case; and when his
- cattle strayed, they were duly impounded and restored to him on payment
- of one shilling. But recently a gentleman of great acuteness and a
- thousand imperfect talents had married into the family of a neighbouring
- proprietor; consecutively on which event the store-keeper's cattle began
- to be detained and starved, the fine rose to half a dollar, and lastly a
- cow had disappeared. The Portuguese may have been right or wrong: he was
- convinced the new-comer was the main-spring of the change; called a suit
- in consequence against the father-in-law;--and it was the son-in-law who
- appeared for the defence. I saw him there, seated at his ease, with
- spectacles on brow; still young, much of a gentleman in looks, and
- dressed in faultless European clothes; and presently, for my good
- fortune, he rose to address the court. It appears he has already stood
- for the Hawaiian parliament; but the people (I was told) "did not think
- him honest," and he was defeated. Honesty, to our ways of thought,
- appears a trifle in a candidate; and I think we have few constituencies
- to refuse so great a charmer. I understood but a few dozen words, yet I
- heard the man with delight, followed the junctures of his argument, knew
- when he was enumerating points in his own favour, when he was admitting
- those against him, when he was putting a question _per absurdum_, when
- (after the due pause) he smilingly replied to it. There was no haste, no
- heat, no prejudice; with a hinted gesture, with a semitone of
- intonation, the speaker lightly set forth and underlined the processes
- of reason; he could not shift a foot nor touch his spectacles, but what
- persuasion radiated in the court--it is impossible to conceive a style
- of oratory more rational or civilised. The point to which he spoke was
- pretty in itself. The people, as I had been told, did not think the
- orator honest; some judge, on a particular occasion, had inclined to the
- same view, and the man of talent was disbarred. By a clause in a
- statute, a layman or a disbarred lawyer might conduct a case for himself
- or for one of "his own family." Is a father-in-law one of a man's own
- family? "Yes," argued the orator: "No," with less grace and perspicuity,
- Nahinu, retained by the Portuguese. The laws of the tight little kingdom
- are conceived in duplicate for the Hawaiian hare and his many white
- friends. The native text appearing inconclusive, an appeal was made to
- the English, and I (as _amicus curiæ_) was led out, installed upon the
- court-house steps, and painfully examined as to its precise
- significance. The judge heard the orator; he heard Nahinu; he received
- by the mouth of the schoolmaster my report, for which he thanked me with
- a bow; and ruled the claimant out. This skirmish decided the fate of the
- engagement; fortune was faithful to the Portuguese; and late in the
- afternoon, the capable judge rode off homeward with his portfolio under
- his arm. No court could have been more equally and decently conducted;
- judge, parties, lawyers, and police were all decorous and competent; and
- but for the plaintiff, the business was entirely native.
- The Portuguese had come seven miles to Hookena, sure of substantial
- justice, and he left his store open, fearless of being robbed. Another
- white man, of strong sense and much frugality and choler, thus reckoned
- up what he had lost by theft in thirty-nine years among the different
- islands of Hawaii: a pair of shoes, an umbrella, some feet of hose-pipe,
- and one batch of chickens. It is his continual practice to send
- Hawaiians by a perilous, solitary path with sums in specie; at any
- moment the messenger might slip, the money-bag roll down a thousand feet
- of precipice, and lodge in fissures inaccessible to man: and consider
- how easy it were to invent such misadventures!--"I should have to know a
- white man well before I trusted him," he said; "I trust Hawaiians
- without fear. It would be villainous of me to say less." It should be
- remembered the Hawaiians of yore were not particular; they were eager to
- steal from Cook, whom they believed to be a god, and it was a theft that
- led to the tragedy at Kealakekua Bay; and it must not be forgotten that
- the Hawaiians of to-day are many of them poor. One residual trait of
- savage incompetence I have already referred to; they cannot administer a
- trust--I was told there had never yet been a case known. Even a judge,
- skilled in the knowledge of the law and upright in its administration,
- was found insusceptible of those duties and distinctions which appear so
- natural and come so easy to the European. But the disability stands
- alone, a single survival in the midst of change; and the faults of the
- modern Hawaiian incline to the other side. My orator of Hookena
- court-room may be a gentleman much maligned; I may have received his
- character from the lips of his political opponents; but the type
- described is common. The islands begin to fill with lawyers; many of
- whom, justly or unjustly, are disbarred; and to the age of Kamehameha,
- the age of Glossin has succeeded. Thus none would rob the store of the
- Portuguese, but the law was wrested to oppress him.
- It was of old a warlike and industrious race. They were diggers and
- builders; the isles are still full of their deserted monuments; the
- modern word for law, Kanawai, "water rights," still serves to remind us
- of their ancient irrigation. And the island story is compact of battles.
- Their courage and goodwill to labour seems now confined to the sea,
- where they are active sailors and fearless boatmen, pursue the shark in
- his own element, and make a pastime of their incomparable surf. On shore
- they flee equally from toil and peril, and are all turned to carpet
- occupations and to parlous frauds. Nahinu, an ex-judge, was paid but two
- dollars for a hard day in court, and he is paying a dollar a day to the
- labourers among his coffee. All Hawaiians envy and are ready to compete
- with him for this odd chance of an occasional fee for some hours'
- talking; he cannot find one to earn a certain hire under the sun in his
- plantation, and the work is all transacted by immigrant Chinese. One
- cannot but be reminded of the love of the French middle class for office
- work; but in Hawaii, it is the race in bulk that shrinks from manly
- occupation. During a late revolution, a lady found a powerful young
- Hawaiian crouching among the grass in her garden. "What are you doing
- here?" she cried, for she was a strong partisan. "Do you not know they
- are murdering your king?" "I know," said the skulker. "Why do you not go
- to help him?" she asked. "Aflaid," said the poor craven, and crouched
- again among the grass. Here was a strange grandchild for the warriors
- that followed or faced Kamehameha. I give the singular instance as the
- more explicit; but the whole race must have been stricken at the moment
- with a similar weakness. No man dare say of this revolution that it was
- unprovoked; but its means were treachery and violence; the numbers and
- position of those engaged made the design one of the most insolent in
- history; and a mere modicum of native boldness and cohesion must have
- brought it to the dust. "My race had one virtue, they were brave," said
- a typical Hawaiian: "and now they have taken that away."
- I have named a French example: but the thought that haunts the stranger
- in Hawaii is that of Italy. The ruggedness of feature which marks out
- the race among Polynesians is the Italian ruggedness. Countenances of
- the same eloquent harshness, manners of the same vivacious cordiality,
- are to be found in Hawaii and amongst Italian fisher-folk or whose
- people, in the midst of life, retain more charm. I recall faces, both of
- men and women, with a certain leonine stamp, trusty, sagacious, brave,
- beautiful in plainness: faces that take the heart captive. The tougher
- struggle of the race in these hard isles has written history there;
- energy enlivens the Hawaiian strength--or did so once, and the faces are
- still eloquent of the lost possession. The stock that has produced a
- Cæsar, a Kamehameha, a Káa-humanu, retains their signature.
- CHAPTER II
- A RIDE IN THE FOREST
- By the Hawaiian tongue, the slope of these steep islands is parcelled
- out in zones. As we mount from the seaboard, we pass by the region of
- Ilima, named for a flowering shrub, and the region of Apaa, named for a
- wind, to Mau, the place of mist. This has a secondary name, the Au- or
- Wao-Kanaka, "the place of men" by exclusion, man not dwelling higher.
- The next, accordingly, is called the Waoakua, region of gods and
- goblins; other names, some apparently involving thoughts of solitude and
- danger, follow till the top is reached. The mountain itself might be a
- god or the seat of a god; it might be a volcano, the home of the dread
- Pele; and into desert places few would venture but such as were adroit
- to snare the whispering spirits of the dead. To-day, from the Waoakua or
- the Waomaukele, the gods have perhaps fled; the descendants of
- Vancouver's cattle fill them with less questionable terrors.
- As we mounted the glacis of the island, the horses clattering on the
- lava, we saw far above us the curtain of the rain exclude the view. The
- sky was clear, the sun strong overhead; around us, a thin growth of
- bushes and creepers glittered green in their black setting, like plants
- upon a ruinous pavement; all else was lava--wastes of lava, some of them
- enclosed (it seemed in wantonness) with dry-stone walls. But the bushes,
- when the rain descends often enough from its residential altitudes,
- flourish extremely; and cattle and asses, walking on these resonant
- slabs, collect a livelihood. Here and there, a prickly-pear came to the
- bigness of a standard tree and made a space of shade; under one I saw a
- donkey--under another no less than three cows huddled from the sun. Thus
- we had before our eyes the rationale of two of the native distinctions;
- traversed the zone of flowering shrubs; and saw above us the mist hang
- perennial in Mau.
- As we continued to draw nearer to the rain, trees began to be mingled
- with the shrubs; and we came at last to where a house stood in an
- orchard of papaias, with their palm-like growth and collar of green
- gourds. In an out-house stood the water-barrel, that necessity of Kona
- life. For all the water comes from heaven, and must be caught and
- stored; and the name of Hookena itself may very well imply a cistern and
- a cup of water for the traveller along the coast. The house belonged to
- Nahinu, but was in occupation by an American, seeking to make butter
- there (if I understood) without success. The butterman was gone, to muse
- perhaps on fresh expedients; his house was closed; and I was able to
- observe his three chambers only through the windows. In the first were
- milk pans and remains of breakfast, in the second a bed; in the third a
- scanty wardrobe hung from pegs, and two pirated novels lay on the floor.
- One was reversed and could not be identified; the name of the other I
- made out. It was _Little Loo_. Happy Mr. Clark Russell, making life
- pleasant for the exile in his garden of papaias, high over sea, upon the
- forest edge, and where the breeze comes freely.
- A little way beyond, we plunged into the forest. It grew at first very
- sparse and park-like, the trees of a pale verdure, but healthy, the
- parasites, per contra, often dead. Underfoot, the ground was still a
- rockery of fractured lava; but now the interstices were filled with
- soil. A sedge-like grass (buffalo grass?) grew everywhere, and the
- horses munched it by the way with relish. Candle-nut trees with their
- white foliage stood in groves. Bread-fruits were here and there, but
- never well-to-do; Hawaii is no true mother for the bread-fruit or the
- cocoa-palm. Mangoes, on the other hand, attained a splendid bigness,
- many of them discoloured on one side with a purplish hue which struck
- the note of autumn. The same note was repeated by a certain aerial
- creeper, which drops (you might suppose) from heaven like the wreck of
- an old kite, and roosts on tree-tops with a pendent raffle of air-roots,
- the whole of a colour like a wintry beech's. These are clannish plants;
- five or six may be quartered on a single tree, thirty or forty on a
- grove; the wood dies under them to skeletons; and they swing there, like
- things hung out from washing, over the death they have provoked.
- We had now turned southward towards Kaa, following a shapeless
- bridle-track which is the high road of Hawaii. The sea was on one hand.
- Our way was across--the woods we threaded did but cling upon--the vast
- declivity of the island front. For long, as we still skirted the margin
- of the forest, we kept an open view of the whole falling seaboard, the
- white edge of surf now soundless to our ears, and the high blue sea
- marbled by tide rips, and showing under the clouds of an opalescent
- milky white. The height, the breeze, the giddy gradient of the isle,
- delighted me. I observed a spider plant its abhorred St. Andrew's cross
- against the sea and sky, certainly fifty yards from where I rode, and
- five feet at least from either tree: so wide was its death-gossamer
- spread, so huge the ugly vermin.
- Presently the sea was lost, the forest swallowed us. Ferns joined their
- fronds above a horseman's head. High over these, the dead and the living
- rose and were hung with tattered parasites. The breeze no longer reached
- us; it was steaming hot; and the way went up and down so abruptly, that
- in one place my saddle-girth was burst and we must halt for repairs. In
- the midst of this rough wilderness, I was reminded of the aim of our
- excursion. The schoolmaster and certain others of Hookena had recently
- bought a tract of land for some four thousand dollars; set out coffee;
- and hired a Chinaman to mind it. The thing was notable in itself;
- natives selling land is a thing of daily custom; of natives buying, I
- have heard no other instance; and it was civil to show interest. "But
- when," I asked, "shall we come to your coffee plantation?" "This is it,"
- said he, and pointed down. Their bushes grew on the path-side; our
- horses breasted them as they went by; and the gray wood on every hand
- enclosed and over-arched that thread of cultivation.
- A little farther, we strung in single file through the hot crypt, our
- horses munching grass, their riders chewing unpalatable gum collected
- from a tree. Next the wood opened, and we issued forth again into the
- day on the precipitous broadside of the isle. A village was before us: a
- Catholic church and perhaps a dozen scattered houses, some of grass in
- the old island fashion, others spick-and-span with outside stair and
- balcony and trellis, and white paint and green, in the more modern
- taste. One arrested my attention; it stood on the immediate verge of a
- deep precipice: two stories high, with double balconies, painted white,
- and showing by my count fifteen windows. "There is a fine house," said
- I. "Outside," returned the schoolmaster drily. "That is the way with
- natives; they spend money on the outside. Let us go there: you will find
- they live in the verandah and have no furniture." We were made welcome,
- sure enough, on the verandah; and in the lower room, which I entered,
- there was not a chair or table; only mats on the floor, and photographs
- and lithographs upon the wall. The house was an eidolon, designed to
- gladden the eye and enlarge the heart of the proprietor returning from
- Hookena; and its fifteen windows were only to be numbered from without.
- Doubtless that owner had attained his end; for I observed, when we were
- home again at Hookena, and Nahinu was describing our itinerary to his
- wife, he mentioned we had baited at Ka-hale-nui--"the great house."
- The photographs were of the royal family; that goes without saying in
- Hawaii; of the two lithographs, made in San Francisco, one I knew at the
- first sight for General Garfield: the second tempted and tantalised me;
- it could not be, I thought--and yet it must; it was this dubiety which
- carried me across the threshold; and behold! It was indeed the Duke of
- Thunder, his name printed under his effigies in the Hawaiianised form of
- _Nelesona_. I thought it a fine instance of fame that his features and
- his empty sleeve should have been drawn on stone in San Fransisco, which
- was a lone Mexican mission while he lived; and lettered for a market in
- those islands, which were not yet united under Kamehameha when he died.
- And then I had a cold fit, and wondered after all if these good folk
- knew anything of the man's world-shaking deeds and gunpowder weaknesses,
- or if he was to them a "bare appellation" and a face on stone; and
- turning to the schoolmaster, I asked of him the question. Yes, the
- Hawaiians knew of Nelesona; there had been a story in the papers where
- he figured, and the portrait had been given for a supplement. So he was
- known as a character of Romance! Brave men since Agamemnon, like the
- brave before, must patiently expect the "inspired author." And nowhere
- has fiction deeper roots than in the world of Polynesia. They are all
- tellers and hearers of tales; and the first requisite of any native
- paper is a story from the English or the French. These are of all sorts,
- and range from the works of good Miss Porter to _The Lightning
- Detective_. Miss Porter, I was told, was "drawing" in Hawaii; and Dumas
- and the _Arabian Nights_ were named as having pleased extremely.
- Our homeward way was down the hill and by the sea in the black open. We
- traversed a waste of shattered lava; spires, ravines, well-holes showing
- the entrance to vast subterranean vaults in whose profundities our
- horse-hooves doubtless echoed. The whole was clothed with stone
- _fiorituri_ fantastically fashioned, like débris from the workshop of
- some brutal sculptor: dog's heads, devils, stone trees, and gargoyles
- broken in the making. From a distance, so intricate was the detail, the
- side of a hummock wore the appearance of some coarse and dingy sort of
- coral, or a scorched growth of heather. Amid this jumbled wreck, naked
- itself, and the evidence of old disaster, frequent plants found root:
- rose-apples bore their rosy flowers; and a bush between a cypress and a
- juniper attained at times a height of twenty feet.
- The breakneck path had descended almost to the sea, and we were already
- within sound of its reverberations, when a cliff hove up suddenly on the
- landward hand, very rugged and broken, streaked with white lichen,
- laddered with green lianas, and pierced with the apertures of half a
- hundred caves. Two of these were piously sealed with doors, the wood
- scarce weathered. For the Hawaiian remembers the repository of the bones
- of old, and is still jealous of the safety of ancestral relics. Nor
- without cause. For the white man comes and goes upon the hunt for
- curiosities; and one (it is rumoured) consults soothsayers and explores
- the caves of Kona after the fabled treasures of Kamehameha.
- CHAPTER III
- THE CITY OF REFUGE
- Our way was northward on the naked lava of the coast. The schoolmaster
- led the march on a trumpeting black stallion; not without anxious
- thought, I followed after on a mare. The sun smote us fair and full; the
- air streamed from the hot rock, the distant landscape gleamed and
- trembled through its vortices. On the left, the coast heaved bodily
- upward to Mau, the zone of mists and forests, where it rains all day,
- and the clouds creep up and down, and the groves loom and vanish in the
- margin.
- The land was still a crust of lava, here and there ramparted with
- cliffs, and which here and there breaks down and shows the mouths of
- branching galleries, mines and tombs of nature's making, endlessly
- vaulted, and ramified below our passage. Wherever a house is,
- cocoa-palms spring sheer out of the rock; a little shabby in this
- northern latitude, not visibly the worse for their inclement rooting.
- Hookena had shone out green under the black lip of the overhanging crag,
- green as a May orchard; the lava might have been some rich black loam.
- Everywhere, in the fissures of the rock, green herbs and flowering
- bushes prospered; donkeys and cattle were everywhere; everywhere, too,
- their whitened bones, telling of drought. No sound but of the sea
- pervades this region; and it smells strong of the open water and of
- aromatic plants.
- We skirted one cliffy cove, full of bursting surges; and if it had not
- been for the palms, and the houses, and the canoes that were putting out
- to fish, and the colour of the cliffs and the bright dresses (lilac,
- red, and green) of the women that sat about the doors at work, I might
- have thought myself in Devonshire. A little further, we passed a garden
- enclosed in dry stone walls from the surrounding blackness; it seemed a
- wonder of fertility; hard by was the owner, a white man, waiting the
- turn of the tide by the margin of his well; so soon as the sea flowed,
- he might begin to irrigate with brackish water. The children hailed my
- companion from wayside houses. With one little maid, knotting her gown
- about her in embarrassment so as to define her little person like a suit
- of tights, we held a conversation more prolonged. "Will you be at school
- to-morrow?" "Yes, sir." "Do you like school?" "Yes, sir." "Do you like
- bathing?" "No, ma'am," with a staggering change of sex. Another maiden,
- of more tender growth and wholly naked, fled into the house at our
- approach, and appeared again with a corner of a towel. Leaning one hand
- on the post, and applying her raiment with the other, she stood in the
- door and watched us haughtily. The white flag of a surveyor and a
- pound-master's notice on a board told of the reign of law.
- At length we turned the corner of a point and debouched on a flat of
- lava. On the landward hand, cliffs made a quadrant of an amphitheatre,
- melting on either side into the general mountain of the isle. Over
- these, rivers of living lava had once flowed, had frozen as they fell,
- and now depended like a sculptured drapery. Here and there the mouth of
- a cave was seen half blocked, some green lianas beckoning in the
- entrance. In front, the fissured pavement of the lava stretched into the
- sea and made a surfy point. A scattered village, two white churches, one
- Catholic, one Protestant, a grove of tall and scraggy palms, and a long
- bulk of ruin, occupy the end. Off the point, not a cable's length beyond
- the breaching surf, a schooner rode; come to discharge house-boards, and
- presently due at Hookena to load lepers. The village is Honaunau; the
- ruin, the Hale Keawe, temple and city of refuge.
- The ruin made a massive figure, rising from the flat lava in ramparts
- twelve to fifteen feet high, of an equal thickness, and enclosing an
- area of several acres. The unmortared stones were justly set; in places,
- the bulwark was still true to the plummet, in places ruinous from the
- shock of earthquakes. The enclosure was divided in unequal parts--the
- greater, the city of refuge; the smaller, the _heiau_, or temple, the
- so-called House of Keawe, or reliquary of his royal bones. Not his
- alone, but those of many monarchs of Hawaii were treasured here; but
- whether as the founder of the shrine, or because he had been more
- renowned in life, Keawe was the reigning and the hallowing saint. And
- Keawe can produce at least one claim to figure on the canon, for since
- his death he has wrought miracles. As late as 1829, Kaahumanu sent
- messengers to bring the relics of the kings from their long repose at
- Honaunau. First to the keeper's wife, and then to the keeper, the spirit
- of Keawe appeared in a dream, bidding them prevent the desecration. Upon
- the second summons, they rose trembling; hasted with a torch into the
- crypt; exchanged the bones of Keawe with those of some less holy
- chieftains; and were back in bed but not yet asleep, and the day had not
- yet dawned, before the messengers arrived. So it comes that to this hour
- the bones of Keawe, like those of his great descendant, sleep in some
- unknown crevice of that caverned isle.
- When Ellis passed in 1823, six years before this intervention of the
- dead, the temple still preserved some shadow of its ancient credit and
- presented much of its original appearance. He has sketched it, rudely in
- a drawing, more effectively in words. "Several rudely carved male and
- female images of wood were placed on the outside of the enclosure, some
- on low pedestals under the shade of an adjacent tree, others on high
- posts on the jutting rocks that hung over the edge of the water. A
- number stood on the fence at unequal distances all around; but the
- principal assemblage of these frightful representatives of their former
- deities was at the south-east end of the enclosed space, where, forming
- a semi-circle, twelve of them stood in grim array, as if perpetual
- guardians of 'the mighty dead' reposing in the house adjoining.... Once
- they had evidently been clothed, but now they appeared in the most
- indigent nakedness.... The horrid stare of these idols, the tattered
- garments upon some of them, and the heaps of rotting offerings before
- them, seemed to us no improper emblems of the system they were designed
- to support; distinguished alike by its cruelty, folly, and wretchedness.
- We endeavoured to gain admission to the inside of the house, but were
- told it was strictly prohibited.... However, by pushing one of the
- boards across the doorway a little on one side, we looked in and saw
- many large images, with distended mouths, large rows of sharks' teeth,
- and pearl-shell eyes. We also saw several bundles, apparently of human
- bones, cleaned, carefully tied up with sinnet made of cocoa-nut fibre,
- and placed in different parts of the house, together with some rich
- shawls and other valuable articles, probably worn by those to whom the
- bones belonged." Thus the careless eyes of Ellis viewed and passed over
- the bones of sacrosanct Keawe, in his house which he had builded.
- Cities of refuge are found not only in Hawaii but in the Gilberts: where
- their name is now invariably used for a mosquito-net. But the refuge of
- the Gilberts was only a house in a village, and only offered, like
- European churches, a sanctuary for the time. The hunted man might
- harbour there, and live on charity: woe to him if he stepped without.
- The City of Refuge of Honaunau possessed a larger efficacy. Its gate
- once passed, an appearance made before the priest on duty, a hasty
- prayer addressed to the chief idol, and the guilty man was free to go
- again, relieved from all the consequences of his crime or his
- misfortune. In time of war, its bulwarks were advertised by pennons of
- white tapa; and the aged, the children, and the poorer-hearted of the
- women of the district awaited there the issue of the battle. But the
- true wives followed their lords into the field, and shared with them
- their toil and danger.
- The city had yet another function. There was in Hawaii a class apart,
- comparable to the doomed families of Tahiti, whose special mission was
- to supply the altar. It seems the victim fell usually on the holy day,
- of which there were four in the month; between these, the man was not
- only safe, but enjoyed, in virtue of his destiny, a singular licence of
- behaviour. His immunities exceeded those of the mediæval priest and
- jester rolled in one; he might have donned the King's girdle (the height
- of sacrilege and treason), and gone abroad with it, unpunished and
- apparently unblamed; and with a little care and some acquaintance in
- priests' families, he might prolong this life of licence to old age. But
- the laws of human nature are implacable; their destiny of privilege and
- peril turned the men's heads; even at dangerous seasons, they went
- recklessly abroad upon their pleasures; were often sighted in the open,
- and must run for the City of Refuge with the priestly murderers at their
- heels. It is strange to think it was a priest also who stood in the door
- to welcome and protect them.
- The enclosure of the sanctuary was all paved with the lava; scattered
- blocks encumbered it in places; everywhere tall cocoa-palms jutted from
- the fissures and drew shadows on the floor; a loud continuous sound of
- the near sea burthened the ear. These rude monumental ruins, and the
- thought of that life and faith of which they stood memorial, threw me in
- a muse. There are times and places where the past becomes more vivid
- than the present, and the memory dominates the ear and eye. I have found
- it so in the presence of the vestiges of Rome; I found it so again in
- the City of Refuge at Honaunau; and the strange, busy, and perilous
- existence of the old Hawaiian, the grinning idols of the Heiau, the
- priestly murderers and the fleeing victim, rose before and mastered my
- imagination.
- Some dozen natives of Honaunau followed me about to show the boundaries;
- and I was recalled from these scattering thoughts by one of my guides
- laying his hand on a big block of lava.
- "This stone is called Kaahumanu," said he. "It is here she lay hid with
- her dog from Kamehameha."
- And he told me an anecdote which would not interest the reader as it
- interested me, till he has learned what manner of woman Kaahumanu was.
- CHAPTER IV
- KAAHUMANU
- Kamehameha the first, founder of the realm of the Eight Islands, was a
- man properly entitled to the style of great. All chiefs in Polynesia are
- tall and portly; and Kamehameha owed his life in the battle with the
- Puna fishers to the vigour of his body. He was skilled in single combat;
- as a general, he was almost invariably the victor. Yet it is not as a
- soldier that he remains fixed upon the memory; rather as a kindly and
- wise monarch, full of sense and shrewdness, like an old plain country
- farmer. When he had a mind to make a present of fish, he went to the
- fishing himself. When famine fell on the land, he remitted the tributes,
- cultivated a garden for his own support with his own hands, and set all
- his friends to do the like. Their patches of land, each still known by
- the name of its high-born gardener, were shown to Ellis on his tour. He
- passed laws against cutting down young sandal-wood trees, and against
- the killing of the bird from which the feather mantles of the
- archipelago were made. The yellow feathers were to be plucked, he
- directed, and the bird dismissed again to freedom. His people were
- astonished. "You are old," they argued; "soon you will die; what use
- will it be to you?" "Let the bird go," said the King. "It will be for my
- children afterwards." Alas, that his laws had not prevailed! Sandal-wood
- and yellow feathers are now things of yesterday in his dominions.
- The attitude of this brave old fellow to the native religion was, for
- some while before his death, ambiguous. A white man (tradition says) had
- come to Hawaii upon a visit; King Kalakaua assures me he was an
- Englishman, and a missionary; if that be so, he should be easy to
- identify. It was this missionary's habit to go walking in the morning
- ere the sun was up, and before doing so, to kindle a light and make tea.
- The King, who rose early himself to watch the behaviour of his people,
- observed the light, made inquiries, learned of and grew curious about
- these morning walks, threw himself at last in the missionary's path, and
- drew him into talk. The meeting was repeated; and the missionary began
- to press the King with Christianity. "If you will throw yourself from
- that cliff," said Kamehameha, "and come down uninjured, I will accept
- your religion: not unless." But the missionary was a man of parts; he
- wrote a deep impression on his hearer's mind, and after he had left for
- home, Kamehameha called his chief priest, and announced he was about to
- break the tabus and to change his faith. The Kahuna replied that he was
- the King's servant, but the step was grave, and it would be wiser to
- proceed by divination. Kamehameha consented. Each built a new heiau over
- against the other's; and when both were finished, a game of what we call
- _French and English_ or _The Tug of War_ was played upon the intervening
- space. The party of the priest prevailed; the King's men were dragged in
- a body into the opposite temple; and the tabus were maintained. None
- employed in this momentous foolery were informed of its significance;
- the King's misgivings were studiously concealed; but there is little
- doubt he continued to cherish them in secret. At his death, he had
- another memorable word, testifying to his old preoccupation for his
- son's estate: implying besides a weakened confidence in the island
- deities. His sickness was heavy upon him; the time had manifestly come
- to offer sacrifice; the people had fled already from the then dangerous
- vicinity, and lay hid; none but priests and chiefs remained about the
- King. "A man to your god!" they urged--"a man to your god, that you may
- recover!" "The man is sacred to (my son) the King," replied Kamehameha.
- So much appeared in public; but it is believed that he left secret
- commands upon the high chief Kalanimoku, and on Kaahumanu, the most
- beautiful and energetic of his wives, to do (as soon as he was dead)
- that which he had spared to do while living.
- No time was lost. The very day of his death, May 8th, 1819, the women of
- the court ate of forbidden food, and some of the men sat down with them
- to meat. Infidelity must have been deep-seated in the circle of
- Kamehameha; for no portent followed this defiance of the gods, and none
- of the transgressors died. But the priests were doubtless informed of
- what was doing; the blame lay clearly on the shoulders of Kaahumanu, the
- most conspicuous person in the land, named by the dying Kamehameha for a
- conditional successor: "If Liholiho do amiss, let Kaahumanu take the
- kingdom and preserve it." The priests met in council of diviners; and by
- a natural retort, it was upon Kaahumanu that they laid the fault of the
- King's death. This conspiracy appears to have been quite in vain.
- Kaahumanu sat secure. On the day of the coronation, when the young King
- came forth from the heiau, clad in a red robe and crowned with his
- English diadem, it was almost as an equal that she met and spoke to him.
- "(Son of) heaven, I name to you the possessions of your father; here are
- the chiefs, there are the people of your father; there are your guns,
- here is your land. But let you and me enjoy that land together." He must
- have known already she was a free-eater, and there is no doubt he
- trembled at the thought of that impiety and of its punishment; yet he
- consented to what seems her bold proposal. The same day he met his own
- mother, who signed to him privately that he should eat free. But
- Liholiho (the poor drunkard who died in London) was incapable of so much
- daring: he hung long apart from the court circle with a clique of the
- more superstitious; and it was not till five months later, after a
- drinking bout in a canoe at sea, that he was decoyed to land by stronger
- spirits, and was seen (perhaps scarce conscious of his acts) to eat of
- a dog, drink rum, and smoke tobacco, with his servant women. Thus the
- food tabu fell finally at court. Ere it could be stamped out upon
- Hawaii, a war must be fought; wherein the chief of the old party fell in
- battle; his brave wife Manono by his side, mourned even by the
- missionary Ellis.
- The fall of one tabu involved the fall of others; the land was plunged
- in dissolution; morals ceased. When the missionaries came (April 1820),
- all the wisdom in the kingdom was prepared to embrace the succour of
- some new idea. Kaahumanu early ranged upon that side, perhaps at first
- upon a ground of politics. But gradually she fell more and more under
- the influence of the new teachers; loved them, served them; valorously
- defended them in dangers, which she shared; and put away at their
- command her second husband. To the end of a long life, she played an
- almost sovereign part, so that in the ephemerides of Hawaii, the
- progresses of Kaahumanu are chronicled along with the deaths and the
- accessions of kings. For two successive sovereigns and in troublous
- periods, she held the reins of regency with a fortitude that has not
- been called in question, with a loyalty beyond reproach; and at last, on
- 5th June 1832, this Duke of Wellington of a woman made the end of a
- saint, fifty-seven years after her marriage with the conqueror. The date
- of her birth, it seems, is lost; we may call her seventy.
- Kaahumanu was a woman of the chiefly stature and of celebrated beauty;
- Bingham admits she was "_beautiful for a Polynesian_"; and her husband
- cherished her exceedingly. He had the indelicacy to frame and publish an
- especial law declaring death against the man who should approach her,
- and yet no penalty against herself. And in 1809, after thirty-four years
- of marriage, and when she must have been nearing fifty, an island
- Chastelard, of the name of Kanihonui, was found to be her lover, and
- paid the penalty of life; she cynically surviving. Some twenty years
- later, one of the missionaries had written home denouncing the
- misconduct of an English whaler. The whaler got word of the denunciation
- and, with the complicity of the English consul, sought to make a crime
- of it against the mission. Party spirit ran very violent in the islands;
- tears were shed, threats flying; and Kaahumanu called a council of the
- chiefs. In that day stood forth the native historian, David Malo (though
- his name should rather have been Nathan), and pressed the regent with
- historic instances. Who was to be punished?--the whaler guilty of the
- act, the missionary whose denunciation had provoked the scandal? "O you,
- the wife of Kamehameha," said he, "Kanihonui came and slept with you
- Luheluhe declared to Kamehameha the sleeping together of you two. I ask
- you, which of these two persons was slain by Kamehameha? Was it
- Luheluhe?" And she answered: "It was Kanihonui!" Shakespeare never
- imagined such a character; and it would require none less than he to
- represent her sublimities and contradictions.
- After this heroine, the stone in the precinct of Honaunau had been
- named. Here is the reason, and the tale completes her portrait.
- Kamehameha was, of course, polygamous; the number of his wives rose at
- last to twenty-five; and out of these no less than two were the sisters
- of Kaahumanu. The favourite was of a jealous habit; and when it came to
- a sister for a rival, her jealousy overflowed. She fled by night,
- plunged in the sea, came swimming to Honaunau, entered the precinct by
- the sea-gate, and hid herself behind the stone. There she lay naked and
- refused food. The flight was discovered; as she had come swimming, none
- had seen her pass; the priests of the temple were bound, it seems, to
- silence; and Kona was filled with the messengers of the dismayed
- Kamehameha, vainly seeking the favourite. Now, Kaahumanu had a dog who
- was much attached to her, who had accompanied her in her long swim, and
- lay by her side behind the stone; and it chanced, as the messengers ran
- past the City of Refuge, that the dog (perhaps recognising them) began
- to bark. "Ah, there is the dog of Kaahumanu!" said the messengers, and
- returned and told the king she was at the Hale O Keawe. Thence
- Kamehameha fetched or sent for her, and the breach in their relations
- was restored.
- A king preferred this woman out of a kingdom; Kanihonui died for her,
- when she was fifty; even her dog adored her; even Bingham, who did not
- see her until 1820, thought her "_beautiful for a Polynesian_," and
- while she was thus in person an emblem of womanly charm, she made her
- life illustrious with the manly virtues. There are some who give to Mary
- Queen of Scots the place of saint and muse in their historic
- meditations; I recommend to them instead the wife and widow of the
- island conqueror. The Hawaiian was the nobler woman, with the nobler
- story; and no disenchanting portrait will be found to shatter an ideal.
- CHAPTER V
- THE LEPERS OF KONA
- A step beyond Hookena, a wooden house with two doors stands isolated in
- a field of broken lava, like ploughed land. I had approached it on the
- night of my arrival, and found it black and silent; yet even then it had
- inmates. A man and a woman sat there captive, and the man had a knife,
- brought to him in secret by his family. Not long, perhaps, after I was
- by, the man, silencing by threats his fellow-prisoner, cut through the
- floor and escaped to the mountain. It was known he had a comrade there,
- hunted on the same account; and their friends kept them supplied with
- food and ammunition. Upon the mountains, in most islands of the group,
- similar outlaws rove in bands or dwell alone, unsightly hermits; and but
- the other day an officer was wounded while attempting an arrest. Some
- are desperate fellows; some mournful women--mothers and wives; some
- stripling girls. A day or two, for instance, after the man had escaped,
- the police got word of another old offender, made a forced march, and
- took the quarry sitting: this time with little peril to themselves. For
- the outlaw was a girl of nineteen, who had been two years under the
- rains in the high forest, with her mother for comrade and accomplice.
- How does their own poet sing?
- In the land of distress
- My dwelling was on the mountain height,
- My talking companions were the birds,
- The decaying leaves of the Ki my clothing.
- It is for no crime this law-abiding race flee to the woods; it is no
- fear of the gallows or the dungeon that nerves themselves to resist and
- their friends to aid and to applaud them. Their liability is for
- disease; they are lepers; and what they combine to combat is not
- punishment but segregation. While China, and England, and France, in
- their tropical possessions, either attempt nothing or effect little,
- Hawaii has honourably faced the problem of this ancient and apparently
- reviving malady. Her small extent is an advantage; but the ruggedness of
- the physical characters, the desert woods and mountains, and the habit
- of the native mind, oppose success. To the native mind, our medical
- opinions seem unfounded. We smile to hear of ghosts and gods; they, when
- they are told to keep warm in fevers or to avoid contagion. Leprosy in
- particular they cannot be persuaded to avoid. But no mere opinion would
- exalt them to resist the law and lie in forests did not a question of
- the family bond embitter and exasperate the opposition. Their family
- affection is strong, but unerect; it is luxuriously self-indulgent,
- circumscribed within the passing moment, without providence, without
- nobility, incapable of healthful rigour. The presence and the approval
- of the loved one, it matters not how purchased, there is the single
- demand of the Polynesian. By a natural consequence, when death
- intervenes, he is consoled the more easily. Against this undignified
- fervour of attachment, marital and parental, the law of segregation
- often beats in vain. It is no fear of the lazaretto; they know the
- dwellers are well used in Molokai; they receive letters from friends
- already there who praise the place; and could the family be taken in a
- body, they would go with glee, overjoyed to draw rations from
- Government. But all cannot become pensioners at once; a proportion of
- rate-payers must be kept; and the leper must go alone or with a single
- relative; and the native instinctively resists the separation as a
- weasel bites. A similar reluctance can be shown in Molokai itself. By a
- recent law, clean children born within the precinct are taken from their
- leper parents, sent to an intermediate hospital, and given a chance of
- life and health and liberty. I have stood by while Mr. Meyer and Mr.
- Hutchinson, the luna and the sub-luna of the lazaretto, opened the
- petitions of the settlement. As they sat together on the steps of the
- guest-house at Kalawao, letter after letter was passed between them with
- a sneer, and flung upon the ground; till I was at last struck with this
- cavalier procedure, and inquired the nature of the appeals. They were
- all the same; all from leper parents, all pleading to have their clean
- children retained in that abode of sorrow, and all alleging the same
- reason--_aloha nuinui_--an extreme affection. Such was the extreme
- affection of Kaahumanu for Kanihonui; by which she indulged her
- wantonness in safety and he died. But love has a countenance more
- severe.
- The scenes I am about to describe, moving as they were to witness, have
- thus an element of something weak and false. Sympathy may flow freely
- for the leper girl; it may flow for her mother with reserve; it must not
- betray us into a shadow of injustice for the government whose laws they
- had attempted to evade. That which is pathetic is not needfully wrong.
- I walked in a bright sun, after a grateful rain, upon the shore beyond
- Hookena. The breeze was of heavenly freshness, the surf was jubilant in
- all the caves; it was a morning to put a man in thought of the
- antiquity, the health and cleanness of the earth. And behold! when I
- came abreast of the little pest-house on the lava, both the doors were
- open. In front, a circle of some half-a-dozen women and children sat
- conspicuous in the usual bright raiment; in their midst was a crouching
- and bowed figure, swathed in a black shawl and motionless; and as I drew
- more near, I was aware of a continuous and high-pitched drone of song.
- The figure in the midst was the leper girl; the song was the
- improvisation of the mother, pouring out her sorrow in the island way.
- "That was not singing," explained the schoolmaster's wife on my return,
- "that was crying." And she sketched for me the probable tenor of the
- lament: "O my daughter, O my child, now you are going away from me, now
- you are taken away from me at last," and so on without end.
- The thought of the girl so early separated from her fellows--the look
- of her lying there covered from eyesight, like an untimely
- birth--perhaps more than all, the penetrating note of the
- lament--subdued my courage utterly. With the natural impulse, I began to
- seek some outlet for my pain. It occurred to me that, after two years in
- the woods, the family affairs might well have suffered, and in view of
- the transplantation, clothes, furniture, or money might be needful. I
- believe it was not done wisely, since it was gone about in ignorance; I
- dare say it flowed from a sentiment no more erect than that of
- Polynesians; I am sure there were many in England to whom my superfluity
- had proved more useful; but the next morning saw me at the pest-house,
- under convoy of the schoolmaster and the policeman.
- The doors were again open. A fire was burning and a pot cooking on the
- lava, under the supervision of an old woman in a grass-green sacque.
- This dame, who seemed more merry than refined, hailed me, seized me, and
- tried to seat me in her lap; a jolly and coarse old girl from whom, in
- my hour of sentiment, I fled with craven shrinking: to whom, upon a
- retrospect, I do more justice. The two lepers (both women) sat in the
- midst of their visitors, even the children (to my grief) touching them
- freely; the elder chatting at intervals--the girl in the same black weed
- and bowed in the same attitude as yesterday. It was painfully plain she
- would conceal, if possible, her face. Perhaps she had been beautiful:
- certainly, poor soul, she had been vain--a gift of equal value. Some
- consultation followed; I was told that nothing was required for outfit,
- but a gift in money would be gratefully received; and this (forgetting I
- was in the South Seas) I was about to make in silence. The confounded
- expression of the schoolmaster reminded me of where I was. We stood up,
- accordingly, side by side before the lepers; I made the necessary
- speech, which the schoolmaster translated sentence by sentence; the
- money (thus hallowed by oratory) was handed over and received; and the
- two women each returned a dry "Mahalo," the girl not even then
- exhibiting her face.
- Between nine and ten of the same morning, the schooner lay-to off
- Hookena and a whaleboat came ashore. The village clustered on the rocks
- for the farewell: a grief perhaps--a performance certainly. We miss in
- our modern life these operatic consolations of the past. The lepers came
- singly and unattended; the elder first; the girl a little after, tricked
- out in a red dress and with a fine red feather in her hat. In this
- bravery, it was the more affecting to see her move apart on the rocks
- and crouch in her accustomed attitude. But this time I had seen her
- face; it was scarce horribly affected, but had a haunting look of an
- unfinished wooden doll, at once expressionless and disproportioned;
- doubtless a sore spectacle in the mirror of youth. Next there appeared a
- woman of the middle life, of a swaggering gait, a gallant figure, and a
- bold, handsome face. She came, swinging her hat, rolling her eyes and
- shoulders, visibly working herself up; the crowd stirred and murmured on
- her passage; and I knew, without being told, this was the mother and
- protagonist. Close by the sea, in the midst of the spectators, she sat
- down, and raised immediately the notes of the lament. One after another
- of her friends approached her. To one after the other she reached out an
- arm, embraced them down, rocked awhile with them embraced, and
- passionately kissed them in the island fashion, with the pressed face.
- The leper girl at last, as at some signal, rose from her seat apart,
- drew near, was inarmed like the rest, and with a small knot (I suppose
- of the most intimate) held some while in a general clasp. Through all,
- the wail continued, rising into words and a sort of passionate
- declamatory recitation as each friend approached, sinking again, as the
- pair rocked together, into the tremolo drone. At length the scene was
- over; the performers rose; the lepers and the mother were helped in
- silence to their places; the whaleboat was urged between the reefs into
- a bursting surge, and swung next moment without on the smooth swell.
- Almost every countenance about me streamed with tears.
- It was odd, but perhaps natural amongst a ceremonious, oratorical race,
- that the boat should have waited while a passenger publicly lamented on
- the beach. It was more odd still that the mother should have been the
- chief, rather the only, actor. She was leaving indeed; she hoped to be
- taken as a Kokua, or clean assistant, and thus accompany her daughter to
- the settlement; but she was far from sure; and it was highly possible
- she might return to Kona in a month. The lepers, on the other hand, took
- leave for ever. In so far as regarded their own isle and birthplace, and
- for their friends and families, it was their day of death.
- The soldier from the war returns,
- The sailor from the main:
- but not the sick from the gray island. Yet they went unheeded; and the
- chief part, and the whole stage and sympathy, was for their travelling
- companion.
- At the time, I was too deeply moved to criticise; mere sympathy
- oppressed my spirit. It had always been a point with me to visit the
- station, if I could: on the rocks of Hookena the design was fixed. I had
- seen the departure of lepers for the place of exile; I must see their
- arrival, and that place itself.[6]
- FOOTNOTE:
- [6] For an account of the writer's visit to the leper settlement, see
- _Letters_, section x.
- PART IV
- THE GILBERTS
- CHAPTER I
- BUTARITARI
- At Honolulu we had said farewell to the _Casco_ and to Captain Otis, and
- our next adventure was made in changed conditions. Passage was taken for
- myself, my wife, Mr. Osbourne, and my China boy, Ah Fu, on a pigmy
- trading schooner, the _Equator_, Captain Dennis Reid; and on a certain
- bright June day in 1889, adorned in the Hawaiian fashion with the
- garlands of departure, we drew out of port and bore with a fair wind for
- Micronesia.
- The whole extent of the South Seas is desert of ships, more especially
- that part where we were now to sail. No post runs in these islands;
- communication is by accident; where you may have designed to go is one
- thing, where you shall be able to arrive another. It was my hope, for
- instance, to have reached the Carolines, and returned to the light of
- day by way of Manila and the China ports; and it was in Samoa that we
- were destined to re-appear and be once more refreshed with the sight of
- mountains. Since the sunset faded from the peaks of Oahu six months had
- intervened, and we had seen no spot of earth so high as an ordinary
- cottage. Our path had been still on the flat sea, our dwellings upon
- unerected coral, our diet from the pickle-tub or out of tins; I had
- learned to welcome shark' flesh for a variety; and a mountain, an onion,
- an Irish potato or a beef-steak, had been long lost to sense and dear to
- aspiration.
- The two chief places of our stay, Butaritari and Apemama, lie near the
- line; the latter within thirty miles. Both enjoy a superb ocean climate,
- days of blinding sun and bracing wind, nights of a heavenly brightness.
- Both are somewhat wider than Fakarava, measuring perhaps (at the widest)
- a quarter of a mile from beach to beach. In both, a coarse kind of
- _taro_ thrives; its culture is a chief business of the natives, and the
- consequent mounds and ditches make miniature scenery and amuse the eye.
- In all else they show the customary features of an atoll: the low
- horizon, the expanse of the lagoon, the sedge-like rim of palm-tops, the
- sameness and smallness of the land, the hugely superior size and
- interest of sea and sky. Life on such islands is in many points like
- life on shipboard. The atoll, like the ship, is soon taken for granted;
- and the islanders, like the ship's crew, become soon the centre of
- attention. The isles are populous, independent, seats of kinglets,
- recently civilised, little visited. In the last decade many changes have
- crept in: women no longer go unclothed till marriage; the widow no
- longer sleeps at night and goes abroad by day with the skull of her dead
- husband; and, fire-arms being introduced, the spear and the shark-tooth
- sword are sold for curiosities. Ten years ago all these things and
- practices were to be seen in use; yet ten years more, and the old
- society will have entirely vanished. We came in a happy moment to see
- its institutions still erect and (in Apemama) scarce decayed.
- Populous and independent--warrens of men, ruled over with some rustic
- pomp--such was the first and still the recurring impression of these
- tiny lands. As we stood across the lagoon for the town of Butaritari, a
- stretch of the low shore was seen to be crowded with the brown roofs of
- houses; those of the palace and king's summer parlour (which are of
- corrugated iron) glittered near one end conspicuously bright; the royal
- colours flew hard by on a tall flagstaff; in front, on an artificial
- islet, the gaol played the part of a martello. Even upon this first and
- distant view, the place had scarce the air of what it truly was, a
- village; rather of that which it was also, a petty metropolis, a city
- rustic and yet royal.
- The lagoon is shoal. The tide being out, we waded for some quarter of a
- mile in tepid shallows, and stepped ashore at last into a flagrant
- stagnancy of sun and heat. The lee side of a line island after noon is
- indeed a breathless place; on the ocean beach the trade will be still
- blowing, boisterous and cool; out in the lagoon it will be blowing also,
- speeding the canoes; but the screen of bush completely intercepts it
- from the shore, and sleep and silence and companies of mosquitoes brood
- upon the towns.
- We may thus be said to have taken Butaritari by surprise. A few
- inhabitants were still abroad in the north end, at which we landed. As
- we advanced, we were soon done with encounter, and seemed to explore a
- city of the dead. Only, between the posts of open houses, we could see
- the townsfolk stretched in the siesta, sometimes a family together
- veiled in a mosquito net, sometimes a single sleeper on a platform like
- a corpse on a bier.
- The houses were of all dimensions, from those of toys to those of
- churches. Some might hold a battalion, some were so minute they could
- scarce receive a pair of lovers; only in the playroom, when the toys are
- mingled, do we meet such incongruities of scale. Many were open sheds;
- some took the form of roofed stages; others were walled and the walls
- pierced with little windows. A few were perched on piles in the lagoon;
- the rest stood at random on a green, through which the roadway made a
- ribbon of sand, or along the embankments of a sheet of water like a
- shallow dock. One and all were the creatures of a single tree; palm-tree
- wood and palm-tree leaf their materials; no nail had been driven, no
- hammer sounded, in their building, and they were held together by
- lashings of palm-tree sinnet.
- In the midst of the thoroughfare, the church stands like an island, a
- lofty and dim house with rows of windows; a rich tracery of framing
- sustains the roof; and through the door at either end the street shows
- in a vista. The proportions of the place, in such surroundings, and
- built of such materials, appeared august; and we threaded the nave with
- a sentiment befitting visitors in a cathedral. Benches run along either
- side. In the midst, on a crazy dais, two chairs stand ready for the king
- and queen when they shall choose to worship; over their heads a hoop,
- apparently from a hogshead, depends by a strip of red cotton; and the
- hoop (which hangs askew) is dressed with streamers of the same material,
- red and white.
- This was our first advertisement of the royal dignity, and presently we
- stood before its seat and centre. The palace is built of imported wood
- upon a European plan; the roof of corrugated iron, the yard enclosed
- with walls, the gate surmounted by a sort of lych-house. It cannot be
- called spacious; a labourer in the States is sometimes more commodiously
- lodged; but when we had the chance to see it within, we found it was
- enriched (beyond all island expectation) with coloured advertisements
- and cuts from the illustrated papers. Even before the gate some of the
- treasures of the crown stand public: a bell of a good magnitude, two
- pieces of cannon, and a single shell. The bell cannot be rung nor the
- guns fired; they are curiosities, proofs of wealth, a part of the parade
- of the royalty, and stand to be admired like statues in a square. A
- straight gut of water like a canal runs almost to the palace door; the
- containing quay-walls excellently built of coral; over against the
- mouth, by what seems an effect of landscape art, the martello-like islet
- of the gaol breaks the lagoon. Vassal chiefs with tribute, neighbour
- monarchs come a-roving, might here sail in, view with surprise these
- extensive public works, and be awed by these mouths of silent cannon. It
- was impossible to see the place and not to fancy it designed for
- pageantry. But the elaborate theatre then stood empty; the royal house
- deserted, its doors and windows gaping; the whole quarter of the town
- immersed in silence. On the opposite bank of the canal, on a roofed
- stage, an ancient gentleman slept publicly, sole visible inhabitant;
- and beyond on the lagoon a canoe spread a striped lateen, the sole thing
- moving.
- The canal is formed on the south by a pier or causeway with a parapet.
- At the far end the parapet stops, and the quay expands into an oblong
- peninsula in the lagoon, the breathing-place and summer parlour of the
- king. The midst is occupied by an open house or permanent
- marquee--called here a maniapa, or, as the word is now pronounced, a
- maniap'--at the lowest estimation forty feet by sixty. The iron roof,
- lofty but exceedingly low-browed, so that a woman must stoop to enter,
- is supported externally on pillars of coral, within by a frame of wood.
- The floor is of broken coral, divided in aisles by the uprights of the
- frame; the house far enough from shore to catch the breeze, which enters
- freely and disperses the mosquitoes; and under the low eaves the sun is
- seen to glitter and the waves to dance on the lagoon.
- It was now some while since we had met any but slumberers; and when we
- had wandered down the pier and stumbled at last into this bright shed,
- we were surprised to find it occupied by a society of wakeful people,
- some twenty souls in all, the court and guardsmen of Butaritari. The
- court ladies were busy making mats; the guardsmen yawned and sprawled.
- Half a dozen rifles lay on a rock and a cutlass was leaned against a
- pillar: the armoury of these drowsy musketeers. At the far end, a little
- closed house of wood displayed some tinsel curtains, and proved upon
- examination to be a privy on the European model. In front of this, upon
- some mats, lolled Teburcimoa, the king; behind him, on the panels of the
- house, two crossed rifles represented fasces. He wore pyjamas which
- sorrowfully misbecame his bulk; his nose was hooked and cruel, his body
- overcome with sodden corpulence, his eye timorous and dull; he seemed at
- once oppressed with drowsiness and held awake by apprehension: a pepper
- rajah muddled with opium, and listening for the march of the Dutch army,
- looks perhaps not otherwise. We were to grow better acquainted, and
- first and last I had the same impression; he seemed always drowsy, yet
- always to hearken and start; and, whether from remorse or fear, there is
- no doubt he seeks a refuge in the abuse of drugs.
- The rajah displayed no sign of interest in our coming. But the queen,
- who sat beside him in a purple sacque, was more accessible; and there
- was present an interpreter so willing that his volubility became at last
- the cause of our departure. He had greeted us upon our entrance:--"That
- is the honourable King, and I am his interpreter," he had said, with
- more stateliness than truth. For he held no appointment in the court,
- seemed extremely ill-acquainted with the island language, and was
- present, like ourselves, upon a visit of civility. Mr. Williams was his
- name: an American darkey, runaway ship's cook, and bar-keeper at "The
- Land we Live in" tavern, Butaritari. I never knew a man who had more
- words in his command or less truth to communicate; neither the gloom of
- the monarch, nor my own efforts to be distant, could in the least abash
- him; and when the scene closed, the darkey was left talking.
- The town still slumbered, or had but just begun to turn and stretch
- itself; it was still plunged in heat and silence. So much the more vivid
- was the impression that we carried away of the house upon the islet, the
- Micronesian Saul wakeful amid his guards, and his unmelodious David, Mr.
- Williams, chattering through the drowsy hours.
- CHAPTER II
- THE FOUR BROTHERS
- The kingdom of Tebureimoa includes two islands, Great and Little Makin;
- some two thousand subjects pay him tribute, and two semi-independent
- chieftains do him qualified homage. The importance of the office is
- measured by the man; he may be a nobody, he may be absolute; and both
- extremes have been exemplified within the memory of residents.
- On the death of king Tetimararoa, Tebureimoa's father, Nakaeia, the
- eldest son, succeeded. He was a fellow of huge physical strength,
- masterful, violent, with a certain barbaric thrift and some intelligence
- of men and business. Alone in his islands it was he who dealt and
- profited; he was the planter and the merchant; and his subjects toiled
- for his behoof in servitude. When they wrought long and well their
- task-master declared a holiday, and supplied and shared a general
- debauch. The scale of his providing was at times magnificent; six
- hundred dollars' worth of gin and brandy was set forth at once; the
- narrow land resounded with the noise of revelry; and it was a common
- thing to see the subjects (staggering themselves) parade their drunken
- sovereign on the forehatch of a wrecked vessel, king and commons howling
- and singing as they went. At a word from Nakaeia's mouth the revel
- ended; Makin became once more an isle of slaves and of teetotalers; and
- on the morrow all the population must be on the roads or in the
- taro-patches toiling under his bloodshot eye.
- The fear of Nakaeia filled the land. No regularity of justice was
- affected; there was no trial, there were no officers of the law; it
- seems there was but one penalty, the capital; and daylight assault and
- midnight murder were the forms of process. The king himself would play
- the executioner; and his blows were dealt by stealth, and with the help
- and countenance of none but his own wives. These were his oarswomen; one
- that caught a crab, he slew incontinently with the tiller; thus
- disciplined, they pulled him by night to the scene of his vengeance,
- which he would then execute alone and return well pleased with his
- connubial crew. The inmates of the harem held a station hard for us to
- conceive. Beasts of draught, and driven by the fear of death, they were
- yet implicitly trusted with their sovereign's life; they were still
- wives and queens, and it was supposed that no man should behold their
- faces. They killed by the sight like basilisks; a chance view of one of
- those boatwomen was a crime to be wiped out with blood. In the days of
- Nakaeia the palace was beset with some tall coco-palms, which commanded
- the enclosure. It chanced one evening, while Nakaeia sat below at supper
- with his wives, that the owner of the grove was in a tree-top drawing
- palm-tree wine; it chanced that he looked down, and the king at the same
- moment looking up, their eyes encountered. Instant flight preserved the
- involuntary criminal. But during the remainder of that reign he must
- lurk and be hid by friends in remote parts of the isle; Nakaeia hunted
- him without remission, although still in vain; and the palms,
- accessories to the fact, were ruthlessly cut down. Such was the ideal of
- wifely purity in an isle where nubile virgins went naked as in paradise.
- And yet scandal found its way into Nakaeia's well-guarded harem. He was
- at that time the owner of a schooner, which he used for a
- pleasure-house, lodging on board as she lay anchored; and thither one
- day he summoned a new wife. She was one that had been sealed to him;
- that is to say (I presume), that he was married to her sister, for the
- husband of an elder sister has the call of the cadets. She would be
- arrayed for the occasion; she would come scented, garlanded, decked
- with fine mats and family jewels, for marriage, as her friends supposed;
- for death, as she well knew. "Tell me the man's name, and I will spare
- you," said Nakaeia. But the girl was staunch; she held her peace, saved
- her lover; and the queens strangled her between the mats.
- Nakaeia was feared; it does not appear that he was hated. Deeds that
- smell to us of murder wore to his subjects the reverend face of justice;
- his orgies made him popular; natives to this day recall with respect the
- firmness of his government; and even the whites, whom he long opposed
- and kept at arm's-length, give him the name (in the canonical South Sea
- phrase) of "a perfect gentleman when sober."
- When he came to lie, without issue, on the bed of death, he summoned his
- next brother, Nanteitei, made him a discourse on royal policy, and
- warned him he was too weak to reign. The warning was taken to heart, and
- for some while the government moved on the model of Nakaeia's. Nanteitei
- dispensed with guards, and walked abroad alone with a revolver in a
- leather mail-bag. To conceal his weakness he affected a rude silence;
- you might talk to him all day; advice, reproof, appeal, and menace alike
- remained unanswered. The number of his wives was seventeen, many of them
- heiresses; for the royal house is poor, and marriage was in these days a
- chief means of buttressing the throne. Nakaeia kept his harem busy for
- himself; Nanteitei hired it out to others. In his days, for instance,
- Messrs. Wightman built a pier with a verandah at the north end of the
- town. The masonry was the work of the seventeen queens, who toiled and
- waded there like fisher lasses; but the man who was to do the roofing
- durst not begin till they had finished, lest by chance he should look
- down and see them.
- It was perhaps the last appearance of the harem gang. For some time
- already Hawaiian missionaries had been seated at Butaritari--Maka and
- Kanoa, two brave child-like men. Nakaeia would none of their doctrine;
- he was perhaps jealous of their presence; being human, he had some
- affection for their persons. In the house, before the eyes of Kanoa, he
- slew with his own hand three sailors of Oahu, crouching on their backs
- to knife them, and menacing the missionary if he interfered; yet he not
- only spared him at the moment, but recalled him afterwards (when he had
- fled) with some expressions of respect. Nanteitei, the weaker man, fell
- more completely under the spell. Maka, a light-hearted, lovable, yet in
- his own trade very rigorous man, gained and improved an influence on the
- king which soon grew paramount. Nanteitei, with the royal house, was
- publicly converted; and, with a severity which liberal missionaries
- disavow, the harem was at once reduced. It was a compendious act. The
- throne was thus impoverished, its influence shaken, the queen's
- relatives mortified, and sixteen chief women (some of great possessions)
- cast in a body on the market. I have been shipmates with a Hawaiian
- sailor who was successively married to two of these _impromptu_ widows,
- and successively divorced by both for misconduct. That two great and
- rich ladies (for both of these were rich) should have married "a man
- from another island" marks the dissolution of society. The laws besides
- were wholly remodelled, not always for the better. I love Maka as a man;
- as a legislator he has two defects: weak in the punishment of crime,
- stern to repress innocent pleasures.
- War and revolution are the common successors of reform; yet Nanteitei
- died (of an overdose of chloroform), in quiet possession of the throne,
- and it was in the reign of the third brother, Nabakatokia, a man brave
- in body and feeble of character, that the storm burst. The rule of the
- high chiefs and notables seems to have always underlain and perhaps
- alternated with monarchy. The Old Men (as they were called) have a right
- to sit with the king in the Speak House and debate: and the king's chief
- superiority is a form of closure--"The Speaking is over." After the
- long monocracy of Nakaeia and the changes of Nanteitei, the Old Men
- were doubtless grown impatient of obscurity, and they were beyond
- question jealous of the influence of Maka. Calumny, or rather
- caricature, was called in use; a spoken cartoon ran round society; Maka
- was reported to have said in church that the king was the first man in
- the island and himself the second; and, stung by the supposed affront,
- the chiefs broke into rebellion and armed gatherings. In the space of
- one forenoon the throne of Nakaeia was humbled in the dust. The king sat
- in the maniap' before the palace gate expecting his recruits; Maka by
- his side, both anxious men; and meanwhile, in the door of a house at the
- north entry of the town, a chief had taken post and diverted the
- succours as they came. They came singly or in groups, each with his gun
- or pistol slung about his neck. "Where are you going?" asked the chief.
- "The king called us," they would reply. "Here is your place. Sit down,"
- returned the chief. With incredible disloyalty, all obeyed; and
- sufficient force being thus got together from both sides, Nabakatokia
- was summoned and surrendered. About this period, in almost every part of
- the group, the kings were murdered; and on Tapituea, the skeleton of the
- last hangs to this day in the chief Speak House of the isle, a menace to
- ambition. Nabakatokia was more fortunate; his life and the royal style
- were spared to him, but he was stripped of power. The Old Men enjoyed a
- festival of public speaking; the laws were continually changed, never
- enforced; the commons had an opportunity to regret the merits of
- Nakaeia, and the king, denied the resource of rich marriages and the
- service of a troop of wives, fell not only in disconsideration but in
- debt.
- He died some months before my arrival in the islands, and no one
- regretted him; rather all looked hopefully to his successor. This was by
- repute the hero of the family. Alone of the four brothers, he had issue,
- a grown son, Natiata, and a daughter three years old; it was to him, in
- the hour of the revolution, that Nabakatokia turned too late for help;
- and in earlier days he had been the right hand of the vigorous Nakaeia.
- Nantemat', _Mr. Corpse_, was his appalling nickname, and he had earned
- it well. Again and again, at the command of Nakaeia, he had surrounded
- houses in the dead of night, cut down the mosquito bars and butchered
- families. Here was the hand of iron; here was Nakaeia _redux_. He came,
- summoned from the tributary rule of Little Makin: he was installed, he
- proved a puppet and a trembler, the unwieldy shuttlecock of orators; and
- the reader has seen the remains of him in his summer parlour under the
- name of Tebureimoa.
- The change in the man's character was much commented on in the island,
- and variously explained by opium and Christianity. To my eyes, there
- seemed no change at all, rather an extreme consistency. Mr. Corpse was
- afraid of his brother: King Tebureimoa is afraid of the Old Men. Terror
- of the first nerved him for deeds of desperation; fear of the second
- disables him for the least act of government. He played his part of
- bravo in the past, following the line of least resistance, butchering
- others in his own defence: to-day, grown elderly and heavy, a convert, a
- reader of the Bible, perhaps a penitent, conscious at least of
- accumulated hatreds, and his memory charged with images of violence and
- blood, he capitulates to the Old Men, fuddles himself with opium, and
- sits among his guards in dreadful expectation. The same cowardice that
- put into his hand the knife of the assassin deprives him of the sceptre
- of a king.
- A tale that I was told, a trifling incident that fell in my observation,
- depict him in his two capacities. A chief in Little Makin asked, in an
- hour of lightness, "Who is Kaeia?" A bird carried the saying; and
- Nakaeia placed the matter in the hands of a committee of three. Mr.
- Corpse was chairman; the second commissioner died before my arrival; the
- third was yet alive and green, and presented so venerable an appearance
- that we gave him the name of Abou ben Adhem. Mr. Corpse was troubled
- with a scruple; the man from Little Makin was his adopted brother; in
- such a case it was not very delicate to appear at all, to strike the
- blow (which it seems was otherwise expected of him) would be worse than
- awkward. "I will strike the blow," said the venerable Abou; and Mr.
- Corpse (surely with a sigh) accepted the compromise. The quarry was
- decoyed into the bush; he was set carrying a log; and while his arms
- were raised Abou ripped up his belly at a blow. Justice being thus done,
- the commission, in a childish horror, turned to flee. But their victim
- recalled them to his side. "You need not run away now," he said. "You
- have done this thing to me. Stay." He was some twenty minutes dying, and
- his murderers sat with him the while: a scene for Shakespeare. All the
- stages of a violent death, the blood, the failing voice, the decomposing
- features, the changed hue, are thus present in the memory of Mr. Corpse;
- and since he studied them in the brother he betrayed, he has some reason
- to reflect on the possibilities of treachery. I was never more sure of
- anything than the tragic quality of the king's thoughts; and yet I had
- but the one sight of him at unawares. I had once an errand for his ear.
- It was once more the hour of the siesta; but there were loiterers
- abroad, and these directed us to a closed house on the bank of the canal
- where Tebureimoa lay unguarded. We entered without ceremony, being in
- some haste. He lay on the floor upon a bed of mats, reading in his
- Gilbert Island Bible with compunction. On our sudden entrance the
- unwieldy man reared himself half-sitting so that the Bible rolled on the
- floor, stared on us a moment with blank eyes, and, having recognised his
- visitors, sank again upon the mats. So Eglon looked on Ehud.
- The justice of facts is strange, and strangely just: Nakaeia, the author
- of these deeds, died at peace discoursing on the craft of kings; his
- tool suffers daily death for his enforced complicity. Not the nature,
- but the congruity of men's deeds and circumstances damn and save them;
- and Tebureimoa from the first has been incongruously placed. At home, in
- a quiet by-street of a village, the man had been a worthy carpenter,
- and, even bedevilled as he is, he shows some private virtues. He has no
- lands, only the use of such as are impignorate for fines; he cannot
- enrich himself in the old way by marriages; thrift is the chief pillar
- of his future, and he knows and uses it. Eleven foreign traders pay him
- a patent of a hundred dollars, some two thousand subjects pay capitation
- at the rate of a dollar for a man, half a dollar for a woman, and a
- shilling for a child: allowing for the exchange, perhaps a total of
- three hundred pounds a year. He had been some nine months on the throne:
- had bought his wife a silk dress and hat, figure unknown, and himself a
- uniform at three hundred dollars; had sent his brother's photograph to
- be enlarged in San Francisco at two hundred and fifty dollars; had
- greatly reduced that brother's legacy of debt; and had still sovereigns
- in his pocket. An affectionate brother, a good economist; he was besides
- a handy carpenter, and cobbled occasionally on the woodwork of the
- palace. It is not wonderful that Mr. Corpse has virtues: that Tebureimoa
- should have a diversion filled me with surprise.
- CHAPTER III
- AROUND OUR HOUSE
- When we left the palace we were still but seafarers ashore; and within
- the hour we had installed our goods in one of the six foreign houses of
- Butaritari, namely, that usually occupied by Maka, the Hawaiian
- missionary. Two San Francisco firms are here established, Messrs.
- Crawford and Messrs. Wightman Brothers; the first hard by the palace of
- the mid town, the second at the north entry; each with a store and
- bar-room. Our house was in the Wightman compound, betwixt the store and
- bar, within a fenced enclosure. Across the road a few native houses
- nestled in the margin of the bush, and the green wall of palms rose
- solid, shutting out the breeze. A little sandy cove of the lagoon ran in
- behind, sheltered by a verandah pier, the labour of queens' hands. Here,
- when the tide was high, sailed boats lay to be loaded; when the tide was
- low, the boats took ground some half a mile away, and an endless series
- of natives descended the pier stair, tailed across the sand in strings
- and clusters, waded to the waist with the bags of copra, and loitered
- backward to renew their charge. The mystery of the copra trade tormented
- me, as I sat and watched the profits drip on the stair and the sands.
- In front, from shortly after four in the morning until nine at night,
- the folk of the town streamed by us intermittingly along the road:
- families going up the island to make copra on their lands; women bound
- for the bush to gather flowers against the evening toilet; and, twice a
- day, the toddy-cutters, each with his knife and shell. In the first
- grey of the morning, and again late in the afternoon, these would
- straggle past about their tree-top business, strike off here and there
- into the bush, and vanish from the face of the earth. At about the same
- hour, if the tide be low in the lagoon, you are likely to be bound
- yourself across the island for a bath, and may enter close at their
- heels alleys of the palm wood. Right in front, although the sun is not
- yet risen, the east is already lighted with preparatory fires, and the
- huge accumulations of the trade-wind cloud glow with and heliograph the
- coming day. The breeze is in your face; overhead in the tops of the
- palms, its playthings, it maintains a lively bustle; look where you
- will, above or below, there is no human presence, only the earth and
- shaken forest. And right overhead the song of an invisible singer breaks
- from the thick leaves; from farther on a second tree-top answers; and
- beyond again, in the bosom of the woods, a still more distant minstrel
- perches and sways and sings. So, all round the isle, the toddy-cutters
- sit on high, and are rocked by the trade, and have a view far to
- seaward, where they keep watch for sails and like huge birds utter their
- songs in the morning. They sing with a certain lustiness and Bacchic
- glee; the volume of sound and the articulate melody fall unexpected from
- the tree-top, whence we anticipate the chattering of fowls. And yet in a
- sense these songs also are but chatter; the words are ancient, obsolete,
- and sacred; few comprehend them, perhaps no one perfectly; but it was
- understood the cutters "prayed to have good toddy, and sang of their old
- wars." The prayer is at least answered; and when the foaming shell is
- brought to your door, you have a beverage well "worthy of a grace." All
- forenoon you may return and taste; it only sparkles, and sharpens, and
- grows to be a new drink, not less delicious; but with the progress of
- the day the fermentation quickens and grows acid; in twelve hours it
- will be yeast for bread, in two days more a devilish intoxicant, the
- counsellor of crime.
- The men are of a marked Arabian cast of features, often bearded and
- moustached, often gaily dressed, some with bracelets and anklets, all
- stalking hidalgo-like, and accepting salutations with a haughty lip. The
- hair (with the dandies of either sex) is worn turban-wise in a frizzled
- bush; and like the daggers of the Japanese, a pointed stick (used for a
- comb) is thrust gallantly among the curls. The women from this bush of
- hair look forth enticingly: the race cannot be compared with the
- Tahitian for female beauty; I doubt even if the average be high, but
- some of the prettiest girls, and one of the handsomest women I ever saw,
- were Gilbertines. Butaritari, being the commercial centre of the group,
- is Europeanised; the coloured sacque or the white shift are common wear,
- the latter for the evening; the trade hat, loaded with flowers, fruit,
- and ribbons, is unfortunately not unknown; and the characteristic female
- dress of the Gilberts no longer universal. The _ridi_ is its name: a
- cutty petticoat or fringe of the smoked fibre of cocoa-nut leaf, not
- unlike tarry string; the lower edge not reaching the mid-thigh, the
- upper adjusted so low upon the haunches that it seems to cling by
- accident. A sneeze, you think, and the lady must surely be left
- destitute. "The perilous, hairbreadth ridi" was our word for it; and in
- the conflict that rages over women's dress it has the misfortune to
- please neither side, the prudish condemning it as insufficient, the more
- frivolous finding it unlovely in itself. Yet if a pretty Gilbertine
- would look her best, that must be her costume. In that, and naked
- otherwise, she moves with an incomparable liberty and grace and life,
- that marks the poetry of Micronesia. Bundle her in a gown, the charm is
- fled, and she wriggles like an Englishwoman.
- Towards dusk the passers-by became more gorgeous. The men broke out in
- all the colours of the rainbow--or at least of the trade-room,--and both
- men and women began to be adorned and scented with new flowers. A small
- white blossom is the favourite, sometimes sown singly in a woman's hair
- like little stars, now composed in a thick wreath. With the night, the
- crowd sometimes thickened in the road, and the padding and brushing of
- bare feet became continuous; the promenades mostly grave, the silence
- only interrupted by some giggling and scampering of girls; even the
- children quiet. At nine, bed-time struck on a bell from the cathedral,
- and the life of the town ceased. At four the next morning the signal is
- repeated in the darkness, and the innocent prisoners set free; but for
- seven hours all must lie--I was about to say within doors, of a place
- where doors, and even walls, are an exception--housed, at least, under
- their airy roofs and clustered in the tents of the mosquito-nets.
- Suppose a necessary errand to occur, suppose it imperative to send
- abroad, the messenger must then go openly, advertising himself to the
- police with a huge brand of cocoa-nut, which flares from house to house
- like a moving bonfire. Only the police themselves go darkling, and grope
- in the night for misdemeanants. I used to hate their treacherous
- presence; their captain in particular, a crafty old man in white, lurked
- nightly about my premises till I could have found it in my heart to beat
- him. But the rogue was privileged.
- Not one of the eleven resident traders came to town, no captain cast
- anchor in the lagoon, but we saw him ere the hour was out. This was
- owing to our position between the store and the bar--the "Sans Souci,"
- as the last was called. Mr. Rick was not only Messrs. Wightman's
- manager, but consular agent for the States. Mrs. Rick was the only white
- woman on the island, and one of the only two in the archipelago; their
- house besides, with its cool verandahs, its bookshelves, its comfortable
- furniture, could not be rivalled nearer than Jaluit or Honolulu. Every
- one called in consequence, save such as might be prosecuting a South Sea
- quarrel, hingeing on the price of copra and the odd cent, or perhaps a
- difference about poultry. Even these, if they did not appear upon the
- north, would be presently visible to the southward, the "Sans Souci"
- drawing them as with cords. In an island with a total population of
- twelve white persons, one of the two drinking-shops might seem
- superfluous; but every bullet has its billet, and the double
- accommodation of Butaritari is found in practice highly convenient by
- the captains and the crews of ships: "The Land we Live in" being tacitly
- resigned to the forecastle, the "Sans Souci" tacitly reserved for the
- afterguard. So aristocratic were my habits, so commanding was my fear of
- Mr. Williams, that I have never visited the first; but in the other,
- which was the club or rather the casino of the island, I regularly
- passed my evenings. It was small, but neatly fitted, and at night (when
- the lamp was lit) sparkled with glass and glowed with coloured pictures
- like a theatre at Christmas. The pictures were advertisements, the glass
- coarse enough, the carpentry amateur; but the effect, in that
- incongruous isle, was of unbridled luxury and inestimable expense. Here
- songs were sung, tales told, tricks performed, games played. The Ricks,
- ourselves, Norwegian Tom the bar-keeper, a captain or two from the
- ships, and perhaps three or four traders come down the island in their
- boats or by the road on foot, made up the usual company. The traders,
- all bred to the sea, take a humorous pride in their new business; "South
- Sea Merchants" is the title they prefer. "We are all sailors
- here"--"Merchants, if you please"--"_South Sea_ Merchants,"--was a piece
- of conversation endlessly repeated, that never seemed to lose in savour.
- We found them at all times simple, genial, gay, gallant, and obliging;
- and, across some interval of time, recall with pleasure the traders of
- Butaritari. There was one black sheep indeed. I tell of him here where
- he lived, against my rule; for in this case I have no measure to
- preserve, and the man is typical of a class of ruffians that once
- disgraced the whole field of the South Seas, and still linger in the
- rarely visited isles of Micronesia. He had the name on the beach of "a
- perfect gentleman when sober," but I never saw him otherwise than
- drunk. The few shocking and savage traits of the Micronesian he has
- singled out with the skill of a collector, and planted in the soil of
- his original baseness. He has been accused and acquitted of a
- treacherous murder; and has since boastfully owned it, which inclines me
- to suppose him innocent. His daughter is defaced by his erroneous
- cruelty, for it was his wife he had intended to disfigure, and, in the
- darkness of the night and the frenzy of coco-brandy, fastened on the
- wrong victim. The wife has since fled and harbours in the bush with
- natives; and the husband still demands from deaf ears her forcible
- restoration. The best of his business is to make natives drink, and then
- advance the money for the fine upon a lucrative mortgage. "Respect for
- whites" is the man's word: "What is the matter with this island is the
- want of respect for whites." On his way to Butaritari, while I was
- there, he spied his wife in the bush with certain natives and made a
- dash to capture her; whereupon one of her companions drew a knife and
- the husband retreated: "Do you call that proper respect for whites?" he
- cried. At an early stage of the acquaintance we proved our respect for
- his kind of white by forbidding him our enclosure under pain of death.
- Thenceforth he lingered often in the neighbourhood with I knew not what
- sense of envy or design of mischief; his white, handsome face (which I
- beheld with loathing) looked in upon us at all hours across the fence;
- and once, from a safe distance, he avenged himself by shouting a
- recondite island insult, to us quite inoffensive, on his English lips
- incredibly incongruous.
- Our enclosure, round which this composite of degradations wandered, was
- of some extent. In one corner was a trellis with a long table of rough
- boards. Here the Fourth of July feast had been held not long before with
- memorable consequences, yet to be set forth; here we took our meals;
- here entertained to a dinner the king and notables of Makin. In the
- midst was the house, with a verandah front and back, and three rooms
- within. In the verandah we slung our man-of-war hammocks, worked there
- by day, and slept at night. Within were beds, chairs, a round table, a
- fine hanging lamp, and portraits of the royal family of Hawaii. Queen
- Victoria proves nothing; Kalakaua and Mrs. Bishop are diagnostic; and
- the truth is we were the stealthy tenants of the parsonage. On the day
- of our arrival Maka was away; faithless trustees unlocked his doors; and
- the dear rigorous man, the sworn foe of liquor and tobacco, returned to
- find his verandah littered with cigarettes and his parlour horrible with
- bottles. He made but one condition--on the round table, which he used in
- the celebration of the sacraments, he begged us to refrain from setting
- liquor; in all else he bowed to the accomplished fact, refused rent,
- retired across the way into a native house, and, plying in his boat,
- beat the remotest quarters of the isle for provender. He found us
- pigs--I could not fancy where--no other pigs were visible; he brought us
- fowls and taro; when we gave our feast to the monarch and gentry, it was
- he who supplied the wherewithal, he who superintended the cooking, he
- who asked grace at table, and when the king's health was proposed, he
- also started the cheering with an English hip-hip-hip. There was never a
- more fortunate conception; the heart of the fatted king exulted in his
- bosom at the sound.
- Take him for all in all, I have never known a more engaging creature
- than this parson of Butaritari: his mirth, his kindness, his noble,
- friendly feelings, brimmed from the man in speech and gesture. He loved
- to exaggerate, to act and overact the momentary part, to exercise his
- lungs and muscles, and to speak and laugh with his whole body. He had
- the morning cheerfulness of birds and healthy children; and his humour
- was infectious. We were next neighbours and met daily, yet our
- salutations lasted minutes at a stretch--shaking hands, slapping
- shoulders, capering like a pair of Merry-Andrews, laughing to split our
- sides upon some pleasantry that would scarce raise a titter in an
- infant school. It might be five in the morning, the toddy-cutters just
- gone by, the road empty, the shade of the island lying far on the
- lagoon: and the ebullition cheered me for the day.
- Yet I always suspected Maka of a secret melancholy; these jubilant
- extremes could scarce be constantly maintained. He was besides long, and
- lean, and lined, and corded, and a trifle grizzled; and his Sabbath
- countenance was even saturnine. On that day we made a procession to the
- church, or (as I must always call it) the cathedral: Maka (a blot on the
- hot landscape) in tall hat, black frock-coat, black trousers; under his
- arm the hymn-book and the Bible; in his face, a reverent
- gravity:--beside him Mary his wife, a quiet, wise, and handsome elderly
- lady, seriously attired:--myself following with singular and moving
- thoughts. Long before, to the sound of bells and streams and birds,
- through a green Lothian glen, I had accompanied Sunday by Sunday a
- minister in whose house I lodged; and the likeness, and the difference,
- and the series of years and deaths, profoundly touched me. In the great,
- dusky, palm-tree cathedral the congregation rarely numbered thirty: the
- men on one side, the women on the other, myself posted (for a privilege)
- amongst the women, and the small missionary contingent gathered close
- around the platform, we were lost in that round vault. The lessons were
- read antiphonally, the flock was catechised, a blind youth repeated
- weekly a long string of psalms, hymns were sung--I never heard worse
- singing,--and the sermon followed. To say I understood nothing were
- untrue; there were points that I learned to expect with certainty; the
- name of Honolulu, that of Kalakaua, the word Cap'n-man-o'-wa', the word
- ship, and a description of a storm at sea, infallibly occurred; and I
- was not seldom rewarded with the name of my own Sovereign in the
- bargain. The rest was but sound to the ears, silence for the mind; a
- plain expanse of tedium, rendered unbearable by heat, a hard chair, and
- the sight through the wide doors of the more happy heathen on the
- green. Sleep breathed on my joints and eyelids, sleep hummed in my ears;
- it reigned in the dim cathedral. The congregation stirred and stretched;
- they moaned, they groaned aloud; they yawned upon a singing note, as you
- may sometimes hear a dog when he has reached the tragic bitterest of
- boredom. In vain the preacher thumped the table; in vain he singled and
- addressed by name particular hearers. I was myself perhaps a more
- effective excitant; and at least to one old gentleman the spectacle of
- my successful struggles against sleep--and I hope they were
- successful--cheered the flight of time. He, when he was not catching
- flies or playing tricks upon his neighbours, gloated with a fixed,
- translucent eye upon the stages of my agony; and once when the service
- was drawing towards a close he winked at me across the church.
- I write of the service with a smile; yet I was always there--always with
- respect for Maka, always with admiration for his deep seriousness, his
- burning energy, the fire of his roused eye, the sincere and various
- accents of his voice. To see him weekly flogging a dead horse and
- blowing a cold fire was a lesson in fortitude and constancy. It may be a
- question whether if the mission were fully supported, and he was set
- free from business avocations, more might not result; I think otherwise
- myself; I think not neglect but rigour has reduced his flock, that
- rigour which has once provoked a revolution, and which to-day, in a man
- so lively and engaging, amazes the beholder. No song, no dance, no
- tobacco, no liquor, no alleviative of life--only toil and church-going;
- so says a voice from his face; and the face is the face of the
- Polynesian Esau, but the voice is the voice of a Jacob from a different
- world. And a Polynesian at the best makes a singular missionary in the
- Gilberts, coming from a country recklessly unchaste to one conspicuously
- strict; from a race hag-ridden with bogies to one comparatively bold
- against the terrors of the dark. The thought was stamped one morning in
- my mind, when I chanced to be abroad by moonlight, and saw all the town
- lightless, but the lamp faithfully burning by the missionary's bed. It
- requires no law, no fire, and no scouting police, to withhold Maka and
- his countrymen from wandering in the night unlighted.
- CHAPTER IV
- A TALE OF A TAPU
- On the morrow of our arrival (Sunday, 14th July 1889) our photographers
- were early stirring. Once more we traversed a silent town; many were yet
- abed and asleep; some sat drowsily in their open houses; there was no
- sound of intercourse or business. In that hour before the shadows, the
- quarter of the palace and canal seemed like a landing-place in the
- "Arabian Nights" or from the classic poets; here were the fit
- destination of some "faery frigot," here some adventurous prince might
- step ashore among new characters and incidents; and the island prison,
- where it floated on the luminous face of the lagoon, might have passed
- for the repository of the Grail. In such a scene, and at such an hour,
- the impression received was not so much of foreign travel--rather of
- past ages; it seemed not so much degrees of latitude that we had
- crossed, as centuries of time that we had re-ascended; leaving, by the
- same steps, home and to-day. A few children followed us, mostly nude,
- all silent; in the clear, weedy waters of the canal some silent damsels
- waded, baring their brown thighs; and to one of the maniap's before the
- palace gate we were attracted by a low but stirring hum of speech.
- The oval shed was full of men sitting cross-legged. The king was there
- in striped pyjamas, his rear protected by four guards with Winchesters,
- his air and bearing marked by unwonted spirit and decision; tumblers and
- black bottles went the round; and the talk, throughout loud, was general
- and animated. I was inclined at first to view this scene with suspicion.
- But the hour appeared unsuitable for a carouse; drink was besides
- forbidden equally by the law of the land and the canons of the church;
- and while I was yet hesitating, the king's rigorous attitude disposed of
- my last doubt. We had come, thinking to photograph him surrounded by his
- guards, and at the first word of the design his piety revolted. We were
- reminded of the day--the Sabbath, in which thou shalt take no
- photographs--and returned with a flea in our ear, bearing the rejected
- camera.
- At church, a little later, I was struck to find the throne unoccupied.
- So nice a Sabbatarian might have found the means to be present; perhaps
- my doubts revived; and before I got home they were transformed to
- certainties. Tom, the bar-keeper of the "Sans Souci," was in
- conversation with two emissaries from the court. The "keen," they said,
- wanted "din," failing which "perandi."[7] No din, was Tom's reply, and
- no perandi; but "pira" if they pleased. It seems they had no use for
- beer, and departed sorrowing.
- "Why, what is the meaning of all this?" I asked. "Is the island on the
- spree?"
- Such was the fact. On the 4th of July a feast had been made, and the
- king, at the suggestion of the whites, had raised the tapu against
- liquor. There is a proverb about horses; it scarce applies to the
- superior animal, of whom it may be rather said, that any one can start
- him drinking, not any twenty can prevail on him to stop. The tapu,
- raised ten days before, was not yet re-imposed; for ten days the town
- had been passing the bottle or lying (as we had seen it the afternoon
- before) in hoggish sleep; and the king, moved by the Old Men and his own
- appetites, continued to maintain the liberty, to squander his savings on
- liquor, and to join in and lead the debauch. The whites were the authors
- of this crisis; it was upon their own proposal that the freedom had been
- granted at the first; and for a while, in the interests of trade, they
- were doubtless pleased it should continue. That pleasure had now
- sometime ceased; the bout had been prolonged (it was conceded) unduly;
- and it now began to be a question how it might conclude. Hence Tom's
- refusal. Yet that refusal was avowedly only for the moment, and it was
- avowedly unavailing; the king's foragers, denied by Tom at the "Sans
- Souci," would be supplied at "The Land we Live in" by the gobbling Mr.
- Williams.
- The degree of the peril was not easy to measure at the time, and I am
- inclined to think now it was easy to exaggerate. Yet the conduct of
- drunkards even at home is always matter for anxiety; and at home our
- populations are not armed from the highest to the lowest with revolvers
- and repeating rifles, neither do we go on a debauch by the whole
- townful--and I might rather say, by the whole polity--king, magistrates,
- police, and army joining in one common scene of drunkenness. It must be
- thought besides that we were here in barbarous islands, rarely visited,
- lately and partly civilised. First and last, a really considerable
- number of whites have perished in the Gilberts, chiefly through their
- own misconduct; and the natives have displayed in at least one instance
- a disposition to conceal an accident under a butchery, and leave nothing
- but dumb bones. This last was the chief consideration against a sudden
- closing of the bars; the bar-keepers stood in the immediate breach and
- dealt direct with madmen; too surly a refusal might at any moment
- precipitate a blow, and the blow might prove the signal for a massacre.
- _Monday, 15th_.--At the same hour we returned to the same maniap'.
- Kümmel (of all drinks) was served in tumblers; in the midst sat the
- crown prince, a fatted youth, surrounded by fresh bottles and busily
- plying the corkscrew; and king, chief, and commons showed the loose
- mouth, the uncertain joints, and the blurred and animated eye of the
- early drinker. It was plain we were impatiently expected; the king
- retired with alacrity to dress, the guards were despatched after their
- uniforms; and we were left to await the issue of these preparations
- with a shedful of tipsy natives. The orgie had proceeded further than
- on Sunday. The day promised to be of great heat; it was already sultry,
- the courtiers were already fuddled; and still the kümmel continued to go
- round, and the crown prince to play butler. Flemish freedom followed
- upon Flemish excess; and a funny dog, a handsome fellow, gaily dressed,
- and with a full turban of frizzed hair, delighted the company with a
- humorous courtship of a lady in a manner not to be described. It was our
- diversion, in this time of waiting, to observe the gathering of the
- guards. They have European arms, European uniforms, and (to their
- sorrow) European shoes. We saw one warrior (like Mars) in the article of
- being armed; two men and a stalwart woman were scarce strong enough to
- boot him; and after a single appearance on parade the army is crippled
- for a week.
- At last, the gates under the king's house opened; the army issued, one
- behind another, with guns and epaulettes; the colours stooped under the
- gateway; majesty followed in his uniform bedizened with gold lace;
- majesty's wife came next in a hat and feathers, and an ample trained
- silk gown; the royal imps succeeded; there stood the pageantry of Makin
- marshalled on its chosen theatre. Dickens might have told how serious
- they were; how tipsy; how the king melted and streamed under his cocked
- hat; how he took station by the larger of his two cannons--austere,
- majestic, but not truly vertical; how the troops huddled, and were
- straightened out, and clubbed again; how they and their firelocks raked
- at various inclinations like the masts of ships; and how an amateur
- photographer reviewed, arrayed, and adjusted them, to see his
- dispositions change before he reached the camera.
- The business was funny to see; I do not know that it is graceful to
- laugh at; and our report of these transactions was received on our
- return with the shaking of grave heads.
- The day had begun ill; eleven hours divided us from sunset; and at any
- moment, on the most trifling chance, the trouble might begin. The
- Wightman compound was in a military sense untenable, commanded on three
- sides by houses and thick bush; the town was computed to contain over a
- thousand stand of excellent new arms; and retreat to the ships, in the
- case of an alert, was a recourse not to be thought of. Our talk that
- morning must have closely reproduced the talk in English garrisons
- before the Sepoy mutiny; the sturdy doubt that any mischief was in
- prospect, the sure belief that (should any come) there was nothing left
- but to go down fighting, the half-amused, half-anxious attitude of mind
- in which we were awaiting fresh developments.
- The kümmel soon ran out; we were scarce returned before the king had
- followed us in quest of more. Mr. Corpse was now divested of his more
- awful attitude, the lawless bulk of him again encased in striped
- pyjamas; a guardsman brought up the rear with his rifle at the trail;
- and his majesty was further accompanied by a Rarotongan whalerman and
- the playful courtier with the turban of frizzed hair. There was never a
- more lively deputation. The whalerman was gapingly, tearfully tipsy; the
- courtier walked on air; the king himself was even sportive. Seated in a
- chair in the Ricks' sitting-room, he bore the brunt of our prayers and
- menaces unmoved. He was even rated, plied with historic instances,
- threatened with the men-of-war, ordered to restore the tapu on the
- spot--and nothing in the least affected him. It should be done
- to-morrow, he said; to-day it was beyond his power, to-day he durst not.
- "Is that royal?" cried indignant Mr. Rick. No, it was not royal; had the
- king been of a royal character we should ourselves have held a different
- language; and royal or not, he had the best of the dispute. The terms
- indeed were hardly equal; for the king was the only man who could
- restore the tapu, but the Ricks were not the only people who sold drink.
- He had but to hold his ground on the first question, and they were sure
- to weaken on the second. A little struggle they still made for the
- fashion's sake; and then one exceedingly tipsy deputation departed,
- greatly rejoicing, a case of brandy wheeling beside them in a barrow.
- The Rarotongan (whom I had never seen before) wrung me by the hand like
- a man bound on a far voyage. "My dear frien'!" he cried, "good-bye, my
- dear frien'!"--tears of kümmel standing in his eyes; the king lurched as
- he went, the courtier ambled--a strange party of intoxicated children to
- be entrusted with that barrowful of madness.
- You could never say the town was quiet; all morning there was a ferment
- in the air, an aimless movement and congregation of natives in the
- street. But it was not before half-past one that a sudden hubbub of
- voices called us from the house, to find the whole white colony already
- gathered on the spot as by concerted signal. The "Sans Souci" was
- overrun with rabble, the stair and verandah thronged. From all these
- throats an inarticulate babbling cry went up incessantly; it sounded
- like the bleating of young lambs, but angrier. In the road his royal
- highness (whom I had seen so lately in the part of butler) stood crying
- upon Tom; on the top step, tossed in the hurly-burly, Tom was shouting
- to the prince. Yet a while the pack swayed about the bar, vociferous.
- Then came a brutal impulse; the mob reeled, and returned and was
- rejected; the stair showed a stream of heads; and there shot into view,
- through the disbanding ranks, three men violently dragging in their
- midst a fourth. By his hair and his hands, his head forced as low as his
- knees, his face concealed, he was wrenched from the verandah and whisked
- along the road into the village, howling as he disappeared. Had his face
- been raised, we should have seen it bloodied, and the blood was not his
- own. The courtier with the turban of frizzed hair had paid the costs of
- this disturbance with the lower part of one ear.
- So the brawl passed with no other casualty than might seem comic to the
- inhumane. Yet we looked round on serious faces, and--a fact that spoke
- volumes--Tom was putting up the shutters on the bar. Custom might go
- elsewhither, Mr. Williams might profit as he pleased, but Tom had had
- enough of bar-keeping for that day. Indeed, the event had hung on a
- hair. A man had sought to draw a revolver--on what quarrel I could never
- learn, and perhaps he himself could not have told; one shot, when the
- room was so crowded, could scarce have failed to take effect; where many
- were armed and all tipsy, it could scarce have failed to draw others;
- and the woman who spied the weapon and the man who seized it may very
- well have saved the white community.
- The mob insensibly melted from the scene; and for the rest of the day
- our neighbourhood was left in peace and a good deal in solitude. But the
- tranquillity was only local; _din_ and _perandi_ still flowed in other
- quarters: and we had one more sight of Gilbert Island violence. In the
- church, where we had wandered photographing, we were startled by a
- sudden piercing outcry. The scene, looking forth from the doors of that
- great hall of shadow, was unforgettable. The palms, the quaint and
- scattered houses, the flag of the island streaming from its tall staff,
- glowed with intolerable sunshine. In the midst two women rolled fighting
- on the grass. The combatants were the more easy to be distinguished,
- because the one was stripped to the _ridi_ and the other wore a holoku
- (sacque) of some lively colour. The first was uppermost, her teeth
- locked in her adversary's face, shaking her like a dog; the other
- impotently fought and scratched. So for a moment we saw them wallow and
- grapple there like vermin; then the mob closed and shut them in.
- It was a serious question that night if we should sleep ashore. But we
- were travellers, folk that had come far in quest of the adventurous; on
- the first sign of an adventure it would have been a singular
- inconsistency to have withdrawn; and we sent on board instead for our
- revolvers. Mindful of Taahauku, Mr. Rick, Mr. Osbourne, and Mrs.
- Stevenson held an assault of arms on the public highway, and fired at
- bottles to the admiration of the natives. Captain Reid, of the
- _Equator_, stayed on shore with us to be at hand in case of trouble, and
- we retired to bed at the accustomed hour, agreeably excited by the day's
- events. The night was exquisite, the silence enchanting; yet as I lay in
- my hammock looking on the strong moonshine and the quiescent palms, one
- ugly picture haunted me of the two women, the naked and the clad, locked
- in that hostile embrace. The harm done was probably not much, yet I
- could have looked on death and massacre with less revolt. The return to
- these primeval weapons, the vision of man's beastliness, of his
- ferality, shocked in me a deeper sense than that with which we count the
- cost of battles. There are elements in our state and history which it is
- a pleasure to forget, which it is perhaps the better wisdom not to dwell
- on. Crime, pestilence, and death are in the day's work; the imagination
- readily accepts them. It instinctively rejects, on the contrary,
- whatever shall call up the image of our race upon its lowest terms, as
- the partner of beasts, beastly itself, dwelling pell-mell and
- huggermugger, hairy man with hairy woman, in the caves of old. And yet
- to be just to barbarous islanders we must not forget the slums and dens
- of our cities: I must not forget that I have passed dinnerward through
- Soho, and seen that which cured me of my dinner.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [7] Gin and brandy.
- CHAPTER V
- A TALE OF A TAPU--_continued_
- _Tuesday, July 16_.--It rained in the night, sudden and loud, in Gilbert
- Island fashion. Before the day, the crowing of a cock aroused me and I
- wandered in the compound and along the street. The squall was blown by,
- the moon shone with incomparable lustre, the air lay dead as in a room,
- and yet all the isle sounded as under a strong shower, the eaves thickly
- pattering, the lofty palms dripping at larger intervals and with a
- louder note. In this bold nocturnal light the interior of the houses lay
- inscrutable, one lump of blackness, save when the moon glinted under the
- roof, and made a belt of silver, and drew the slanting shadows of the
- pillars on the floor. Nowhere in all the town was any lamp or ember; not
- a creature stirred; I thought I was alone to be awake; but the police
- were faithful to their duty; secretly vigilant, keeping account of time;
- and a little later, the watchman struck slowly and repeatedly on the
- cathedral bell; four o'clock, the warning signal. It seemed strange
- that, in a town resigned to drunkenness and tumult, curfew and réveille
- should still be sounded and still obeyed.
- The day came, and brought little change. The place still lay silent; the
- people slept, the town slept. Even the few who were awake, mostly women
- and children, held their peace and kept within under the strong shadow
- of the thatch, where you must stop and peer to see them. Through the
- deserted streets, and past sleeping houses, a deputation took its way at
- an early hour to the palace; the king was suddenly awakened, and must
- listen (probably with a headache) to unpalatable truths. Mrs. Rick,
- being a sufficient mistress of that difficult tongue, was spokeswoman;
- she explained to the sick monarch that I was an intimate personal friend
- of Queen Victoria's; that immediately on my return I should make her a
- report upon Butaritari; and that if my house should have been again
- invaded by natives, a man-of-war would be despatched to make reprisals.
- It was scarce the fact--rather a just and necessary parable of the fact,
- corrected for latitude; and it certainly told upon the king. He was much
- affected; he had conceived the notion (he said) that I was a man of some
- importance, but not dreamed it was as bad as this; and the missionary
- house was tapu'd under a fine of fifty dollars.
- So much was announced on the return of the deputation; not any more; and
- I gathered subsequently that much more had passed. The protection gained
- was welcome. It had been the most annoying and not the least alarming
- feature of the day before, that our house was periodically filled with
- tipsy natives, twenty or thirty at a time, begging drink, fingering our
- goods, hard to be dislodged, awkward to quarrel with. Queen Victoria's
- friend (who was soon promoted to be her son) was free from these
- intrusions. Not only my house, but my neighbourhood as well, was left in
- peace; even on our walks abroad we were guarded and prepared for; and,
- like great persons visiting a hospital, saw only the fair side. For the
- matter of a week we were thus suffered to go out and in and live in a
- fool's paradise, supposing the king to have kept his word, the tapu to
- be revived, and the island once more sober.
- _Tuesday, July 23_.--We dined under a bare trellis erected for the
- Fourth of July; and here we used to linger by lamplight over coffee and
- tobacco. In that climate evening approaches without sensible chill; the
- wind dies out before sunset; heaven glows a while and fades, and darkens
- into the blueness of the tropical night; swiftly and insensibly the
- shadows thicken, the stars multiply their number; you look around you
- and the day is gone. It was then that we would see our Chinaman draw
- near across the compound in a lurching sphere of light, divided by his
- shadows; and with the coming of the lamp the night closed about the
- table. The faces of the company, the spars of the trellis, stood out
- suddenly bright on a ground of blue and silver, faintly designed with
- palm-tops and the peaked roofs of houses. Here and there the gloss upon
- a leaf, or the fracture of a stone, returned an isolated sparkle. All
- else had vanished. We hung there, illuminated like a galaxy of stars _in
- vacuo_; we sat, manifest and blind, amid the general ambush of the
- darkness; and the islanders, passing with light footfalls and low voices
- in the sand of the road, lingered to observe us, unseen.
- On Tuesday the dusk had fallen, the lamp had just been brought, when a
- missile struck the table with a rattling smack and rebounded past my
- ear. Three inches to one side and this page had never been written; for
- the thing travelled like a cannon ball. It was supposed at the time to
- be a nut, though even at the time I thought it seemed a small one and
- fell strangely.
- _Wednesday, July 24_.--The dusk had fallen once more, and the lamp been
- just brought out, when the same business was repeated. And again the
- missile whistled past my ear. One nut I had been willing to accept; a
- second, I rejected utterly. A cocoa-nut does not come slinging along on
- a windless evening, making an angle of about fifteen degrees with the
- horizon; cocoa-nuts do not fall on successive nights at the same hour
- and spot; in both cases, besides, a specific moment seemed to have been
- chosen, that when the lamp was just carried out, a specific person
- threatened, and that the head of the family. I may have been right or
- wrong, but I believed I was the mark of some intimidation; believed the
- missile was a stone, aimed not to hit, but to frighten.
- No idea makes a man more angry. I ran into the road, where the natives
- were as usual promenading in the dark; Maka joined me with a lantern;
- and I ran from one to another, glared in quite innocent faces, put
- useless questions, and proffered idle threats. Thence I carried my wrath
- (which was worthy the son of any queen in history) to the Ricks. They
- heard me with depression, assured me this trick of throwing a stone into
- a family dinner was not new; that it meant mischief, and was of a piece
- with the alarming disposition of the natives. And then the truth, so
- long concealed from us, came out. The king had broken his promise, he
- had defied the deputation; the tapu was still dormant, "The Land we Live
- in" still selling drink, and that quarter of the town disturbed and
- menaced by perpetual broils. But there was worse ahead: a feast was now
- preparing for the birthday of the little princess; and the tributary
- chiefs of Kuma and Little Makin were expected daily. Strong in a
- following of numerous and somewhat savage clansmen, each of these was
- believed, like a Douglas of old, to be of doubtful loyalty. Kuma (a
- little pot-bellied fellow) never visited the palace, never entered the
- town, but sat on the beach on a mat, his gun across his knees, parading
- his mistrust and scorn; Karaiti of Makin, although he was more bold, was
- not supposed to be more friendly; and not only were these vassals
- jealous of the throne, but the followers on either side shared in the
- animosity. Brawls had already taken place; blows had passed which might
- at any moment be repaid in blood. Some of the strangers were already
- here and already drinking; if the debauch continued after the bulk of
- them had come, a collision, perhaps a revolution, was to be expected.
- The sale of drink is in this group a measure of the jealousy of traders;
- one begins, the others are constrained to follow; and to him who has the
- most gin, and sells it the most recklessly, the lion's share of copra is
- assured. It is felt by all to be an extreme expedient, neither safe,
- decent, nor dignified. A trader on Tarawa, heated by an eager rivalry,
- brought many cases of gin. He told me he sat afterwards day and night
- in his house till it was finished, not daring to arrest the sale, not
- venturing to go forth, the bush all round him filled with howling
- drunkards. At night, above all, when he was afraid to sleep, and heard
- shots and voices about him in the darkness, his remorse was black.
- "My God!" he reflected, "if I was to lose my life on such a wretched
- business!" Often and often, in the story of the Gilberts, this scene has
- been repeated; and the remorseful trader sat beside his lamp, longing
- for the day, listening with agony for the sound of murder, registering
- resolutions for the future. For the business is easy to begin, but
- hazardous to stop. The natives are in their way a just and law-abiding
- people, mindful of their debts, docile to the voice of their own
- institutions; when the tapu is re-enforced they will cease drinking; but
- the white who seeks to antedate the movement by refusing liquor does so
- at his peril.
- Hence, in some degree, the anxiety and helplessness of Mr. Rick. He and
- Tom, alarmed by the rabblement of the "Sans Souci," had stopped the
- sale; they had done so without danger, because "The Land we Live in"
- still continued selling; it was claimed, besides, that they had been the
- first to begin. What step could be taken? Could Mr. Rick visit Mr.
- Muller (with whom he was not on terms) and address him thus: "I was
- getting ahead of you, now you are getting ahead of me, and I ask you to
- forgo your profit. I got my place closed in safety, thanks to your
- continuing; but now I think you have continued long enough. I begin to
- be alarmed; and because I am afraid I ask you to confront a certain
- danger"? It was not to be thought of. Something else had to be found;
- and there was one person at one end of the town who was at least not
- interested in copra. There was little else to be said in favour of
- myself as an ambassador. I had arrived in the Wightman schooner, I was
- living in the Wightman compound, I was the daily associate of the
- Wightman coterie. It was egregious enough that I should now intrude
- unasked in the private affairs of Crawford's agent, and press upon him
- the sacrifice of his interests and the venture of his life. But bad as I
- might be, there was none better; since the affair of the stone I was,
- besides, sharp-set to be doing, the idea of a delicate interview
- attracted me, and I thought it policy to show myself abroad.
- The night was very dark. There was service in the church, and the
- building glimmered through all its crevices like a dim Kirk Allowa'. I
- saw few other lights, but was indistinctly aware of many people stirring
- in the darkness, and a hum and sputter of low talk that sounded
- stealthy. I believe (in the old phrase) my beard was sometimes on my
- shoulder as I went. Muller's was but partly lighted, and quite silent,
- and the gate was fastened. I could by no means manage to undo the latch.
- No wonder, since I found it afterwards to be four or five feet long--a
- fortification in itself. As I still fumbled, a dog came on the inside
- and snuffed suspiciously at my hands, so that I was reduced to calling
- "House ahoy!" Mr. Muller came down and put his chin across the paling in
- the dark. "Who is that?" said he, like one who has no mind to welcome
- strangers.
- "My name is Stevenson," said I.
- "O, Mr. Stevens! I didn't know you. Come inside."
- We stepped into the dark store, when I leaned upon the counter and he
- against the wall. All the light came from the sleeping-room, where I saw
- his family being put to bed; it struck full in my face, but Mr. Muller
- stood in shadow. No doubt he expected what was coming, and sought the
- advantage of position; but for a man who wished to persuade and had
- nothing to conceal, mine was the preferable.
- "Look here," I began, "I hear you are selling to the natives."
- "Others have done that before me," he returned pointedly.
- "No doubt," said I, "and I have nothing to do with the past, but the
- future. I want you to promise you will handle these spirits carefully."
- "Now what is your motive in this?" he asked, and then, with a sneer,
- "Are you afraid of your life?"
- "That is nothing to the purpose," I replied. "I know, and you know,
- these spirits ought not to be used at all."
- "Tom and Mr. Rick have sold them before."
- "I have nothing to do with Tom and Mr. Rick. All I know is I have heard
- them both refuse."
- "No, I suppose you have nothing to do with them. Then you are just
- afraid of your life."
- "Come now," I cried, being perhaps a little stung, "you know in your
- heart I am asking a reasonable thing. I don't ask you to lose your
- profit--though I would prefer to see no spirits brought here, as you
- would----"
- "I don't say I wouldn't. I didn't begin this," he interjected.
- "No, I don't suppose you did," said I. "And I don't ask you to lose; I
- ask you to give me your word, man to man, that you will make no native
- drunk."
- Up to now Mr. Muller had maintained an attitude very trying to my
- temper; but he had maintained it with difficulty, his sentiment being
- all upon my side; and here he changed ground for the worse. "It isn't me
- that sells," said he.
- "No, it's that nigger," I agreed. "But he's yours to buy and sell; you
- have your hand on the nape of his neck; and I ask you--I have my wife
- here--to use the authority you have."
- He hastily returned to his old word. "I don't deny I could if I wanted,"
- said he. "But there's no danger, the natives are all quiet. You're just
- afraid of your life."
- I do not like to be called a coward, even by implication; and here I
- lost my temper and propounded an untimely ultimatum. "You had better put
- it plain," I cried. "Do you mean to refuse me what I ask?"
- "I don't want either to refuse it or grant it," he replied.
- "You'll find you have to do the one thing or the other, and right now!"
- I cried, and then, striking into a happier vein, "Come," said I, "you're
- a better sort than that. I see what's wrong with you--you think I came
- from the opposite camp. I see the sort of man you are, and you know that
- what I ask is right."
- Again he changed ground. "If the natives get any drink, it isn't safe to
- stop them," he objected.
- "I'll be answerable for the bar," I said. "We are three men and four
- revolvers; we'll come at a word, and hold the place against the
- village."
- "You don't know what you're talking about; it's too dangerous!" he
- cried.
- "Look here," said I, "I don't mind much about losing that life you talk
- so much of; but I mean to lose it the way I want to, and that is,
- putting a stop to all this beastliness."
- He talked a while about his duty to the firm; I minded not at all, I was
- secure of victory. He was but waiting to capitulate, and looked about
- for any potent to relieve the strain. In the gush of light from the
- bedroom door I spied a cigar-holder on the desk. "That is well
- coloured," said I.
- "Will you take a cigar?" said he.
- I took it and held it up unlighted. "Now," said I, "you promise me."
- "I promise you you won't have any trouble from natives that have drunk
- at my place," he replied.
- "That is all I ask," said I, and showed it was not by immediately
- offering to try his stock.
- So far as it was anyway critical our interview here ended. Mr. Muller
- had thenceforth ceased to regard me as an emissary from his rivals,
- dropped his defensive attitude, and spoke as he believed. I could make
- out that he would already, had he dared, have stopped the sale himself.
- Not quite daring, it may be imagined how he resented the idea of
- interference from those who had (by his own statement) first led him on,
- then deserted him in the breach, and now (sitting themselves in safety)
- egged him on to a new peril, which was all gain to them, all loss to
- him. I asked him what he thought of the danger from the feast.
- "I think worse of it than any of you," he answered. "They were shooting
- around here last night, and I heard the balls too. I said to myself,
- 'That's bad.' What gets me is why you should be making this row up at
- your end. I should be the first to go."
- It was a thoughtless wonder. The consolation of being second is not
- great: the fact, not the order of going--there was our concern.
- Scott talks moderately of looking forward to a time of fighting "with a
- feeling that resembled pleasure." The resemblance seems rather an
- identity. In modern life, contact is ended; man grows impatient of
- endless manoeuvres; and to approach the fact, to find ourselves where
- we can push our advantage home, and stand a fair risk, and see at last
- what we are made of, stirs the blood. It was so at least with all my
- family, who bubbled with delight at the approach of trouble; and we sat
- deep into the night like a pack of schoolboys, preparing the revolvers
- and arranging plans against the morrow. It promised certainly to be a
- busy and eventful day. The Old Men were to be summoned to confront me on
- the question of the tapu; Muller might call us at any moment to garrison
- his bar; and suppose Muller to fail, we decided in a family council to
- take that matter into our own hands, "The Land we Live in" at the
- pistol's mouth, and, with the polysyllabic Williams, dance to a new
- tune. As I recall our humour I think it would have gone hard with the
- mulatto.
- _Wednesday, July 24_.--It was as well, and yet it was disappointing that
- these thunder-clouds rolled off in silence. Whether the Old Men recoiled
- from an interview with Queen Victoria's son, whether Muller had secretly
- intervened, or whether the step flowed naturally from the fears of the
- king and the nearness of the feast, the tapu was early that morning
- re-enforced; not a day too soon, from the manner the boats began to
- arrive thickly, and the town was filled with the big rowdy vassals of
- Karaiti.
- The effect lingered for some time on the minds of the traders; it was
- with the approval of all present that I helped to draw up a petition to
- the United States, praying for a law against the liquor trade in the
- Gilberts; and it was at this request that I added, under my own name, a
- brief testimony of what had passed;--useless pains, since the whole
- repose, probably unread and possibly unopened, in a pigeon-hole at
- Washington.
- _Sunday, July 28_.--This day we had the afterpiece of the debauch. The
- king and queen, in European clothes, and followed by armed guards,
- attended church for the first time, and sat perched aloft in a
- precarious dignity under the barrel-hoops. Before sermon his majesty
- clambered from the dais, stood lopsidedly upon the gravel floor, and in
- a few words abjured drinking. The queen followed suit with a yet briefer
- allocution. All the men in church were next addressed in turn; each held
- up his right hand, and the affair was over--throne and church were
- reconciled.
- CHAPTER VI
- THE FIVE DAYS' FESTIVAL
- _Thursday, July 25_.--The street was this day much enlivened by the
- presence of the men from Little Makin; they average taller than
- Butaritarians, and, being on a holiday, went wreathed with yellow leaves
- and gorgeous in vivid colours. They are said to be more savage, and to
- be proud of the distinction. Indeed, it seemed to us they swaggered in
- the town, like plaided Highlanders upon the streets of Inverness,
- conscious of barbaric virtues.
- In the afternoon the summer parlour was observed to be packed with
- people; others standing outside and stooping to peer under the eaves,
- like children at home about a circus. It was the Makin company,
- rehearsing for the day of competition. Karaiti sat in the front row
- close to the singers, where we were summoned (I suppose in honour of
- Queen Victoria) to join him. A strong breathless heat reigned under the
- iron roof, and the air was heavy with the scent of wreaths. The singers,
- with fine mats about their loins, cocoa-nut feathers set in rings upon
- their fingers, and their heads crowned with yellow leaves, sat on the
- floor by companies. A varying number of soloists stood up for different
- songs; and these bore the chief part in the music. But the full force of
- the companies, even when not singing, contributed continuously to the
- effect, and marked the ictus of the measure, mimicking, grimacing,
- casting up their heads and eyes, fluttering the feathers on their
- fingers, clapping hands, or beating (loud as a kettledrum) on the left
- breast; the time was exquisite, the music barbarous, but full of
- conscious art. I noted some devices constantly employed. A sudden
- change would be introduced (I think of key) with no break of the
- measure, but emphasised by a sudden heightening of the voice and a
- swinging, general gesticulation. The voices of the soloists would begin
- far apart in a rude discord, and gradually draw together to a unison;
- which, when they had reached, they were joined and drowned by the full
- chorus. The ordinary, hurried, barking, unmelodious movement of the
- voices would at times be broken and glorified by a psalm-like strain of
- melody, often well constructed, or seeming so by contrast. There was
- much variety of measure, and towards the end of each piece, when the fun
- became fast and furious, a recourse to this figure--
- [Illustration]
- It is difficult to conceive what fire and devilry they get into these
- hammering finales; all go together, voices, hands, eyes, leaves, and
- fluttering finger-rings; the chorus swings to the eye, the song throbs
- on the ear; the faces are convulsed with enthusiasm and effort.
- Presently the troop stood up in a body, the drums forming a half-circle
- for the soloists, who were sometimes five or even more in number. The
- songs that followed were highly dramatic; though I had none to give me
- any explanation, I would at times make out some shadowy but decisive
- outline of a plot; and I was continually reminded of certain quarrelsome
- concerted scenes in grand operas at home; just so the single voices
- issue from and fall again into the general volume; just so do the
- performers separate and crowd together, brandish the raised hand, and
- roll the eye to heaven--or the gallery. Already this is beyond the
- Thespian model; the art of this people is already past the embryo; song,
- dance, drums, quartette and solo--it is the drama full developed
- although still in miniature. Of all so-called dancing in the South Seas,
- that which I saw in Butaritari stands easily the first. The _hula_, as
- it may be viewed by the speedy globe-trotter in Honolulu, is surely the
- most dull of man's inventions, and the spectator yawns under its length
- as at a college lecture or a parliamentary debate. But the Gilbert
- Island dance leads on the mind; it thrills, rouses, subjugates; it has
- the essence of all art, an unexplored imminent significance. Where so
- many are engaged, and where all must make (at a given moment) the same
- swift, elaborate, and often arbitrary movement, the toil of rehearsal is
- of course extreme. But they begin as children. A child and a man may
- often be seen together in a maniap'; the man sings and gesticulates, the
- child stands before him with streaming tears and tremulously copies him
- in act and sound; it is the Gilbert Island artist learning (as all
- artists must) his art in sorrow.
- I may seem to praise too much; here is a passage from my wife's diary,
- which proves that I was not alone in being moved, and completes the
- picture:--"The conductor gave the cue, and all the dancers, waving their
- arms, swaying their bodies, and clapping their breasts in perfect time,
- opened with an introductory. The performers remained seated, except two,
- and once three, and twice a single soloist. These stood in the group,
- making a slight movement with the feet and rhythmical quiver of the body
- as they sang. There was a pause after the introductory, and then the
- real business of the opera--for it was no less--began; an opera where
- every singer was an accomplished actor. The leading man, in an
- impassioned ecstasy which possessed him from head to foot, seemed
- transfigured; once it was as though a strong wind had swept over the
- stage--their arms, their feathered fingers thrilling with an emotion
- that shook my nerves as well: heads and bodies followed like a field of
- grain before a gust. My blood came hot and cold, tears pricked my eyes,
- my head whirled, I felt an almost irresistible impulse to join the
- dancers. One drama, I think, I very nearly understood. A fierce and
- savage old man took the solo part. He sang of the birth of a prince,
- and how he was tenderly rocked in his mother's arms; of his boyhood,
- when he excelled his fellows in swimming, climbing, and all athletic
- sports; of his youth, when he went out to sea in his boat and fished; of
- his manhood, when he married a wife who cradled a son of his own in her
- arms. Then came the alarm of war, and a great battle, of which for a
- time the issue was doubtful; but the hero conquered, as he always does,
- and with a tremendous burst of the victors the piece closed. There were
- also comic pieces, which caused great amusement. During one, an old man
- behind me clutched me by the arm, shook his finger in my face with a
- roguish smile, and said something with a chuckle, which I took to be the
- equivalent of 'O, you women, you women; it is true of you all!' I fear
- it was not complimentary. At no time was there the least sign of the
- ugly indecency of the eastern islands. All was poetry pure and simple.
- The music itself was as complex as our own, though constructed on an
- entirely different basis; once or twice I was startled by a bit of
- something very like the best English sacred music, but it was only for
- an instant. At last there was a longer pause, and this time the dancers
- were all on their feet. As the drama went on the interest grew. The
- performers appealed to each other, to the audience, to the heaven above;
- they took counsel with each other, the conspirators drew together in a
- knot; it was just an opera, the drums coming in at proper intervals, the
- tenor, baritone, and bass all where they should be--except that the
- voices were all of the same calibre. A woman once sang from the back row
- with a very fine contralto voice spoilt by being made artificially
- nasal; I notice all the women affect that unpleasantness. At one time a
- boy of angelic beauty was the soloist; and at another a child of six or
- eight, doubtless an infant phenomenon being trained, was placed in the
- centre. The little fellow was desperately frightened and embarrassed at
- first, but towards the close warmed up to his work and showed much
- dramatic talent. The changing expressions on the faces of the dancers
- were so speaking that it seemed a great stupidity not to understand
- them."
- Our neighbour at this performance, Karaiti, somewhat favours his
- Butaritarian majesty in shape and feature, being like him portly,
- bearded, and Oriental. In character he seems the reverse: alert,
- smiling, jovial, jocular, industrious. At home in his own island, he
- labours himself like a slave, and makes his people labour like a
- slave-driver. He takes an interest in ideas. George the trader told him
- about flying-machines. "Is that true, George?" he asked. "It is in the
- papers," replied George. "Well," said Karaiti, "if that man can do it
- with machinery, I can do it without"; and he designed and made a pair of
- wings, strapped them on his shoulders, went to the end of a pier,
- launched himself into space, and fell bulkily into the sea. His wives
- fished him out, for his wings hindered him in swimming. "George," said
- he, pausing as he went up to change, "George, you lie." He had eight
- wives, for his small realm still follows ancient customs; but he showed
- embarrassment when this was mentioned to my wife. "Tell her I have only
- brought one here," he said anxiously. Altogether the Black Douglas
- pleased us much; and as we heard fresh details of the king's uneasiness,
- and saw for ourselves that all the weapons in the summer parlour had
- been hid, we watched with the more admiration the cause of all this
- anxiety rolling on his big legs, with his big smiling face, apparently
- unarmed, and certainly unattended, through the hostile town. The Red
- Douglas, pot-bellied Kuma, having perhaps heard word of the debauch,
- remained upon his fief; his vassals thus came uncommanded to the feast,
- and swelled the following of Karaiti.
- _Friday, July 26_.--At night in the dark, the singers of Makin paraded
- in the road before our house and sang the song of the princess. "This is
- the day; she was born to-day; Nei Kamaunave was born to-day--a beautiful
- princess, Queen of Butaritari." So I was told it went in endless
- iteration. The song was of course out of season, and the performance
- only a rehearsal. But it was a serenade besides; a delicate attention to
- ourselves from our new friend, Karaiti.
- _Saturday, July 27_.--We had announced a performance of the magic
- lantern to-night in church; and this brought the king to visit us. In
- honour of the Black Douglas (I suppose) his usual two guardsmen were now
- increased to four; and the squad made an outlandish figure as they
- straggled after him, in straw hats, kilts and jackets. Three carried
- their arms reversed, the butts over their shoulders, the muzzles
- menacing the king's plump back; the fourth had passed his weapon behind
- his neck, and held it there with arms extended like a backboard. The
- visit was extraordinarily long. The king, no longer galvanised with gin,
- said and did nothing. He sat collapsed in a chair and let a cigar go
- out. It was hot, it was sleepy, it was cruel dull; there was no resource
- but to spy in the countenance of Tebureimoa for some remaining trait of
- _Mr. Corpse_ the butcher. His hawk nose, crudely depressed and flattened
- at the point, did truly seem to us to smell of midnight murder. When he
- took his leave, Maka bade me observe him going down the stair (or rather
- ladder) from the verandah. "Old man," said Maka. "Yes," said I, "and yet
- I suppose not old man." "Young man," returned Maka, "perhaps fo'ty." And
- I have heard since he is most likely younger.
- While the magic lantern was showing, I skulked without in the dark. The
- voice of Maka, excitedly explaining the Scripture slides, seemed to fill
- not the church only, but the neighbourhood. All else was silent.
- Presently a distant sound of singing arose and approached; and a
- procession drew near along the road, the hot clean smell of the men and
- women striking in my face delightfully. At the corner, arrested by the
- voice of Maka and the lightening and darkening of the church, they
- paused. They had no mind to go nearer, that was plain. They were Makin
- people, I believe, probably staunch heathens, contemners of the
- missionary and his works. Of a sudden, however, a man broke from their
- company, took to his heels, and fled into the church; next moment three
- had followed him; the next it was a covey of near upon a score, all
- pelting for their lives. So the little band of the heathen paused
- irresolute at the corner, and melted before the attractions of a magic
- lantern, like a glacier in spring. The more staunch vainly taunted the
- deserters; three fled in a guilty silence, but still fled; and when at
- length the leader found the wit or the authority to get his troop in
- motion and revive the singing, it was with much diminished forces that
- they passed musically on up the dark road.
- Meanwhile inside the luminous pictures brightened and faded. I stood for
- some while unobserved in the rear of the spectators, when I could hear
- just in front of me a pair of lovers following the show with interest,
- the male playing the part of interpreter and (like Adam) mingling
- caresses with his lecture. The wild animals, a tiger in particular, and
- that old school-treat favourite, the sleeper and the mouse, were hailed
- with joy; but the chief marvel and delight was in the gospel series.
- Maka, in the opinion of his aggrieved wife, did not properly rise to the
- occasion. "What is the matter with the man? Why can't he talk?" she
- cried. The matter with the man, I think, was the greatness of the
- opportunity; he reeled under his good fortune; and whether he did ill or
- well, the exposure of these pious "phantoms" did as a matter of fact
- silence in all that part of the island the voice of the scoffer. "Why
- then," the word went round, "why then, the Bible is true!" And on our
- return afterwards we were told the impression was yet lively, and those
- who had seen might be heard telling those who had not, "O yes, it is all
- true; these things all happened, we have seen the pictures." The
- argument is not so childish as it seems; for I doubt if these islanders
- are acquainted with any other mode of representation but photography; so
- that the picture of an event (on the old melodrama principle that "the
- camera cannot lie, Joseph"), would appear strong proof of its
- occurrence. The fact amused us the more because our slides were some of
- them ludicrously silly, and one (Christ before Pilate) was received with
- shouts of merriment, in which even Maka was constrained to join.
- _Sunday, July 28_.--Karaiti came to ask for a repetition of the
- "phantoms"--this was the accepted word--and, having received a promise,
- turned and left my humble roof without the shadow of a salutation. I
- felt it impolite to have the least appearance of pocketing a slight; the
- times had been too difficult, and were still too doubtful; and Queen
- Victoria's son was bound to maintain the honour of his house. Karaiti
- was accordingly summoned that evening to the Ricks, where Mrs. Rick fell
- foul of him in words, and Queen Victoria's son assailed him with
- indignant looks. I was the ass with the lion's skin; I could not roar in
- the language of the Gilbert Islands; but I could stare. Karaiti declared
- he had meant no offence; apologised in a sound, hearty, gentlemanly
- manner; and became at once at his ease. He had in a dagger to examine,
- and announced he would come to price it on the morrow, to-day being
- Sunday; this nicety in a heathen with eight wives surprised me. The
- dagger was "good for killing fish," he said roguishly; and was supposed
- to have his eye upon fish upon two legs. It is at least odd that in
- Eastern Polynesia fish was the accepted euphemism for the human
- sacrifice. Asked as to the population of his island, Karaiti called out
- to his vassals who sat waiting him outside the door, and they put it at
- four hundred and fifty; but (added Karaiti jovially) there will soon be
- plenty more, for all the women are in the family way. Long before we
- separated I had quite forgotten his offence. He, however, still bore it
- in mind; and with a very courteous inspiration returned early on the
- next day, paid us a long visit, and punctiliously said farewell when he
- departed.
- _Monday, July 29_.--The great day came round at last. In the first hours
- the night was startled by the sound of clapping hands and the chant of
- Nei Kamaunava; its melancholy, slow, and somewhat menacing measures
- broken at intervals by a formidable shout. The little morsel of humanity
- thus celebrated in the dark hours was observed at midday playing on the
- green entirely naked, and equally unobserved and unconcerned.
- The summer parlour on its artificial islet, relieved against the
- shimmering lagoon, and shimmering itself with sun and tinned iron, was
- all day crowded about by eager men and women. Within, it was boxed full
- of islanders, of any age and size, and in every degree of nudity and
- finery. So close we squatted, that at one time I had a mighty handsome
- woman on my knees, two little naked urchins having their feet against my
- back. There might be a dame in full attire of _holoku_ and hat and
- flowers; and her next neighbour might the next moment strip some little
- rag of a shift from her fat shoulders and come out a monument of flesh,
- painted rather than covered by the hairbreadth _ridi_. Little ladies who
- thought themselves too great to appear undraped upon so high a festival
- were seen to pause outside in the broad sunshine, their miniature
- _ridis_ in their hand; a moment more and they were full-dressed and
- entered the concert-room.
- At either end stood up to sing, or sat down to rest, the alternate
- companies of singers; Kuma and Little Makin on the north, Butaritari and
- its conjunct hamlets to the south; both groups conspicuous in barbaric
- bravery. In the midst, between these rival camps of troubadours, a bench
- was placed; and here the king and queen throned it, some two or three
- feet above the crowded audience on the floor--Tebureimoa as usual in his
- striped pyjamas with a satchel strapped across one shoulder, doubtless
- (in the island fashion) to contain his pistols; the queen in a purple
- _holoku_, her abundant hair let down, a fan in her hand. The bench was
- turned facing to the strangers, a piece of well-considered civility; and
- when it was the turn of Butaritari to sing, the pair must twist round on
- the bench, lean their elbows on the rail, and turn to us the spectacle
- of their broad backs. The royal couple occasionally solaced themselves
- with a clay pipe; and the pomp of state was further heightened by the
- rifles of a picket of the guard.
- With this kingly countenance, and ourselves squatted on the ground, we
- heard several songs from one side or the other. Then royalty and its
- guards withdrew, and Queen Victoria's son and daughter-in-law were
- summoned by acclamation to the vacant throne. Our pride was perhaps a
- little modified when we were joined on our high places by a certain
- thriftless loafer of a white; and yet I was glad too, for the man had a
- smattering of native, and could give me some idea of the subject of the
- songs. One was patriotic, and dared Tembinok' of Apemama, the terror of
- the group, to an invasion. One mixed the planting of taro and the
- harvest-home. Some were historical, and commemorated kings and the
- illustrious chances of their time, such as a bout of drinking or a war.
- One, at least, was a drama of domestic interest, excellently played by
- the troop from Makin. It told the story of a man who has lost his wife,
- at first bewails her loss, then seeks another: the earlier strains (or
- acts) are played exclusively by men; but towards the end a woman
- appears, who has just lost her husband; and I suppose the pair console
- each other, for the finale seemed of happy omen. Of some of the songs my
- informant told me briefly they were "like about the _weemen_"; this I
- could have guessed myself. Each side (I should have said) was
- strengthened by one or two women. They were all soloists, did not very
- often join in the performance, but stood disengaged at the back part of
- the stage, and looked (in _ridi_, necklace, and dressed hair) for all
- the world like European ballet-dancers. When the song was anyway broad
- these ladies came particularly to the front; and it was singular to see
- that, after each entry, the _première danseuse_ pretended to be overcome
- by shame, as though led on beyond what she had meant, and her male
- assistants made a feint of driving her away like one who had disgraced
- herself. Similar affectations accompany certain truly obscene dances of
- Samoa, where they are very well in place. Here it was different. The
- words, perhaps, in this free-spoken world, were gross enough to make a
- carter blush; and the most suggestive feature was this feint of shame.
- For such parts the women showed some disposition; they were pert, they
- were neat, they were acrobatic, they were at times really amusing, and
- some of them were pretty. But this is not the artist's field; there is
- the whole width of heaven between such capering and ogling, and the
- strange rhythmic gestures, and strange, rapturous, frenzied faces with
- which the best of the male dancers held us spellbound through a Gilbert
- Island ballet.
- Almost from the first it was apparent that the people of the city were
- defeated. I might have thought them even good, only I had the other
- troop before my eyes to correct my standard, and remind me continually
- of "the little more, and how much it is." Perceiving themselves worsted,
- the choir of Butaritari grew confused, blundered, and broke down; amid
- this hubbub of unfamiliar intervals I should not myself have recognised
- the slip, but the audience were quick to catch it, and to jeer. To crown
- all, the Makin company began a dance of truly superlative merit. I know
- not what it was about, I was too much absorbed to ask. In one act a part
- of the chorus, squealing in some strange falsetto, produced very much
- the effect of our orchestra; in another, the dancers, leaping like
- jumping-jacks, with arms extended, passed through and through each
- other's ranks with extraordinary speed, neatness, and humour. A more
- laughable effect I never saw; in any European theatre it would have
- brought the house down, and the island audience roared with laughter and
- applause. This filled up the measure for the rival company, and they
- forgot themselves and decency. After each act or figure of the ballet,
- the performers pause a moment standing, and the next is introduced by
- the clapping of hands in triplets. Not until the end of the whole ballet
- do they sit down, which is the signal for the rivals to stand up. But
- now all rules were to be broken. During the interval following on this
- great applause, the company of Butaritari leaped suddenly to their feet
- and most unhandsomely began a performance of their own. It was strange
- to see the men of Makin staring; I have seen a tenor in Europe stare
- with the same blank dignity into a hissing theatre; but presently, to my
- surprise, they sobered down, gave up the unsung remainder of their
- ballet, resumed their seats, and suffered their ungallant adversaries to
- go on and finish. Nothing would suffice. Again, at the first interval,
- Butaritari unhandsomely cut in; Makin, irritated in turn, followed the
- example; and the two companies of dancers remained permanently standing,
- continuously clapping hands, and regularly cutting across each other at
- each pause. I expected blows to begin with any moment; and our position
- in the midst was highly unstrategical. But the Makin people had a better
- thought; and upon a fresh interruption turned and trooped out of the
- house. We followed them, first because these were the artists, second
- because they were guests and had been scurvily ill-used. A large
- population of our neighbours did the same, so that the causeway was
- filled from end to end by the procession of deserters; and the
- Butaritari choir was left to sing for its own pleasure in an empty
- house, having gained the point and lost the audience. It was surely
- fortunate that there was no one drunk; but, drunk or sober, where else
- would a scene so irritating have concluded without blows?
- The last stage and glory of this auspicious day was of our own
- providing--the second and positively the last appearance of the
- phantoms. All round the church, groups sat outside, in the night, where
- they could see nothing; perhaps ashamed to enter, certainly finding some
- shadowy pleasure in the mere proximity. Within, about one-half of the
- great shed was densely packed with people. In the midst, on the royal
- dais, the lantern luminously smoked; chance rays of light struck out the
- earnest countenance of our Chinaman grinding the hand-organ; a fainter
- glimmer showed off the rafters and their shadows in the hollow of the
- roof; the pictures shone and vanished on the screen; and as each
- appeared, there would run a hush, a whisper, a strong shuddering rustle,
- and a chorus of small cries among the crowd. There sat by me the mate of
- a wrecked schooner. "They would think this a strange sight in Europe or
- the States," said he, "going on in a building like this, all tied with
- bits of string."
- CHAPTER VII
- HUSBAND AND WIFE
- The trader accustomed to the manners of Eastern Polynesia has a lesson
- to learn among the Gilberts. The _ridi_ is but a spare attire; as late
- as thirty years back the women went naked until marriage; within ten
- years the custom lingered; and these facts, above all when heard in
- description, conveyed a very false idea of the manners of the group. A
- very intelligent missionary described it (in its former state) as a
- "Paradise of naked women" for the resident whites. It was at least a
- platonic Paradise, where Lothario ventured at his peril. Since 1860,
- fourteen whites have perished on a single island, all for the same
- cause, all found where they had no business, and speared by some
- indignant father of a family; the figure was given me by one of their
- contemporaries who had been more prudent and survived. The strange
- persistence of these fourteen martyrs might seem to point to monomania
- or a series of romantic passions; gin is the more likely key. The poor
- buzzards sat alone in their houses by an open case; they drank; their
- brain was fired; they stumbled towards the nearest houses on chance; and
- the dart went through their liver. In place of a Paradise the trader
- found an archipelago of fierce husbands and of virtuous women. "Of
- course if you wish to make love to them, it's the same as anywhere
- else," observed a trader innocently; but he and his companions rarely so
- choose.
- The trader must be credited with a virtue: he often makes a kind and
- loyal husband. Some of the worst beachcombers in the Pacific, some of
- the last of the old school, have fallen in my path, and some of them
- were admirable to their native wives, and one made a despairing widower.
- The position of a trader's wife in the Gilberts is, besides, unusually
- enviable. She shares the immunities of her husband. Curfew in Butaritari
- sounds for her in vain. Long after the bell is rung and the great island
- ladies are confined for the night to their own roof, this chartered
- libertine may scamper and giggle through the deserted streets or go down
- to bathe in the dark. The resources of the store are at her hand; she
- goes arrayed like a queen, and feasts delicately every day upon tinned
- meats. And she who was perhaps of no regard or station among natives
- sits with captains, and is entertained on board of schooners. Five of
- these privileged dames were some time our neighbours. Four were handsome
- skittish lasses, gamesome like children, and like children liable to
- fits of pouting. They wore dresses by day, but there was a tendency
- after dark to strip these lendings and to career and squall about the
- compound in the aboriginal _ridi_. Games of cards were continually
- played, with shells for counters; their course was much marred by
- cheating; and the end of a round (above all if a man was of the party)
- resolved itself into a scrimmage for the counters. The fifth was a
- matron. It was a picture to see her sail to church on a Sunday, a
- parasol in hand, a nursemaid following, and the baby buried in a trade
- hat and armed with a patent feeding-bottle. The service was enlivened by
- her continual supervision and correction of the maid. It was impossible
- not to fancy the baby was a doll, and the church some European playroom.
- All these women were legitimately married. It is true that the
- certificate of one, when she proudly showed it, proved to run thus, that
- she was "married for one night," and her gracious partner was at liberty
- to "send her to hell" the next morning; but she was none the wiser or
- the worse for the dastardly trick. Another, I heard, was married on a
- work of mine in a pirated edition; it answered the purpose as well as a
- Hall Bible. Notwithstanding all these allurements of social
- distinction, rare food and raiment, a comparative vacation from toil,
- and legitimate marriage contracted on a pirated edition, the trader must
- sometimes seek long before he can be mated. While I was in the group one
- had been eight months on the quest, and he was still a bachelor.
- Within strictly native society the old laws and practices were harsh,
- but not without a certain stamp of high-mindedness. Stealthy adultery
- was punished with death; open elopement was properly considered virtue
- in comparison, and compounded for a fine in land. The male adulterer
- alone seems to have been punished. It is correct manners for a jealous
- man to hang himself; a jealous woman has a different remedy--she bites
- her rival. Ten or twenty years ago it was a capital offence to raise a
- woman's _ridi_; to this day it is still punished with a heavy fine; and
- the garment itself is still symbolically sacred. Suppose a piece of land
- to be disputed in Butaritari, the claimant who shall first hang a _ridi_
- on the tapu-post has gained his cause, since no one can remove or touch
- it but himself.
- The _ridi_ was the badge not of the woman but the wife, the mark not of
- her sex but of her station. It was the collar on the slave's neck, the
- brand on merchandise. The adulterous woman seems to have been spared;
- were the husband offended, it would be a poor consolation to send his
- draught cattle to the shambles. Karaiti, to this day, calls his eight
- wives "his horses," some trader having explained to him the employment
- of these animals on farms; and Nanteitei hired out his wives to do
- mason-work. Husbands, at least when of high rank, had the power of life
- and death; even whites seem to have possessed it; and their wives, when
- they had transgressed beyond forgiveness, made haste to pronounce the
- formula of deprecation--_I Kana Kim_. This form of words had so much
- virtue that a condemned criminal, repeating it on a particular day to
- the king who had condemned him, must be instantly released. It is an
- offer of abasement, and, strangely enough, the reverse--the
- imitation--is a common vulgar insult in Great Britain to this day. I
- give a scene between a trader and his Gilbert Island wife, as it was
- told me by the husband, now one of the oldest residents, but then a
- freshman in the group.
- "Go and light a fire," said the trader, "and when I have brought this
- oil I will cook some fish."
- The woman grunted at him, island fashion.
- "I am not a pig that you should grunt at me," said he.
- "I know you are not a pig," said the woman, "neither am I your slave."
- "To be sure you are not my slave, and if you do not care to stop with
- me, you had better go home to your people," said he. "But in the
- meantime go and light the fire; and when I have brought this oil I will
- cook some fish."
- She went as if to obey; and presently when the trader looked she had
- built a fire so big that the cook-house was catching in flames.
- "_I Kana Kim!_" she cried, as she saw him coming; but he recked not, and
- hit her with a cooking-pot. The leg pierced her skull, blood spouted, it
- was thought she was a dead woman, and the natives surrounded the house
- in a menacing expectation. Another white was present, a man of older
- experience. "You will have us both killed if you go on like this," he
- cried. "She had said, _I Kana Kim_!" If she had not said _I Kana Kim_ he
- might have struck her with a caldron. It was not the blow that made the
- crime, but the disregard of an accepted formula.
- Polygamy, the particular sacredness of wives, their semi-servile state,
- their seclusion in kings' harems, even their privilege of biting, all
- would seem to indicate a Mohammedan society and the opinion of the
- soullessness of woman. And not so in the least. It is a mere appearance.
- After you have studied these extremes in one house, you may go to the
- next and find all reversed, the woman the mistress, the man only the
- first of her thralls. The authority is not with the husband as such, nor
- the wife as such. It resides in the chief or the chief-woman; in him or
- her who has inherited the lands of the clan, and stands to the clansman
- in the place of parent, exacting their service, answerable for their
- fines. There is but the one source of power and the one ground of
- dignity--rank. The king married a chief-woman; she became his menial,
- and must work with her hands on Messrs. Wightman's pier. The king
- divorced her; she regained at once her former state and power. She
- married the Hawaiian sailor, and behold the man is her flunkey and can
- be shown the door at pleasure. Nay, and such low-born lords are even
- corrected physically, and, like grown but dutiful children, must endure
- the discipline.
- We were intimate in one such household, that of Nei Takauti and Nan
- Tok'; I put the lady first of necessity. During one week of fool's
- paradise, Mrs. Stevenson had gone alone to the sea-side of the island
- after shells. I am very sure the proceeding was unsafe; and she soon
- perceived a man and woman watching her. Do what she would, her guardians
- held her steadily in view; and when the afternoon began to fall, and
- they thought she had stayed long enough, took her in charge, and by
- signs and broken English ordered her home. On the way the lady drew from
- her earring-hole a clay pipe, the husband lighted it, and it was handed
- to my unfortunate wife, who knew not how to refuse the incommodious
- favour; and when they were all come to our house, the pair sat down
- beside her on the floor, and improved the occasion with prayer. From
- that day they were our family friends; bringing thrice a day the
- beautiful island garlands of white flowers, visiting us any evening, and
- frequently carrying us down to their own maniap' in return, the woman
- leading Mrs. Stevenson by the hand like one child with another.
- Nan Tok', the husband, was young, extremely handsome, of the most
- approved good humour, and suffering in his precarious station from
- suppressed high spirits. Nei Takauti, the wife, was getting old; her
- grown son by a former marriage had just hanged himself before his
- mother's eyes in despair at a well-merited rebuke. Perhaps she had never
- been beautiful, but her face was full of character, her eye of sombre
- fire. She was a high chief-woman, but by a strange exception for a
- person of her rank, was small, spare and sinewy, with lean small hands
- and corded neck. Her full dress of an evening was invariably a white
- chemise--and for adornment, green leaves (or sometimes white blossoms)
- stuck in her hair and thrust through her huge earring-holes. The husband
- on the contrary changed to view like a kaleidoscope. Whatever pretty
- thing my wife might have given to Nei Takauti--a string of beads, a
- ribbon, a piece of bright fabric--appeared the next evening on the
- person of Nan Tok'. It was plain he was a clothes-horse; that he wore
- livery; that, in a word, he was his wife's wife. They reversed the
- parts, indeed, down to the least particular; it was the husband who
- showed himself the ministering angel in the hour of pain, while the wife
- displayed the apathy and heartlessness of the proverbial man.
- When Nei Takauti had a headache Nan Tok' was full of attention and
- concern. When the husband had a cold and a racking toothache the wife
- heeded not, except to jeer. It is always the woman's part to fill and
- light the pipe; Nei Takauti handed hers in silence to the wedded page;
- but she carried it herself, as though the page were not entirely
- trusted. Thus she kept the money, but it was he who ran the errands,
- anxiously sedulous. A cloud on her face dimmed instantly his beaming
- looks; on an early visit to their maniap' my wife saw he had cause to be
- wary. Nan Tok' had a friend with him, a giddy young thing, of his own
- age and sex; and they had worked themselves into that stage of
- jocularity when consequences are too often disregarded. Nei Takauti
- mentioned her own name. Instantly Nan Tok' held up two fingers, his
- friend did likewise, both in an ecstasy of slyness. It was plain the
- lady had two names; and from the nature of their merriment, and the
- wrath that gathered on her brow, there must be something ticklish in the
- second. The husband pronounced it; a well-directed cocoa-nut from the
- hand of his wife caught him on the side of the head, and the voices and
- the mirth of these indiscreet young gentlemen ceased for the day.
- The people of Eastern Polynesia are never at a loss; their etiquette is
- absolute and plenary; in every circumstance it tells them what to do and
- how to do it. The Gilbertines are seemingly more free, and pay for their
- freedom (like ourselves) in frequent perplexity. This was often the case
- with the topsy-turvy couple. We had once supplied them during a visit
- with a pipe and tobacco; and when they had smoked and were about to
- leave, they found themselves confronted with a problem: should they take
- or leave what remained of the tobacco? The piece of plug was taken up,
- it was laid down again, it was handed back and forth, and argued over,
- till the wife began to look haggard and the husband elderly. They ended
- by taking it, and I wager were not yet clear of the compound before they
- were sure they had decided wrong. Another time they had been given each
- a liberal cup of coffee, and Nan Tok' with difficulty and disaffection
- made an end of his. Nei Takauti had taken some, she had no mind for
- more, plainly conceived it would be a breach of manners to set down the
- cup unfinished, and ordered her wedded retainer to dispose of what was
- left. "I have swallowed all I can, I cannot swallow more, it is a
- physical impossibility," he seemed to say; and his stern officer
- reiterated her commands with secret imperative signals. Luckless dog!
- but in mere humanity we came to the rescue and removed the cup.
- I cannot but smile over this funny household; yet I remember the good
- souls with affection and respect. Their attention to ourselves was
- surprising. The garlands are much esteemed, the blossoms must be sought
- far and wide; and though they had many retainers to call to their aid,
- we often saw themselves passing afield after the blossoms, and the wife
- engaged with her own hands in putting them together. It was no want of
- heart, only that disregard so incident to husbands, that made Nei
- Takauti despise the sufferings of Nan Tok'. When my wife was unwell she
- proved a diligent and kindly nurse; and the pair, to the extreme
- embarrassment of the sufferer, became fixtures in the sick-room. This
- rugged, capable, imperious old dame, with the wild eyes, had deep and
- tender qualities; her pride in her young husband it seemed that she
- dissembled, fearing possibly to spoil him; and when she spoke of her
- dead son there came something tragic in her face. But I seemed to trace
- in the Gilbertines a virility of sense and sentiment which distinguishes
- them (like their harsh and uncouth language) from their brother
- islanders in the east.
- PART V
- THE GILBERTS--APEMAMA
- CHAPTER I
- THE KING OF APEMAMA: THE ROYAL TRADER
- There is one great personage in the Gilberts: Tembinok' of Apemama:
- solely conspicuous, the hero of song, the butt of gossip. Through the
- rest of the group the kings are slain or fallen in tutelage: Tembinok'
- alone remains, the last tyrant, the last erect vestige of a dead
- society. The white man is everywhere else, building his houses, drinking
- his gin, getting in and out of trouble with the weak native governments.
- There is only one white on Apemama, and he on sufferance, living far
- from court, and hearkening and watching his conduct like a mouse in a
- cat's ear. Through all the other islands a stream of native visitors
- comes and goes, travelling by families, spending years on the grand
- tour. Apemama alone is left upon one side, the tourist dreading to risk
- himself within the clutch of Tembinok'. And fear of the same Gorgon
- follows and troubles them at home. Maiana once paid him tribute; he once
- fell upon and seized Nonuti: first steps to the empire of the
- archipelago. A British warship coming on the scene, the conqueror was
- driven to disgorge, his career checked in the outset, his dear-bought
- armoury sunk in his own lagoon. But the impression had been made:
- periodical fear of him still shakes the islands; rumour depicts him
- mustering his canoes for a fresh onfall; rumour can name his
- destination; and Tembinok' figures in the patriotic war-songs of the
- Gilberts like Napoleon in those of our grandfathers.
- We were at sea, bound from Mariki to Nonuti and Tapituea, when the wind
- came suddenly fair for Apemama. The course was at once changed; all
- hands were turned-to to clean ship, the decks holy-stoned, the cabin
- washed, the trade-room overhauled. In all our cruising we never saw the
- _Equator_ so smart as she was made for Tembinok'. Nor was Captain Reid
- alone in these coquetries; for, another schooner chancing to arrive
- during my stay in Apemama, I found that she also was dandified for the
- occasion. And the two cases stand alone in my experience of South Sea
- traders.
- We had on board a family of native tourists, from the grandsire to the
- babe in arms, trying (against an extraordinary series of ill-luck) to
- regain their native island of Peru.[8] Five times already they had paid
- their fare and taken ship; five times they had been disappointed,
- dropped penniless upon strange islands, or carried back to Butaritari,
- whence they sailed. This last attempt had been no better-starred; their
- provisions were exhausted. Peru was beyond hope, and they had cheerfully
- made up their minds to a fresh stage of exile in Tapituea or Nonuti.
- With this slant of wind their random destination became once more
- changed; and like the Calendar's pilot, when the "black mountains" hove
- in view, they changed colour and beat upon their breasts. Their camp,
- which was on deck in the ship's waist, resounded with complaint. They
- would be set to work, they must become slaves, escape was hopeless, they
- must live and toil and die in Apemama, in the tyrant's den. With this
- sort of talk they so greatly terrified their children, that one (a big
- hulking boy) must at last be torn screaming from the schooner's side.
- And their fears were wholly groundless. I have little doubt they were
- not suffered to be idle; but I can vouch for it that they were kindly
- and generously used. For, the matter of a year later, I was once more
- shipmate with these inconsistent wanderers on board the _Janet Nicoll_.
- Their fare was paid by Tembinok'; they who had gone ashore from the
- _Equator_ destitute, reappeared upon the _Janet_ with new clothes, laden
- with mats and presents, and bringing with them a magazine of food, on
- which they lived like fighting-cocks throughout the voyage; I saw them
- at length repatriated, and I must say they showed more concern on
- quitting Apemama than delight at reaching home.
- We entered by the north passage (Sunday, September 1st), dodging among
- shoals. It was a day of fierce equatorial sunshine; but the breeze was
- strong and chill; and the mate, who conned the schooner from the
- cross-trees, returned shivering to the deck. The lagoon was thick with
- many-tinted wavelets; a continuous roaring of the outer sea overhung the
- anchorage; and the long, hollow crescent of palm ruffled and sparkled in
- the wind. Opposite our berth the beach was seen to be surmounted for
- some distance by a terrace of white coral, seven or eight feet high and
- crowned in turn by the scattered and incongruous buildings of the
- palace. The village adjoins on the south, a cluster of high-roofed
- maniap's. And village and palace seemed deserted.
- We were scarce yet moored, however, before distant and busy figures
- appeared upon the beach, a boat was launched, and a crew pulled out to
- us bringing the king's ladder. Tembinok' had once an accident; has
- feared ever since to intrust his person to the rotten chandlery of South
- Sea traders; and devised in consequence a frame of wood, which is
- brought on board a ship as soon as she appears, and remains lashed to
- her side until she leave. The boat's crew, having applied this engine,
- returned at once to shore. They might not come on board; neither might
- we land, or not without danger of offence; the king giving pratique in
- person. An interval followed, during which dinner was delayed for the
- great man; the prelude of the ladder giving us some notion of his
- weighty body and sensible, ingenious character, had highly whetted our
- curiosity; and it was with something like excitement that we saw the
- beach and terrace suddenly blacken with attendant vassals, the king and
- party embark, the boat (a man-of-war gig) come flying towards us dead
- before the wind, and the royal coxswain lay us cleverly aboard, mount
- the ladder with a jealous diffidence, and descend heavily on deck.
- Not long ago he was overgrown with fat, obscured to view, and a burthen
- to himself. Captains visiting the island advised him to walk; and though
- it broke the habits of a life and the traditions of his rank, he
- practised the remedy with benefit. His corpulence is now portable; you
- would call him lusty rather than fat; but his gait is still dull,
- stumbling, and elephantine. He neither stops nor hastens, but goes about
- his business with an implacable deliberation. We could never see him and
- not be struck with his extraordinary natural means for the theatre: a
- beaked profile like Dante's in the mask, a mane of long black hair, the
- eye brilliant, imperious, and inquiring: for certain parts, and to one
- who could have used it, the face was a fortune. His voice matched it
- well, being shrill, powerful, and uncanny, with a note like a
- sea-bird's. Where there are no fashions, none to set them, few to follow
- them if they were set, and none to criticise, he dresses--as Sir Charles
- Grandison lived--"to his own heart." Now he wears a woman's frock, now a
- naval uniform; now (and more usually) figures in a masquerade costume of
- his own design: trousers and a singular jacket with shirt tails, the cut
- and fit wonderful for island workmanship, the material always handsome,
- sometimes green velvet, sometimes cardinal red silk. This masquerade
- becomes him admirably. In the woman's frock he looks ominous and weird
- beyond belief. I see him now come pacing towards me in the cruel sun,
- solitary, a figure out of Hoffmann.
- A visit on board ship, such as that at which we now assisted, makes a
- chief part and by far the chief diversion of the life of Tembinok'. He
- is not only the sole ruler, he is the sole merchant of his triple
- kingdom, Apemama, Aranuka, and Kuria, well-planted islands. The taro
- goes to the chiefs, who divide as they please among their immediate
- adherents; but certain fish, turtles--which abound in Kuria,--and the
- whole produce of the coco-palm, belong exclusively to Tembinok'. "A'
- cobra[9] berong me," observed his majesty with, a wave of his hand; and
- he counts and sells it by the houseful. "You got copra, king?" I have
- heard a trader ask. "I got two, three outches,"[10] his majesty replied:
- "I think three." Hence the commercial importance of Apemama, the trade
- of three islands being centred there in a single hand; hence it is that
- so many whites have tried in vain to gain or to preserve a footing;
- hence ships are adorned, cooks have special orders, and captains array
- themselves in smiles, to greet the king. If he be pleased with his
- welcome and the fare he may pass days on board, and every day, and
- sometimes every hour, will be of profit to the ship. He oscillates
- between the cabin, where he is entertained with strange meats, and the
- trade-room, where he enjoys the pleasures of shopping on a scale to
- match his person. A few obsequious attendants squat by the house door,
- awaiting his least signal. In the boat, which has been suffered to drop
- astern, one or two of his wives lie covered from the sun under mats,
- tossed by the short sea of the lagoon, and enduring agonies of heat and
- tedium. This severity is now and then relaxed and the wives allowed on
- board. Three or four were thus favoured on the day of our arrival:
- substantial ladies airily attired in _ridis_. Each had a share of copra,
- her _peculium_, to dispose of for herself. The display in the
- trade-room--hats, ribbons, dresses, scents, tins of salmon--the pride of
- the eye and the lust of the flesh--tempted them in vain. They had but
- the one idea--tobacco, the island currency, tantamount to minted gold;
- returned to shore with it, burthened but rejoicing; and late into the
- night, on the royal terrace, were to be seen counting the sticks by
- lamplight in the open air.
- The king is no such economist. He is greedy of things new and foreign.
- House after house, chest after chest, in the palace precinct, is
- already crammed with clocks, musical boxes, blue spectacles, umbrellas,
- knitted waistcoats, bolts of stuff, tools, rifles, fowling-pieces,
- medicines, European foods, sewing-machines, and, what is more
- extraordinary, stoves: all that ever caught his eye, tickled his
- appetite, pleased him for its use, or puzzled him with its apparent
- inutility. And still his lust is unabated. He is possessed by the seven
- devils of the collector. He hears a thing spoken of, and a shadow comes
- on his face. "I think I no got him," he will say; and the treasures he
- has seem worthless in comparison. If a ship be bound for Apemama, the
- merchant racks his brain to hit upon some novelty. This he leaves
- carelessly in the main cabin or partly conceals in his own berth, so
- that the king shall spy it for himself. "How much you want?" inquires
- Tembinok', passing and pointing. "No, king; that too dear," returns the
- trader. "I think I like him," says the king. This was a bowl of
- gold-fish. On another occasion it was scented soap. "No, king; that cost
- too much," said the trader; "too good for a Kanaka." "How much you got?
- I take him all," replied his majesty, and became the lord of seventeen
- boxes at two dollars a cake. Or again, the merchant feigns the article
- is not for sale, is private property, an heirloom or a gift; and the
- trick infallibly succeeds. Thwart the king and you hold him. His
- autocratic nature rears at the affront of opposition. He accepts it for
- a challenge; sets his teeth like a hunter going at a fence; and with no
- mark of emotion, scarce even of interest, stolidly piles up the price.
- Thus, for our sins, he took a fancy to my wife's dressing-bag, a thing
- entirely useless to the man, and sadly battered by years of service.
- Early one forenoon he came to our house, sat down, and abruptly offered
- to purchase it. I told him I sold nothing, and the bag at any rate was a
- present from a friend; but he was acquainted with these pretexts from of
- old, and knew what they were worth and how to meet them. Adopting what I
- believe is called "the object method," he drew out a bag of English
- gold, sovereigns and half-sovereigns, and began to lay them one by one
- in silence on the table; at each fresh piece reading our faces with a
- look. In vain I continued to protest I was no trader; he deigned not to
- reply. There must have been twenty pounds on the table, he was still
- going on, and irritation had begun to mingle with our embarrassment,
- when a happy idea came to our delivery. Since his majesty thought so
- much of the bag, we said, we must beg him to accept it as a present. It
- was the most surprising turn in Tembinok's experience. He perceived too
- late that his persistence was unmannerly; hung his head a while in
- silence: then, lifting up a sheepish countenance, "I 'shamed," said the
- tyrant. It was the first and the last time we heard him own to a flaw in
- his behaviour. Half an hour after he sent us a camphor-wood chest, worth
- only a few dollars--but then heaven knows what Tembinok' had paid for
- it.
- Cunning by nature, and versed for forty years in the government of men,
- it must not be supposed that he is cheated blindly, or has resigned
- himself without resistance to be the milch-cow of the passing trader.
- His efforts have been even heroic. Like Nakaeia of Makin, he has owned
- schooners. More fortunate than Nakaeia, he has found captains. Ships of
- his have sailed as far as to the colonies. He has trafficked direct, in
- his own bottoms, with New Zealand. And even so, even there, the
- world-enveloping dishonesty of the white man prevented him; his profit
- melted, his ship returned in debt, the money for the insurance was
- embezzled, and when the _Coronet_ came to be lost, he was astonished to
- find he had lost all. At this he dropped his weapons; owned he might as
- hopefully wrestle with the winds of heaven; and like an experienced
- sheep, submitted his fleece thenceforward to the shearers. He is the
- last man in the world to waste anger on the incurable; accepts it with
- cynical composure; asks no more in those he deals with than a certain
- decency of moderation; drives as good a bargain as he can; and when he
- considers he is more than usually swindled, writes it in his memory
- against the merchant's name. He once ran over to me a list of captains
- and supercargoes with whom he had done business, classing them under
- three heads: "He cheat a litty"--"He cheat plenty"--and "I think he
- cheat too much." For the first two classes he expressed perfect
- toleration; sometimes, but not always, for the third. I was present when
- a certain merchant was turned about his business, and was the means
- (having a considerable influence ever since the bag) of patching up the
- dispute. Even on the day of our arrival there was like to have been a
- hitch with Captain Reid: the ground of which is perhaps worth recital.
- Among goods exported specially for Tembinok' there is a beverage known
- (and labelled) as Hennessy's brandy. It is neither Hennessy, nor even
- brandy; it is about the colour of sherry, but is not sherry; tastes of
- kirsch, and yet neither is it kirsch. The king, at least, has grown used
- to this amazing brand, and rather prides himself upon the taste; and any
- substitution is a double offence, being at once to cheat him and to cast
- a doubt upon his palate. A similar weakness is to be observed in all
- connoisseurs. Now, the last case sold by the _Equator_ was found to
- contain a different and I would fondly fancy a superior distillation;
- and the conversation opened very black for Captain Reid. But Tembinok'
- is a moderate man. He was reminded and admitted that all men were liable
- to error, even himself; accepted the principle that a fault handsomely
- acknowledged should be condoned; and wound the matter up with this
- proposal: "Tuppoti[11] I mi'take, you 'peakee me. Tuppoti you mi'take, I
- 'peakee you. Mo' betta."
- After dinner and supper in the cabin, a glass or two of "Hennetti"--the
- genuine article this time, with the kirsch bouquet,--and five hours'
- lounging on the trade-room counter, royalty embarked for home. Three
- tacks grounded the boat before the palace; the wives were carried
- ashore on the backs of vassals; Tembinok' stepped on a railed platform
- like a steamer's gangway, and was borne shoulder-high through the
- shallows, up the beach, and by an inclined plane, paved with pebbles, to
- the glaring terrace where he dwells.
- FOOTNOTES:
- [8] In the Gilbert group.
- [9] Copra: the dried kernel of the cocoa-nut, the chief article of
- commerce throughout the Pacific Islands.
- [10] Houses.
- [11] Suppose.
- CHAPTER II
- THE KING OF APEMAMA: FOUNDATION OF EQUATOR TOWN
- Our first sight of Tembinok' was a matter of concern, almost alarm, to
- my whole party. We had a favour to seek; we must approach in the proper
- courtly attitude of a suitor; and must either please him or fail in the
- main purpose of our voyage. It was our wish to land and live in Apemama,
- and see more near at hand the odd character of the man and the odd (or
- rather ancient) condition of his island. In all other isles of the South
- Seas a white man may land with his chest, and set up house for a
- lifetime, if he choose, and if he have the money or the trade; no
- hindrance is conceivable. But Apemama is a close island, lying there in
- the sea with closed doors; the king himself, like a vigilant officer,
- ready at the wicket to scrutinise and reject intrenching visitors. Hence
- the attraction of our enterprise; not merely because it was a little
- difficult, but because this social quarantine, a curiosity in itself,
- has been the preservative of others.
- Tembinok', like most tyrants, is a conservative; like many
- conservatives, he eagerly welcomes new ideas, and, except in the field
- of politics, leans to practical reform. When the missionaries came,
- professing a knowledge of the truth, he readily received them; attended
- their worship, acquired the accomplishment of public prayer, and made
- himself a student at their feet. It is thus--it is by the cultivation of
- similar passing chances--that he has learned to read, to write, to
- cipher, and to speak his queer, personal English, so different from
- ordinary "Beach de Mar," so much more obscure, expressive, and
- condensed. His education attended to, he found time to become critical
- of the new inmates. Like Nakaeia of Makin, he is an admirer of silence
- in the island; broods over it like a great ear; has spies who report
- daily; and had rather his subjects sang than talked. The service, and in
- particular the sermon, were thus sure to become offences: "Here, in my
- island, _I_ 'peak," he once observed to me. "My chieps no 'peak--do what
- I talk." He looked at the missionary, and what did he see? "See Kanaka
- 'peak in a big outch!" he cried, with a strong ring of sarcasm. Yet he
- endured the subversive spectacle, and might even have continued to
- endure it, had not a fresh point arisen. He looked again, to employ his
- own figure; and the Kanaka was no longer speaking, he was doing
- worse--he was building a copra-house. The king was touched in his chief
- interests; revenue and prerogative were threatened. He considered
- besides (and some think with him) that trade is incompatible with the
- missionary claims. "Tuppoti mitonary think 'good man': very good.
- Tuppoti he think 'cobra': no good. I send him away ship." Such was his
- abrupt history of the evangelist in Apemama.
- Similar deportations are common: "I send him away ship" is the epitaph
- of not a few, his majesty paying the exile's fare to the next place of
- call. For instance, being passionately fond of European food, he has
- several times added to his household a white cook, and one after another
- these have been deported. They, on their side, swear they were not paid
- their wages; he, on his, that they robbed and swindled him beyond
- endurance: both perhaps justly. A more important case was that of an
- agent despatched (as I heard the story) by a firm of merchants to worm
- his way into the king's good graces, become, if possible, premier, and
- handle the copra in the interests of his employers. He obtained
- authority to land, practised his fascinations, was patiently listened to
- by Tembinok', supposed himself on the highway to success; and behold!
- when the next ship touched at Apemama, the would-be premier was flung
- into a boat--had on board--his fare paid, and so good-bye. But it is
- needless to multiply examples; the proof of the pudding is in the
- eating. When we came to Apemama, of so many white men who have scrambled
- for a place in that rich market, one remained--a silent, sober,
- solitary, niggardly recluse, of whom the king remarks, "I think he good;
- he no 'peak."
- I was warned at the outset we might very well fail in our design; yet
- never dreamed of what proved to be the fact, that we should be left
- four-and-twenty hours in suspense and come within an ace of ultimate
- rejection. Captain Reid had primed himself; no sooner was the king on
- board, and the Hennetti question amicably settled, than he proceeded to
- express my request and give an abstract of my claims and virtues. The
- gammon about Queen Victoria's son might do for Butaritari; it was out of
- the question here; and I now figured as "one of the Old Men of England,"
- a person of deep knowledge, come expressly to visit Tembinok's dominion,
- and eager to report upon it to the no less eager Queen Victoria. The
- king made no shadow of an answer, and presently began upon a different
- subject. We might have thought he had not heard, or not understood; only
- that we found ourselves the subject of a constant study. As we sat at
- meals, he took us in series and fixed upon each, for near a minute at a
- time, the same hard and thoughtful stare. As he thus looked he seemed to
- forget himself, the subject and the company, and to become absorbed in
- the process of his thought; the look was wholly impersonal: I have seen
- the same in the eyes of portrait-painters. The counts upon which whites
- have been deported are mainly four: cheating Tembinok', meddling
- overmuch with copra, which is the source of his wealth and one of the
- sinews of his power, _'peaking_, and political intrigue. I felt
- guiltless upon all; but how to show it? I would not have taken copra in
- a gift: how to express that quality by my dinner-table bearing? The
- rest of the party shared my innocence and my embarrassment. They shared
- also in my mortification when after two whole meal-times and the odd
- moments of an afternoon devoted to this reconnoitring, Tembinok' took
- his leave in silence. Next morning, the same undisguised study, the same
- silence, was resumed; and the second day had come to its maturity before
- I was informed abruptly that I had stood the ordeal. "I look your eye.
- You good man. You no lie," said the king: a doubtful compliment to a
- writer of romance. Later he explained he did not quite judge by the eye
- only, but the mouth as well. "Tuppoti I see man," he explained. "I no
- tavvy good man, bad man. I look eye, look mouth. Then I tavvy. Look
- _eye_, look mouth," he repeated. And indeed in our case the mouth had
- the most to do with it, and it was by our talk that we gained admission
- to the island; the king promising himself (and I believe really
- amassing) a vast amount of useful knowledge ere we left.
- The terms of our admission were as follows: We were to choose a site,
- and the king should there build us a town. His people should work for
- us, but the king only was to give them orders. One of his cooks should
- come daily to help mine, and to learn of him. In case our stores ran
- out, he would supply us, and be repaid on the return of the _Equator_.
- On the other hand, he was to come to meals with us when so inclined;
- when he stayed at home, a dish was to be sent him from our table; and I
- solemnly engaged to give his subjects no liquor or money (both of which
- they are forbidden to possess) and no tobacco, which they were to
- receive only from the royal hand. I think I remember to have protested
- against the stringency of this last article; at least, it was relaxed,
- and when a man worked for me I was allowed to give him a pipe of tobacco
- on the premises, but none to take away.
- The site of Equator City--we named our city for the schooner--was soon
- chosen. The immediate shores of the lagoon are windy and blinding;
- Tembinok' himself is glad to grope blue-spectacled on his terrace; and
- we fled the neighbourhood of the red _conjunctiva_, the suppurating
- eyeball, and the beggar who pursues and beseeches the passing foreigner
- for eyewash. Behind the town the country is diversified; here open,
- sandy, uneven, and dotted with dwarfish palms; here cut up with taro
- trenches, deep and shallow, and, according to the growth of the plants,
- presenting now the appearance of a sandy tannery, now of an alleyed and
- green garden. A path leads towards the sea, mounting abruptly to the
- main level of the island--twenty or even thirty feet, although Findlay
- gives five; and just hard by the top of the rise, where the coco-palms
- begin to be well grown, we found a grove of pandanus, and a piece of
- soil pleasantly covered with green underbush. A well was not far off
- under a rustic well-house; nearer still, in a sandy cup of the land, a
- pond where we might wash our clothes. The place was out of the wind, out
- of the sun, and out of sight of the village. It was shown to the king,
- and the town promised for the morrow.
- The morrow came. Mr. Osbourne landed, found nothing done, and carried
- his complaint to Tembinok'. He heard it, rose, called for a Winchester,
- stepped without the royal palisade, and fired two shots in the air. A
- shot in the air is the first Apemama warning; it has the force of a
- proclamation in more loquacious countries; and his majesty remarked
- agreeably that it would make his labourers "mo' bright." In less than
- thirty minutes, accordingly, the men had mustered, the work was begun,
- and we were told that we might bring our baggage when we pleased.
- It was two in the afternoon ere the first boat was beached, and the long
- procession of chests and crates and sacks began to straggle through the
- sandy desert towards Equator Town. The grove of pandanus was practically
- a thing of the past. Fire surrounded and smoke rose in the green
- underbush. In a wide circuit the axes were still crashing. Those very
- advantages for which the place was chosen, it had been the king's first
- idea to abolish; and in the midst of this devastation there stood
- already a good-sized maniap' and a small closed house. A mat was spread
- near by for Tembinok'; here he sat superintending, in cardinal red, a
- pith helmet on his head, a meerschaum pipe in his mouth, a wife
- stretched at his back with custody of the matches and tobacco. Twenty or
- thirty feet in front of him the bulk of the workers squatted on the
- ground; some of the bush here survived; and in this the commons sat
- nearly to their shoulders, and presented only an arc of brown faces,
- black heads, and attentive eyes fixed on his majesty. Long pauses
- reigned, during which the subjects stared and the king smoked. Then
- Tembinok' would raise his voice and speak shrilly and briefly. There was
- never a response in words; but if the speech were jesting, there came by
- way of answer discreet, obsequious laughter--such laughter as we hear in
- schoolrooms; and if it were practical, the sudden uprising and departure
- of the squad. Twice they so disappeared, and returned with further
- elements of the city; a second house and a second maniap'. It was
- singular to spy, far off through the coco-stems, the silent oncoming of
- the maniap', at first (it seemed) swimming spontaneously in the air--but
- on a nearer view betraying under the eaves many score of moving naked
- legs. In all the affair servile obedience was no less remarkable than
- servile deliberation. The gang had here mustered by the note of a deadly
- weapon; the man who looked on was the unquestioned master of their
- lives; and except for civility, they bestirred themselves like so many
- American hotel clerks. The spectator was aware of an unobtrusive yet
- invincible inertia, at which the skipper of a trading dandy might have
- torn his hair.
- Yet the work was accomplished. By dusk, when his majesty withdrew, the
- town was founded and complete, a new and ruder Amphion having called it
- from nothing with three cracks of a rifle. And the next morning the same
- conjurer obliged us with a further miracle: a mystic rampart fencing us,
- so that the path which ran by our doors became suddenly impassable, the
- inhabitants who had business across the isle must fetch a wide circuit,
- and we sat in the midst in a transparent privacy, seeing, seen, but
- unapproachable, like bees in a glass hive. The outward and visible sign
- of this glamour was no more than a few ragged coco-leaf garlands round
- the stems of the outlying palms; but its significance reposed on the
- tremendous sanction of the tapu and the guns of Tembinok'.
- We made our first meal that night in the improvised city, where we were
- to stay two months, and which--so soon as we had done with it--was to
- vanish in a day as it appeared, its elements returning whence they came,
- the tapu raised, the traffic on the path resumed, the sun and the moon
- peering in vain between the palm-trees for the bygone work, the wind
- blowing over an empty site. Yet the place, which is now only an episode
- in some memories, seemed to have been built, and to be destined to
- endure, for years. It was a busy hamlet. One of the maniap's we made our
- dining-room, one the kitchen. The houses we reserved for sleeping. They
- were on the admirable Apemama plan: out and away the best house in the
- South Seas; standing some three feet above the ground on posts; the
- sides of woven flaps, which can be raised to admit light and air, or
- lowered to shut out the wind and the rain: airy, healthy, clean, and
- watertight. We had a hen of a remarkable kind: almost unique in my
- experience; being a hen that occasionally laid eggs. Not far off, Mrs.
- Stevenson tended a garden of salad and shalots. The salad was devoured
- by the hen--which was her bane. The shalots were served out a leaf at a
- time, and welcomed and relished like peaches. Toddy and green cocoa-nuts
- were brought us daily. We once had a present of fish from the king, and
- once of a turtle. Sometimes we shot so-called plover along on the shore,
- sometimes wild chicken in the bush. The rest of our diet was from tins.
- Our occupations were very various. While some of the party would be away
- sketching, Mr. Osbourne and I hammered away at a novel. We read Gibbon
- and Carlyle aloud; we blew on flageolets, we strummed on guitars; we
- took photographs by the light of the sun, the moon, and flash-powder;
- sometimes we played cards. Pot-hunting engaged a part of our leisure. I
- have myself passed afternoons in the exciting but innocuous pursuit of
- winged animals with a revolver; and it was fortunate there were better
- shots of the party, and fortunate the king could lend us a more suitable
- weapon, in the form of an excellent fowling-piece, or our spare diet had
- been sparer still.
- Night was the time to see our city, after the moon was up, after the
- lamps were lighted, and so long as the fire sparkled in the cook-house.
- We suffered from a plague of flies and mosquitoes, comparable to that of
- Egypt; our dinner-table (lent, like all our furniture, by the king) must
- be enclosed in a tent of netting, our citadel and refuge; and this
- became all luminous, and bulged and beaconed under the eaves, like the
- globe of some monstrous lamp under the margin of its shade. Our cabins,
- the sides being propped at a variety of inclinations, spelled out
- strange, angular patterns of brightness. In his roofed and open kitchen,
- Ah Fu was to be seen by lamp and firelight, dabbling among pots. Over
- all, there fell in the season an extraordinary splendour of mellow
- moonshine. The sand sparkled as with the dust of diamonds; the stars had
- vanished. At intervals, a dusky night-bird, slow and low flying, passed
- in the colonnade of the tree stems and uttered a hoarse croaking cry.
- CHAPTER III
- THE KING OF APEMAMA: THE PALACE OF MANY WOMEN
- The palace, or rather the ground which it includes, is several acres in
- extent. A terrace encloses it toward the lagoon; on the side of the
- land, a palisade with several gates. These are scarce intended for
- defence; a man, if he were strong, might easily pluck down the palisade;
- he need not be specially active to leap from the beach upon the terrace.
- There is no parade of guards, soldiers, or weapons; the armoury is under
- lock and key; and the only sentinels are certain inconspicuous old women
- lurking day and night before the gates. By day, these crones were often
- engaged in boiling syrup or the like household occupation; by night,
- they lay ambushed in the shadow or crouched along the palisade, filling
- the office of eunuchs to this harem, sole guards upon a tyrant life.
- Female wardens made a fit outpost for this palace of many women. Of the
- number of the king's wives I have no guess; and but a loose idea of
- their function. He himself displayed embarrassment when they were
- referred to as his wives, called them himself "my pamily," and explained
- they were his "cutcheons"--cousins. We distinguished four of the crowd:
- the king's mother; his sister, a grave, trenchant woman, with much of
- her brother's intelligence; the queen proper, to whom (and to whom
- alone) my wife was formally presented; and the favourite of the hour, a
- pretty, graceful girl, who sat with the king daily, and once (when he
- shed tears) consoled him with caresses. I am assured that even with her
- his relations are platonic. In the background figured a multitude of
- ladies, the lean, the plump, and the elephantine, some in sacque frocks,
- some in the hairbreadth _ridi_; high-born and low, slave and mistress;
- from the queen to the scullion, from the favourite to the scraggy
- sentries at the palisade. Not all of these of course are of "my
- pamily,"--many are mere attendants; yet a surprising number shared the
- responsibility of the king's trust. These were key-bearers, treasurers,
- wardens of the armoury, the napery, and the stores. Each knew and did
- her part to admiration. Should anything be required--a particular gun,
- perhaps, or a particular bolt of stuff,--the right queen was summoned;
- she came bringing the right chest, opened it in the king's presence, and
- displayed her charge in perfect preservation--the gun cleaned and oiled,
- the goods duly folded. Without delay or haste, and with the minimum of
- speech, the whole great establishment turned on wheels like a machine.
- Nowhere have I seen order more complete and pervasive. And yet I was
- always reminded of Norse tales of trolls and ogres who kept their hearts
- buried in the ground for the mere safety, and must confide the secret to
- their wives. For these weapons are the life of Tembinok'. He does not
- aim at popularity; but drives and braves his subjects, with a simplicity
- of domination which it is impossible not to admire, hard not to
- sympathise with. Should one out of so many prove faithless, should the
- armoury be secretly unlocked, should the crones have dozed by the
- palisade and the weapons find their way unseen into the village,
- revolution would be nearly certain, death the most probable result, and
- the spirit of the tyrant of Apemama flit to rejoin his predecessors of
- Mariki and Tapituea. Yet those whom he so trusts are all women, and all
- rivals.
- There is indeed a ministry and staff of males: cook, steward, carpenter,
- and supercargoes: the hierarchy of a schooner. The spies, "his majesty's
- daily papers," as we called them, come every morning to report, and go
- again. The cook and steward are concerned with the table only. The
- supercargoes, whose business it is to keep tally of the copra at three
- pounds a month and a percentage, are rarely in the palace; and two at
- least are in the other islands. The carpenter, indeed, shrewd and jolly
- old Rubam--query, Reuben?--promoted on my last visit to the greater
- dignity of governor, is daily present, altering, extending,
- embellishing, pursuing the endless series of the king's inventions; and
- his majesty will sometimes pass an afternoon watching and talking with
- Rubam at his work. But the males are still outsiders; none seems to be
- armed, none is intrusted with a key; by dusk they are all usually
- departed from the palace; and the weight of the monarchy and of the
- monarch's life reposes unshared on the women.
- Here is a household unlike, indeed, to one of ours; more unlike still to
- the Oriental harem: that of an elderly childless man, his days menaced,
- dwelling alone amid a bevy of women of all ages, ranks, and
- relationships,--the mother, the sister, the cousin, the legitimate wife,
- the concubine, the favourite, the eldest born, and she of yesterday; he,
- in their midst, the only master, the only male, the sole dispenser of
- honours, clothes, and luxuries, the sole mark of multitudinous ambitions
- and desires. I doubt if you could find a man in Europe so bold as to
- attempt this piece of tact and government. And seemingly Tembinok'
- himself had trouble in the beginning. I hear of him shooting at a wife
- for some levity on board a schooner. Another, on some more serious
- offence, he slew outright; he exposed her body in an open box, and (to
- make the warning more memorable) suffered it to putrefy before the
- palace gate. Doubtless his growing years have come to his assistance;
- for upon so large a scale it is more easy to play the father than the
- husband. And to-day, at least to the eye of a stranger, all seems to go
- smoothly, and the wives to be proud of their trust, proud of their rank,
- and proud of their cunning lord.
- I conceived they made rather a hero of the man. A popular master in a
- girls' school might, perhaps, offer a figure of his preponderating
- station. But then the master does not eat, sleep, live, and wash his
- dirty linen in the midst of his admirers; he escapes, he has a room of
- his own, he leads a private life; if he had nothing else, he has the
- holidays, and the more unhappy Tembinok' is always on the stage and on
- the stretch.
- In all my coming and going, I never heard him speak harshly or express
- the least displeasure. An extreme, rather heavy, benignity--the
- benignity of one sure to be obeyed--marked his demeanour; so that I was
- at times reminded of Samuel Richardson in his circle of admiring women.
- The wives spoke up and seemed to volunteer opinions, like our wives at
- home--or, say, like doting but respectable aunts. Altogether, I conclude
- that he rules his seraglio much more by art than terror; and those who
- give a different account (and who have none of them enjoyed my
- opportunities of observation) perhaps failed to distinguish between
- degrees of rank, between "my pamily" and the hangers-on, laundresses,
- and prostitutes.
- A notable feature is the evening game of cards; when lamps are set forth
- upon the terrace, and "I and my pamily" play for tobacco by the hour. It
- is highly characteristic of Tembinok' that he must invent a game for
- himself; highly characteristic of his worshipping household that they
- should swear by the absurd invention. It is founded on poker, played
- with the honours out of many packs, and inconceivably dreary. But I have
- a passion for all games, studied it, and am supposed to be the only
- white who ever fairly grasped its principle: a fact for which the wives
- (with whom I was not otherwise popular) admired me with acclamation. It
- was impossible to be deceived; this was a genuine feeling: they were
- proud of their private game, had been cut to the quick by the want of
- interest shown in it by others, and expanded under the flattery of my
- attention. Tembinok' puts up a double stake, and receives in return two
- hands to choose from: a shallow artifice which the wives (in all these
- years) have not yet fathomed. He himself, when talking with me
- privately, made not the least secret that he was secure of winning; and
- it was thus he explained his recent liberality on board the _Equator_.
- He let the wives buy their own tobacco, which pleased them at the
- moment. He won it back at cards, which made him once more, and without
- fresh expense, that which he ought to be,--the sole fount of all
- indulgences. And he summed the matter up in that phrase with which he
- almost always concludes any account of his policy: "Mo' betta."
- The palace compound is laid with broken coral, excruciating to the eyes
- and the bare feet, but exquisitely raked and weeded. A score or more of
- buildings lie in a sort of street along the palisade and scattered on
- the margin of the terrace; dwelling-houses for the wives and the
- attendants, storehouses for the king's curios and treasures, spacious
- maniap's for feast or council, some on pillars of wood, some on piers of
- masonry. One was still in hand, a new invention, the king's latest born:
- a European frame-house built for coolness inside a lofty maniap': its
- roof planked like a ship's deck to be a raised, shady, and yet private
- promenade. It was here the king spent hours with Rubam; here I would
- sometimes join them; the place had a most singular appearance; and I
- must say I was greatly taken with the fancy, and joined with relish in
- the counsels of the architects.
- Suppose we had business with his majesty by day: we strolled over the
- sand and by the dwarfish palms, exchanged a "_Konamaori_" with the
- crone on duty, and entered the compound. The wide sheet of coral glared
- before us deserted; all having stowed themselves in dark canvas from the
- excess of room. I have gone to and fro in that labyrinth of a place,
- seeking the king; and the only breathing creature I could find was when
- I peered under the eaves of a maniap', and saw the brawny body of one of
- the wives stretched on the floor, a naked Amazon plunged in noiseless
- slumber. If it were still the hour of the "morning papers" the quest
- would be more easy, the half-dozen obsequious, sly dogs squatting on the
- ground outside a house, crammed as far as possible in its narrow shadow,
- and turning to the king a row of leering faces. Tembinok' would be
- within, the flaps of the cabin raised, the trade blowing through,
- hearing their report. Like journalists nearer home, when the day's news
- were scanty, these would make the more of it in words; and I have known
- one to fill up a barren morning with an imaginary conversation of two
- dogs. Sometimes the king deigns to laugh, sometimes to question or jest
- with them, his voice sounding shrilly from the cabin. By his side he may
- have the heir-apparent, Paul, his nephew and adopted son, six years old,
- stark naked, and a model of young human beauty. And there will always be
- the favourite and perhaps two other wives awake; four more lying supine
- under mats and whelmed in slumber. Or perhaps we came later, fell on a
- more private hour, and found Tembinok' retired in the house with the
- favourite, an earthenware spittoon, a leaden inkpot, and a commercial
- ledger. In the last, lying on his belly, he writes from day to day the
- uneventful history of his reign; and when thus employed he betrayed a
- touch of fretfulness on interruption with which I was well able to
- sympathise. The royal annalist once read me a page or so, translating as
- he went; but the passage being genealogical, and the author boggling
- extremely in his version, I own I have been sometimes better
- entertained. Nor does he confine himself to prose, but touches the lyre
- too, in his leisure moments, and passes for the chief bard of his
- kingdom, as he is its sole public character, leading architect, and only
- merchant. His competence, however, does not reach to music; and his
- verses, when they are ready, are taught to a professional musician, who
- sets them and instructs the chorus. Asked what his songs were about,
- Tembinok' replied, "Sweethearts and trees and the sea. Not all the same
- true, all the same lie." For a condensed view of lyrical poetry (except
- that he seems to have forgot the stars and flowers) this would be hard
- to mend. These multifarious occupations bespeak (in a native and an
- absolute prince) unusual activity of mind.
- The palace court at noon is a spot to be remembered with awe, the
- visitor scrambling there, on the loose stones, through a splendid
- nightmare of light and heat; but the sweep of the wind delivers it from
- flies and mosquitoes; and with the set of sun it became heavenly. I
- remember it best on moonless nights. The air was like a bath of milk.
- Countless shining stars were overhead, the lagoon paved with them. Herds
- of wives squatted by companies on the gravel, softly chatting. Tembinok'
- would doff his jacket, and sit bare and silent, perhaps meditating
- songs; the favourite usually by him, silent also. Meanwhile in the midst
- of the court, the palace lanterns were being lit and marshalled in rank
- upon the ground--six or eight square yards of them; a sight that gave
- one strange ideas of the number of "my pamily"; such a sight as may be
- seen about dusk in a corner of some great terminus at home. Presently
- these fared off into all corners of the precinct, lighting the last
- labours of the day, lighting one after another to their rest that
- prodigious company of women. A few lingered in the middle of the court
- for the card-party, and saw the honours shuffled and dealt, and
- Tembinok' deliberating between his two hands, and the queens losing
- their tobacco. Then these also were scattered and extinguished; and
- their place was taken by a great bonfire, the night-light of the palace.
- When this was no more, smaller fires burned likewise at the gates. These
- were tended by the crones, unseen, unsleeping--not always unheard.
- Should any approach in the dark hours, a guarded alert made the circuit
- of the palisade; each sentry signalled her neighbour with a stone; the
- rattle of falling pebbles passed and died away; and the wardens of
- Tembinok' crouched in their places silent as before.
- CHAPTER IV
- THE KING OF APEMAMA: EQUATOR TOWN AND THE PALACE
- Five persons were detailed to wait upon us. Uncle Parker, who brought us
- toddy and green nuts, was an elderly, almost an old man, with the
- spirits, the industry, and the morals of a boy of ten. His face was
- ancient, droll, and diabolical, the skin stretched over taut sinews,
- like a sail on the guide-rope; and he smiled with every muscle of his
- head. His nuts must be counted every day, or he would deceive us in the
- tale; they must be daily examined, or some would prove to be unhusked;
- nothing but the king's name, and scarcely that, would hold him to his
- duty. After his toils were over, he was given a pipe, matches, and
- tobacco, and sat on the floor in the maniap' to smoke. He would not seem
- to move from his position, and yet every day, when the things fell to be
- returned, the plug had disappeared; he had found the means to conceal it
- in the roof, whence he could radiantly produce it on the morrow.
- Although this piece of legerdemain was performed regularly before three
- or four pairs of eyes, we could never catch him in the fact; although we
- searched after he was gone, we could never find the tobacco. Such were
- the diversions of Uncle Parker, a man nearing sixty. But he was punished
- according unto his deeds: Mrs. Stevenson took a fancy to paint him, and
- the sufferings of the sitter were beyond description.
- Three lasses came from the palace to do our washing and racket with Ah
- Fu. They were of the lowest class, hangers-on kept for the convenience
- of merchant skippers, probably low-born, perhaps out-islanders, with
- little refinement whether of manner or appearance, but likely and jolly
- enough wenches in their way. We called one "Guttersnipe," for you may
- find her image in the slums of any city; the same lean, dark-eyed,
- eager, vulgar face, the same sudden, hoarse guffaws, the same forward
- and yet anxious manner, as with a tail of an eye on the policeman: only
- the policeman here was a live king, and his truncheon a rifle. I doubt
- if you could find anywhere out of the islands, or often there, the
- parallel of "Fatty," a mountain of a girl, who must have weighed near as
- many stones as she counted summers, could have given a good account of a
- life-guardsman, had the face of a baby, and applied her vast mechanical
- forces almost exclusively to play. But they were all three of the same
- merry spirit. Our washing was conducted in a game of romps; and they
- fled and pursued, and splashed, and pelted, and rolled each other in the
- sand, and kept up a continuous noise of cries and laughter like holiday
- children. Indeed, and however strange their own function in that austere
- establishment, were they not escaped for the day from the largest and
- strictest Ladies' School in the South Seas?
- Our fifth attendant was no less a person than the royal cook. He was
- strikingly handsome both in face and body, lazy as a slave, and insolent
- as a butcher's boy. He slept and smoked on our premises in various
- graceful attitudes; but so far from helping Ah Fu, he was not at the
- pains to watch him. It may be said of him that he came to learn, and
- remained to teach; and his lessons were at times difficult to stomach.
- For example, he was sent to fill a bucket from the well. About half-way
- he found my wife watering her onions, changed buckets with her, and
- leaving her the empty, returned to the kitchen with the full. On another
- occasion he was given a dish of dumplings for the king, was told they
- must be eaten hot, and that he should carry them as fast as possible.
- The wretch set oft at the rate of about a mile in the hour, head in air,
- toes turned out. My patience, after a month of trial, failed me at the
- sight. I pursued, caught him by his two big shoulders, and thrusting him
- before me, ran with him down the hill, over the sands, and through the
- applauding village, to the Speak House, where the king was then holding
- a pow-wow. He had the impudence to pretend he was internally injured by
- my violence, and to profess serious apprehensions for his life.
- All this we endured; for the ways of Tembinok' are summary, and I was
- not yet ripe to take a hand in the man's death. But in the meanwhile,
- here was my unfortunate China boy slaving for the pair, and presently he
- fell sick. I was now in the position of Cimondain Lantenac, and indeed
- all the characters in _Quatre-Vingt-Treize_: to continue to spare the
- guilty, I must sacrifice the innocent. I took the usual course and tried
- to save both, with the usual consequence of failure. Well rehearsed, I
- went down to the palace, found the king alone, and obliged him with a
- vast amount of rigmarole. The cook was too old to learn; I feared he was
- not making progress; how if we had a boy instead?--boys were more
- teachable. It was all in vain; the king pierced through my disguises to
- the root of the fact; saw that the cook had desperately misbehaved; and
- sat a while glooming. "I think he tavvy too much," he said at last, with
- grim concision; and immediately turned the talk to other subjects. The
- same day another high officer, the steward, appeared in the cook's
- place, and, I am bound to say, proved civil and industrious.
- As soon as I left, it seems the king called for a Winchester and
- strolled outside the palisade, awaiting the defaulter. That day
- Tembinok' wore the woman's frock; as like as not, his make-up was
- completed by a pith helmet and blue spectacles. Conceive the glaring
- stretch of sand-hills, the dwarf palms with their noon-day shadows, the
- line of the palisade, the crone sentries (each by a small clear fire)
- cooking syrup on their posts--and this chimæra waiting with his deadly
- engine. To him, enter at last the cook, strolling down the sandhill
- from Equator Town, listless, vain and graceful; with no thought of
- alarm. As soon as he was well within range, the travestied monarch fired
- the six shots over his head, at his feet, and on either hand of him: the
- second Apemama warning, startling in itself, fatal in significance, for
- the next time his majesty will aim to hit. I am told the king is a crack
- shot; that when he aims to kill, the grave may be got ready; and when he
- aims misses by so near a margin that the culprit tastes six times the
- bitterness of death. The effect upon the cook I had an opportunity of
- seeing for myself. My wife and I were returning from the sea-side of the
- island, when we spied one coming to meet us at a very quick, disordered
- pace, between a walk and a run. As we drew nearer we saw it was the
- cook, beside himself with some emotion, his usual warm, mulatto colour
- declined into a bluish pallor. He passed us without word or gesture,
- staring on us with the face of a Satan, and plunged on across the wood
- for the unpeopled quarter of the island and the long, desert beach,
- where he might rage to and fro unseen, and froth out the vials of his
- wrath, fear, and humiliation. Doubtless in the curses that he there
- uttered to the bursting surf and the tropic birds, the name of the
- _Kaupoi_--the rich man--was frequently repeated. I had made him the
- laughing-stock of the village in the affair of the king's dumplings; I
- had brought him by my machinations into disgrace and the immediate
- jeopardy of his days; last, and perhaps bitterest, he had found me there
- by the way to spy upon him in the hour of his disorder.
- Time passed, and we saw no more of him. The season of the full moon came
- round, when a man thinks shame to lie sleeping; and I continued until
- late--perhaps till twelve or one in the morning--to walk on the bright
- sand and in the tossing shadow of the palms. I played, as I wandered, on
- a flageolet, which occupied much of my attention; the fans overhead
- rattled in the wind with a metallic chatter; and a bare foot falls at
- any rate almost noiseless on that shifting soil. Yet when I got back to
- Equator Town, where all the lights were out, and my wife (who was still
- awake, and had been looking forth) asked me who it was that followed me,
- I thought she spoke in jest. "Not at all," she said. "I saw him twice as
- you passed, walking close at your heels. He only left you at the corner
- of the maniap'; he must be still behind the cook-house." Thither I
- ran--like a fool, without any weapon--and came face to face with the
- cook. He was within my tapu-line, which was death in itself; he could
- have no business there at such an hour but either to steal or to kill;
- guilt made him timorous; and he turned and fled before me in the night
- in silence. As he went I kicked him in that place where honour lies, and
- he gave tongue faintly like an injured mouse. At the moment I dare say
- he supposed it was a deadly instrument that touched him.
- What had the man been after? I have found my music better qualified to
- scatter than to collect an audience. Amateur as I was, I could not
- suppose him interested in my reading of the "Carnival of Venice," or
- that he would deny himself his natural rest to follow my variations on
- "The Ploughboy." And whatever his design, it was impossible I should
- suffer him to prowl by night among the houses. A word to the king, and
- the man were not, his case being far beyond pardon. But it is one thing
- to kill a man yourself; quite another to bear tales behind his back and
- have him shot by a third party; and I determined to deal with the fellow
- in some method of my own. I told Ah Fu the story, and bade him fetch me
- the cook whenever he should find him. I had supposed this would be a
- matter of difficulty; and far from that, he came of his own accord: an
- act really of desperation, since his life hung by my silence, and the
- best he could hope was to be forgotten. Yet he came with an assured
- countenance, volunteered no apology or explanation, complained of
- injuries received, and pretended he was unable to sit down. I suppose I
- am the weakest man God made; I had kicked him in the least vulnerable
- part of his big carcase; my foot was bare, and I had not even hurt my
- foot. Ah Fu could not control his merriment. On my side, knowing what
- must be the nature of his apprehensions, I found in so much impudence a
- kind of gallantry, and secretly admired the man. I told him I should say
- nothing of his night's adventure to the king; that I should still allow
- him, when he had an errand, to come within my tapu-line by day; but if
- ever I found him there after the set of the sun I would shoot him on the
- spot; and to the proof showed him a revolver. He must have been
- incredibly relieved; but he showed no sign of it, took himself off with
- his usual dandy nonchalance, and was scarce seen by us again.
- These five, then, with the substitution of the steward for the cook,
- came and went, and were our only visitors. The circle of the tapu held
- at arm's-length the inhabitants of the village. As for "my pamily," they
- dwelt like nuns in their enclosure; only once have I met one of them
- abroad, and she was the king's sister, and the place in which I found
- her (the island infirmary) was very likely privileged. There remains
- only the king to be accounted for. He would come strolling over, always
- alone, a little before a meal-time, take a chair, and talk and eat with
- us like an old family friend. Gilbertine etiquette appears defective on
- the point of leave-taking. It may be remembered we had trouble in the
- matter with Karaiti; and there was something childish and disconcerting
- in Tembinok's abrupt "I want go home now," accompanied by a kind of
- ducking rise, and followed by an unadorned retreat. It was the only blot
- upon his manners, which were otherwise plain, decent, sensible, and
- dignified. He never stayed long nor drank much, and copied our behaviour
- where he perceived it to differ from his own. Very early in the day, for
- instance, he ceased eating with his knife. It was plain he was
- determined in all things to wring profit from our visit, and chiefly
- upon etiquette. The quality of his white visitors puzzled and concerned
- him; he would bring up name after name, and ask if its bearer were a
- "big chiep," or even a "chiep" at all--which, as some were my excellent
- good friends, and none were actually born in the purple, became at times
- embarrassing. He was struck to learn that our classes were
- distinguishable by their speech, and that certain words (for instance)
- were tapu on the quarter-deck of a man-of-war; and he begged in
- consequence that we should watch and correct him on the point. We were
- able to assure him that he was beyond correction. His vocabulary is apt
- and ample to an extraordinary degree. God knows where he collected it,
- but by some instinct or some accident he has avoided all profane or
- gross expressions. "Obliged," "stabbed," "gnaw," "lodge," "power,"
- "company," "slender," "smooth," and "wonderful," are a few of the
- unexpected words that enrich his dialect. Perhaps what pleased him most
- was to hear about saluting the quarter-deck of a man-of-war. In his
- gratitude for this hint he became fulsome. "Schooner cap'n no tell me,"
- he cried; "I think no tavvy! You tavvy too much; tavvy 'teama', tavvy
- man-a-wa'. I think you tavvy everything." Yet he gravelled me often
- enough with his perpetual questions; and the false Mr. Barlow stood
- frequently exposed before the royal Sandford. I remember once in
- particular. We were showing the magic-lantern; a slide of Windsor Castle
- was put in, and I told him there was the "outch" of Victoreea. "How many
- pathom he high?" he asked, and I was dumb before him. It was the
- builder, the indefatigable architect of palaces, that spoke; collector
- though he was, he did not collect useless information; and all his
- questions had a purpose. After etiquette, government, law, the police,
- money, and medicine were his chief interests--things vitally important
- to himself as a king and the father of his people. It was my part not
- only to supply new information, but to correct the old. "My patha he
- tell me," or "White man he tell me," would be his constant beginning;
- "You think he lie?" Sometimes I thought he did. Tembinok' once brought
- me a difficulty of this kind, which I was long of comprehending. A
- schooner captain had told him of Captain Cook; the king was much
- interested in the story; and turned for more information--not to Mr.
- Stephen's Dictionary, not to the "Britannica," but to the Bible in the
- Gilbert Island version (which consists chiefly of the New Testament and
- the Psalms). Here he sought long and earnestly; Paul he found, and
- Festus, and Alexander the coppersmith: no word of Cook. The inference
- was obvious: the explorer was a myth. So hard it is, even for a man of
- great natural parts like Tembinok', to grasp the ideas of a new society
- and culture.
- CHAPTER V
- KING AND COMMONS
- We saw but little of the commons of the isle. At first we met them at
- the well, where they washed their linen and we drew water for the table.
- The combination was distasteful; and, having a tyrant at command, we
- applied to the king and had the place enclosed in our tapu. It was one
- of the few favours which Tembinok' visibly boggled about granting, and
- it may be conceived how little popular it made the strangers. Many
- villagers passed us daily going afield; but they fetched a wide circuit
- round our tapu, and seemed to avert their looks. At times we went
- ourselves into the village--a strange place. Dutch by its canals,
- Oriental by the height and steepness of the roofs, which looked at dusk
- like temples; but we were rarely called into a house: no welcome, no
- friendship, was offered us; and of home life we had but the one view:
- the waking of a corpse, a frigid, painful scene: the widow holding on
- her lap the cold, bluish body of her husband, and now partaking of the
- refreshments which made the round of the company, now weeping and
- kissing the pale mouth. ("I fear you feel this affliction deeply," said
- the Scottish minister. "Eh, sir, and that I do!" replied the widow.
- "I've been greetin' a' nicht; an' noo I'm just gaun to sup this bit
- parritch, and then I'll begin an' greet again.") In our walks abroad I
- have always supposed the islanders avoided us, perhaps from distaste,
- perhaps by order; and those whom we met we took generally by surprise.
- The surface of the isle is diversified with palm groves, thickets, and
- romantic dingles four feet deep, relics of old taro plantations, and it
- is thus possible to stumble unawares on folk resting or hiding from
- their work. About pistol-shot from our township there lay a pond in the
- bottom of a jungle; here the maids of the isle came to bathe, and were
- several times alarmed by our intrusion. Not for them are the bright cold
- rivers of Tahiti or Upolu, not for them to splash and laugh in the hour
- of the dusk with a villageful of gay companions; but to steal here
- solitary, to crouch in a place like a cow-wallow, and wash (if that can
- be called washing) in lukewarm mud, brown as their own skins. Other, but
- still rare, encounters occur to my memory. I was several times arrested
- by a tender sound in the bush of voices talking, soft as flutes and with
- quiet intonations. Hope told a flattering tale: I put aside the leaves;
- and behold! in place of the expected dryads, a pair of all too solid
- ladies squatting over a clay pipe in the ungraceful _ridi_. The beauty
- of the voice and the eye was all that remained to these vast dames; but
- that of the voice was exquisite indeed. It is strange I should have
- never heard a more winning sound of speech, yet the dialect should be
- one remarkable for violent, ugly, and outlandish vocables; so that
- Tembinok' himself declared it made him weary, and professed to find
- repose in talking English.
- The state of this folk, of whom I saw so little, I can merely guess at.
- The king himself explains the situation with some art. "No; I no pay
- them," he once said. "I give them tobacco. They work for me _all the
- same brothers_." It is true there was a brother once in Arden! But we
- prefer the shorter word. They bear every servile mark,--levity like a
- child's, incurable idleness, incurious content. The insolence of the
- cook was a trait of his own; not so his levity, which he shared with the
- innocent Uncle Parker. With equal unconcern both gambolled under the
- shadow of the gallows, and took liberties with death that might have
- surprised a careless student of man's nature. I wrote of Parker that he
- behaved like a boy of ten: what was he else, being a slave of sixty? He
- had passed all his years in school, fed, clad, thought for, commanded;
- and had grown familiar and coquetted with the fear of punishment. By
- terror you may drive men long, but not far. Here, in Apemama, they work
- at the constant and the instant peril of their lives; and are plunged in
- a kind of lethargy of laziness. It is common to see one go afield in his
- stiff mat ungirt, so that he walks elbows-in like a trussed fowl; and
- whatsoever his right hand findeth to do, the other must be off duty
- holding on his clothes. It is common to see two men carrying between
- them on a pole a single bucket of water. To make two bites of a cherry
- is good enough: to make two burthens of a soldier's kit, for a distance
- of perhaps half a furlong, passes measure. Woman, being the less
- childish animal, is less relaxed by servile conditions. Even in the
- king's absence, even when they were alone, I have seen Apemama women
- work with constancy. But the outside to be hoped for in a man is that he
- may attack his task in little languid fits, and lounge between-whiles.
- So I have seen a painter, with his pipe going, and a friend by the
- studio fireside. You might suppose the race to lack civility, even
- vitality, until you saw them in the dance. Night after night, and
- sometimes day after day, they rolled out their choruses in the great
- Speak House--solemn andantes and adagios, led by the clapped hand, and
- delivered with an energy that shook the roof. The time was not so slow,
- though it was slow for the islands; but I have chosen rather to indicate
- the effect upon the hearer. Their music had a church-like character from
- near at hand, and seemed to European ears more regular than the run of
- island music. Twice I have heard a discord regularly solved. From
- farther off, heard at Equator Town for instance, the measures rose and
- fell and crepitated like the barking of hounds in a distant kennel.
- The slaves are certainly not overworked--children of ten do more without
- fatigue--and the Apemama labourers have holidays, when the singing
- begins early in the afternoon. The diet is hard; copra and a sweetmeat
- of pounded pandanus are the only dishes I observed outside the palace;
- but there seems no defect in quantity, and the king shares with them his
- turtles. Three came in a boat from Kuria during our stay; one was kept
- for the palace, one sent to us, one presented to the village. It is the
- habit of the islanders to cook the turtle in its carapace; we had been
- promised the shells, and we asked a tapu on this foolish practice. The
- face of Tembinok' darkened and he answered nothing. Hesitation in the
- question of the well I could understand, for water is scarce on a low
- island; that he should refuse to interfere upon a point of cookery was
- more than I had dreamed of; and I gathered (rightly or wrongly) that he
- was scrupulous of touching in the least degree the private life and
- habits of his slaves. So that even here, in full despotism, public
- opinion has weight; even here, in the midst of slavery, freedom has a
- corner.
- Orderly, sober, and innocent, life flows in the isle from day to day as
- in a model plantation under a model planter. It is impossible to doubt
- the beneficence of that stern rule. A curious politeness, a soft and
- gracious manner, something effeminate and courtly, distinguishes the
- islanders of Apemama; it is talked of by all the traders, it was felt
- even by residents so little beloved as ourselves, and noticeable even in
- the cook, and even in that scoundrel's hours of insolence. The king,
- with his manly and plain bearing, stood out alone; you might say he was
- the only Gilbert Islander in Apemama. Violence, so common in Butaritari,
- seems unknown. So are theft and drunkenness. I am assured the experiment
- has been made of leaving sovereigns on the beach before the village:
- they lay there untouched. In all our time on the island I was but once
- asked for drink. This was by a mighty plausible fellow, wearing European
- clothes and speaking excellent English--Tamaiti his name, or, as the
- whites have now corrupted it, "Tom White": one of the king's
- supercargoes at three pounds a month and a percentage, a medical man
- besides, and in his private hours a wizard. He found me one day in the
- outskirts of the village, in a secluded place, hot and private, where
- the taro-pits are deep and the plants high. Here he buttonholed me, and,
- looking about him like a conspirator, inquired if I had gin.
- I told him I had. He remarked that gin was forbidden, lauded the
- prohibition a while, and then went on to explain that he was a doctor,
- or "dogstar" as he pronounced the word, that gin was necessary to him
- for his medical infusions, that he was quite out of it, and that he
- would be obliged to me for some in a bottle. I told him I had passed the
- king my word on landing; but since his case was so exceptional, I would
- go down to the palace at once, and had no doubt that Tembinok' would set
- me free. Tom White was immediately overwhelmed with embarrassment and
- terror, besought me in the most moving terms not to betray him, and fled
- my neighbourhood. He had none of the cook's valour; it was weeks before
- he dared to meet my eye; and then only by the order of the king and on
- particular business.
- The more I viewed and admired this triumph of firm rule, the more I was
- haunted and troubled by a problem, the problem (perhaps) of to-morrow
- for ourselves. Here was a people protected from all serious misfortune,
- relieved of all serious anxieties, and deprived of what we call our
- liberty. Did they like it? and what was their sentiment towards the
- ruler? The first question I could not of course ask, nor perhaps the
- natives answer. Even the second was delicate; yet at last, and under
- charming and strange circumstances, I found my opportunity to put it and
- a man to reply. It was near the full of the moon, with a delicious
- breeze; the isle was bright as day--to sleep would have been sacrilege;
- and I walked in the bush, playing my pipe. It must have been the sound
- of what I am pleased to call my music that attracted in my direction
- another wanderer of the night. This was a young man attired in a fine
- mat, and with a garland on his hair, for he was new come from dancing
- and singing in the public hall; and his body, his face, and his eyes
- were all of an enchanting beauty. Every here and there in the Gilberts
- youth are to be found of this absurd perfection; I have seen five of us
- pass half an hour in admiration of a boy at Mariki; and Te Kop (my
- friend in the fine mat and garland) I had already several times
- remarked, and long ago set down as the loveliest animal in Apemama. The
- philtre of admiration must be very strong, or these natives specially
- susceptible to its effects, for I have scarce ever admired a person in
- the islands but what he has sought my particular acquaintance. So it was
- with Te Kop. He led me to the ocean side; and for an hour or two we sat
- smoking and talking on the resplendent sand and under the ineffable
- brightness of the moon. My friend showed himself very sensible of the
- beauty and amenity of the hour. "Good night! Good wind!" he kept
- exclaiming, and as he said the words he seemed to hug myself. I had long
- before invented such reiterated expressions of delight for a character
- (Felipe, in the story of "Olalla") intended to be partly bestial. But
- there was nothing bestial in Te Kop: only a childish pleasure in the
- moment. He was no less pleased with his companion, or was good enough to
- say so; honoured me, before he left, by calling me Te Kop; apostrophised
- me as "My name!" with an intonation exquisitely tender, laying his hand
- at the same time swiftly on my knee; and after we had risen, and our
- paths began to separate in the bush, twice cried to me with a sort of
- gentle ecstasy, "I like you too much!" From the beginning he had made no
- secret of his terror of the king; would not sit down or speak above a
- whisper till he had put the whole breadth of the isle between himself
- and his monarch, then harmlessly asleep; and even there, even within a
- stone-cast of the outer sea, our talk covered by the sound of the surf
- and the rattle of the wind among the palms, continued to speak
- guardedly, softening his silver voice (which rang loud enough in the
- chorus) and looking about him like a man in fear of spies. The strange
- thing is that I should have beheld him no more. In any other island in
- the whole South Seas, if I had advanced half as far with any native, he
- would have been at my door next morning, bringing and expecting gifts.
- But Te Kop vanished in the bush for ever. My house, of course, was
- unapproachable; but he knew where to find me on the open beach, where I
- went daily. I was the _Kaupoi_, the rich man; my tobacco and trade were
- known to be endless: he was sure of a present. I am at a loss how to
- explain his behaviour, unless it be supposed that he recalled with
- terror and regret a passage in our interview. Here it is:
- "The king, he good man?" I asked.
- "Suppose he like you, he good man," replied Te Kop: "no like, no good."
- That is one way of putting it, of course. Te Kop himself was probably no
- favourite, for he scarce appealed to my judgment as a type of industry.
- And there must be many others whom the king (to adhere to the formula)
- does not like. Do these unfortunates like the king? Or is not rather the
- repulsion mutual? and the conscientious Tembinok', like the
- conscientious Braxfield before him, and many other conscientious rulers
- and judges before either, surrounded by a considerable body of
- "grumbletonians"? Take the cook, for instance, when he passed us by,
- blue with rage and terror. He was very wroth with me; I think by all the
- old principles of human nature he was not very well pleased with his
- sovereign. It was the rich man he sought to waylay: I think it must have
- been by the turn of a hair that it was not the king he waylaid instead.
- And the king gives, or seems to give, plenty of opportunities; day and
- night he goes abroad alone, whether armed or not I can but guess; and
- the taro-patches, where his business must so often carry him, seem
- designed for assassination. The case of the cook was heavy indeed to my
- conscience. I did not like to kill my enemy at second-hand; but had I a
- right to conceal from the king, who had trusted me, the dangerous secret
- character of his attendant? And suppose the king should fall, what
- would be the fate of the king's friends? It was our opinion at the time
- that we should pay dear for the closing of the well; that our breath was
- in the king's nostrils; that if the king should by any chance be
- bludgeoned in a taro-patch, the philosophical and musical inhabitants of
- Equator Town might lay aside their pleasant instruments, and betake
- themselves to what defence they had, with a very dim prospect of
- success. These speculations were forced upon us by an incident which I
- am ashamed to betray. The schooner _H.L. Haseltine_ (since capsized at
- sea, with the loss of eleven lives) put in to Apemama in a good hour for
- us, who had near exhausted our supplies. The king, after his habit,
- spent day after day on board; the gin proved unhappily to his taste; he
- brought a store of it ashore with him; and for some time the sole tyrant
- of the isle was half-seas-over. He was not drunk--the man is not a
- drunkard, he has always stores of liquor at hand, which he uses with
- moderation,--but he was muzzy, dull, and confused. He came one day to
- lunch with us, and while the cloth was being laid fell asleep in his
- chair. His confusion, when he awoke and found he had been detected, was
- equalled by our uneasiness. When he was gone we sat and spoke of his
- peril, which we thought to be in some degree our own; of how easily the
- man might be surprised in such a state by _grumbletonians_; of the
- strange scenes that would follow--the royal treasures and stores at the
- mercy of the rabble, the palace over-run, the garrison of women turned
- adrift. And as we talked we were startled by a gun-shot and a sudden,
- barbaric outcry. I believe we all changed colour; but it was only the
- king firing at a dog and the chorus striking up in the Speak House. A
- day or two later I learned the king was very sick; went down, diagnosed
- the case; and took at once the highest medical degree by the exhibition
- of bicarbonate of soda. Within the hour Richard was himself again; and I
- found him at the unfinished house, enjoying the double pleasure of
- directing Rubam and making a dinner off cocoa-nut dumplings, and all
- eagerness to have the formula of this new sort of _pain-killer_--for
- _pain-killer_ in the islands is the generic name of medicine. So ended
- the king's modest spree and our anxiety.
- On the face of things, I ought to say, loyalty appeared unshaken. When
- the schooner at last returned for us, after much experience of baffling
- winds, she brought a rumour that Tebureimoa had declared war on Apemama.
- Tembinok' became a new man; his face radiant; his attitude, as I saw him
- preside over a council of chiefs in one of the palace maniap's, eager as
- a boy's; his voice sounding abroad shrill and jubilant, over half the
- compound. War is what he wants, and here was his chance. The English
- captain, when he flung his arms in the lagoon, had forbidden him (except
- in one case) all military adventures in the future: here was the case
- arrived. All morning the council sat; men were drilled, arms were
- bought, the sound of firing disturbed the afternoon; the king devised
- and communicated to me his plan of campaign, which was highly elaborate
- and ingenious, but perhaps a trifle fine-spun for the rough and random
- vicissitudes of war. And in all this bustle the temper of the people
- appeared excellent, an unwonted animation in every face, and even Uncle
- Parker burning with military zeal.
- Of course it was a false alarm. Tebureimoa had other fish to fry. The
- ambassador who accompanied us on our return to Butaritari found him
- retired to a small island on the reef, in a huff with the Old Men, a
- tiff with the traders, and more fear of insurrection at home than
- appetite for wars abroad. The plenipotentiary had been placed under my
- protection; and we solemnly saluted when we met. He proved an excellent
- fisherman, and caught bonito over the ship's side. He pulled a good oar,
- and made himself useful for a whole fiery afternoon, towing the becalmed
- _Equator_ off Mariki. He went to his post and did no good. He returned
- home again, having done no harm. _O si sic omnes!_
- CHAPTER VI
- THE KING OF APEMAMA: DEVIL-WORK
- The ocean beach of Apemama was our daily resort. The coast is broken by
- shallow bays. The reef is detached, elevated, and includes a lagoon
- about knee-deep, the unrestful spending-basin of the surf. The beach is
- now of fine sand, now of broken coral. The trend of the coast being
- convex, scarce a quarter of a mile of it is to be seen at once; the land
- being so low, the horizon appears within a stone-cast; and the narrow
- prospect enhances the sense of privacy. Man avoids the place--even his
- footprints are uncommon; but a great number of birds hover and pipe
- there fishing, and leave crooked tracks upon the sand. Apart from these,
- the only sound (and I was going to say the only society) is that of the
- breakers on the reef.
- On each projection of the coast, the bank of coral clinkers immediately
- above the beach has been levelled, and a pillar built, perhaps
- breast-high. These are not sepulchral; all the dead being buried on the
- inhabited side of the island, close to men's houses, and (what is worse)
- to their wells. I was told they were to protect the isle against inroads
- from the sea--divine or diabolical martellos, probably sacred to
- Taburik, God of Thunder.
- The bay immediately opposite Equator Town, which we called Fu Bay, in
- honour of our cook, was thus fortified on either horn. It was well
- sheltered by the reef, the enclosed water clear and tranquil, the
- enclosing beach curved like a horseshoe, and both steep and broad. The
- path debouched about the midst of the re-entrant angle, the woods
- stopping some distance inland. In front, between the fringe of the wood
- and the crown of the beach, there had been designed a regular figure,
- like the court for some new variety of tennis, with borders of round
- stones imbedded, and pointed at the angles with low posts, likewise of
- stone. This was the king's Pray Place. When he prayed, what he prayed
- for, and to whom he addressed his supplications, I could never learn.
- The ground was tapu.
- In the angle, by the mouth of the path, stood a deserted maniap'. Near
- by there had been a house before our coming, which was now transported
- and figured for the moment in Equator Town. It had been, and it would be
- again when we departed, the residence of the guardian and wizard of the
- spot--Tamaiti. Here, in this lone place, within sound of the sea, he had
- his dwelling and uncanny duties. I cannot call to mind another case of a
- man living on the ocean side of any open atoll; and Tamaiti must have
- had strong nerves, the greater confidence in his own spells, or, what I
- believe to be the truth, an enviable scepticism. Whether Tamaiti had any
- guardianship of the Pray Place I never heard. But his own particular
- chapel stood farther back in the fringe of the wood. It was a tree of
- respectable growth. Around it there was drawn a circle of stones like
- those that enclosed the Pray Place; in front, facing towards the sea, a
- stone of a much greater size, and somewhat hollowed, like a piscina,
- stood close against the trunk; in front of that again a conical pile of
- gravel. In the hollow of what I have called the piscina (though it
- proved to be a magic seat) lay an offering of green cocoa-nuts; and when
- you looked up you found the boughs of the tree to be laden with strange
- fruit: palm-branches elaborately plaited, and beautiful models of
- canoes, finished and rigged to the least detail. The whole had the
- appearance of a midsummer and sylvan Christmas-tree _al fresco_. Yet we
- were already well enough acquainted in the Gilberts to recognise it, at
- the first sight, for a piece of wizardry, or, as they say in the group,
- of Devil-work.
- The plaited palms were what we recognised. We had seen them before on
- Apaiang, the most christianised of all these islands; where excellent
- Mr. Bingham lived and laboured and has left golden memories; whence all
- the education in the northern Gilberts traces its descent; and where we
- were boarded by little native Sunday-school misses in clean frocks, with
- demure faces, and singing hymns as to the manner born.
- Our experience of Devil-work at Apaiang had been as follows:--It chanced
- we were benighted at the house of Captain Tierney. My wife and I lodged
- with a Chinaman some half a mile away; and thither Captain Reid and a
- native boy escorted us by torchlight. On the way the torch went out, and
- we took shelter in a small and lonely Christian chapel to rekindle it.
- Stuck in the rafters of the chapel was a branch of knotted palm. "What is
- that?" I asked. "O, that's Devil-work," said the Captain. "And what is
- Devil-work?" I inquired. "If you like, I'll show you some when we get to
- Johnnie's," he replied. "Johnnie's" was a quaint little house upon the
- crest of the beach, raised some three feet on posts, approached by stairs;
- part walled, part trellised. Trophies of advertisement-photographs were
- hung up within for decoration. There was a table and a recess-bed, in
- which Mrs. Stevenson slept; while I camped on the matted floor with
- Johnnie, Mrs. Johnnie, her sister, and the devil's own regiment of
- cockroaches. Hither was summoned an old witch, who looked the part to
- horror. The lamp was set on the floor; the crone squatted on the
- threshold, a green palm-branch in her hand, the light striking full on her
- aged features and picking out behind her, from the black night, timorous
- faces of spectators. Our sorceress began with a chanted incantation; it
- was in the old tongue, for which I had no interpreter; but ever and again
- there ran along the crowd outside that laugh which every traveller in the
- islands learns so soon to recognise,--the laugh of terror. Doubtless these
- half-Christian folk were shocked, these half-heathen folk alarmed. Chench
- or Taburik thus invoked, we put our questions; the witch knotted the
- leaves, here a leaf and there a leaf, plainly on some arithmetical system;
- studied the result with great apparent contention of mind; and gave the
- answers. Sidney Colvin was in robust health and gone a journey; and we
- should have a fair wind upon the morrow: that was the result of our
- consultation, for which we paid a dollar. The next day dawned cloudless
- and breathless; but I think Captain Reid placed a secret reliance on the
- sibyl, for the schooner was got ready for sea. By eight the lagoon was
- flawed with long cat's-paws, and the palms tossed and rustled; before ten
- we were clear of the passage and skimming under all plain sail, with
- bubbling scuppers. So we had the breeze, which was well worth a dollar in
- itself; but the bulletin about my friend in England proved, some six
- months later, when I got my mail, to have been groundless. Perhaps London
- lies beyond the horizon of the island gods.
- Tembinok', in his first dealings, showed himself sternly averse from
- superstition: and had not the _Equator_ delayed, we might have left the
- island and still supposed him to be an agnostic. It chanced one day,
- however, that he came to our maniap', and found Mrs. Stevenson in the
- midst of a game of patience. She explained the game as well as she was
- able, and wound up jocularly by telling him this was her devil-work, and
- if she won, the _Equator_ would arrive next day. Tembinok' must have
- drawn a long breath; we were not so high-and-dry after all; he need no
- longer dissemble, and he plunged at once into confessions. He made
- devil-work every day, he told us, to know if ships were coming in; and
- thereafter brought us regular reports of the results. It was surprising
- how regularly he was wrong; but he had always an explanation ready.
- There had been some schooner in the offing out of view; but either she
- was not bound for Apemama, or had changed her course, or lay becalmed. I
- used to regard the king with veneration as he thus publicly deceived
- himself. I saw behind him all the fathers of the Church, all the
- philosophers and men of science of the past; before him, all those that
- are to come; himself in the midst; the whole visionary series bowed over
- the same task of welding incongruities. To the end Tembinok' spoke
- reluctantly of the island gods and their worship, and I learned but
- little. Taburik is the god of thunder, and deals in wind and weather. A
- while since there were wizards who could call him down in the form of
- lightning. "My patha he tell me he see: you think he lie?"
- Tienti--pronounced something like "Chench," and identified by his
- majesty with the devil--sends and removes bodily sickness. He is
- whistled for in the Paumotuan manner, and is said to appear; but the
- king has never seen him. The doctors treat disease by the aid of Chench:
- eclectic Tembinok' at the same time administering "pain-killer" from his
- medicine-chest, so as to give the sufferer both chances. "I think mo'
- betta," observed his majesty, with more than his usual self-approval.
- Apparently the gods are not jealous, and placidly enjoy both shrine and
- priest in common. On Tamaiti's medicine-tree, for instance, the model
- canoes are hung up _ex voto_ for a prosperous voyage, and must therefore
- be dedicated to Taburik, god of the weather; but the stone in front is
- the place of sick folk come to pacify Chench.
- It chanced, by great good luck, that even as we spoke of these affairs,
- I found myself threatened with a cold. I do not suppose I was ever glad
- of a cold before, or shall ever be again; but the opportunity to see the
- sorcerers at work was priceless, and I called in the faculty of Apemama.
- They came in a body, all in their Sunday's best and hung with wreaths
- and shells, the insignia of the devil-worker. Tamaiti I knew already:
- Terutak' I saw for the first time, a tall, lank, raw-boned, serious
- North-Sea fisherman turned brown; and there was a third in their company
- whose name I never heard, and who played to Tamaiti the part of
- _famulus_. Tamaiti took me in hand first, and led me, conversing
- agreeably, to the shores of Fu Bay. The _famulus_ climbed a tree for
- some green cocoa-nuts. Tamaiti himself disappeared a while in the bush
- and returned with coco tinder, dry leaves, and a spray of waxberry. I
- was placed on the stone, with my back to the tree and my face to
- windward; between me and the gravel-heap one of the green nuts was set;
- and then Tamaiti (having previously bared his feet, for he had come in
- canvas shoes, which tortured him) joined me within the magic circle,
- hollowed out the top of the gravel-heap, built his fire in the bottom,
- and applied a match: it was one of Bryant and May's. The flame was slow
- to catch, and the irreverent sorcerer filled in the time with talk of
- foreign places--of London, and "companies," and how much money they had;
- of San Francisco, and the nefarious fogs, "all the same smoke," which
- had been so nearly the occasion of his death. I tried vainly to lead him
- to the matter in hand. "Everybody make medicine," he said lightly. And
- when I asked him if he were himself a good practitioner--"No savvy," he
- replied, more lightly still. At length the leaves burst in a flame,
- which he continued to feed; a thick, light smoke blew in my face, and
- the flames streamed against and scorched my clothes. He in the meanwhile
- addressed, or affected to address, the evil spirit, his lips moving
- fast, but without sound; at the same time he waved in the air and twice
- struck me on the breast with his green spray. So soon as the leaves were
- consumed the ashes were buried, the green spray was imbedded in the
- gravel, and the ceremony was at an end.
- A reader of the "Arabian Nights" felt quite at home. Here was the
- suffumigation; here was the muttering wizard; here was the desert place
- to which Aladdin was decoyed by the false uncle. But they manage these
- things better in fiction. The effect was marred by the levity of the
- magician, entertaining his patient with small talk like an affable
- dentist, and by the incongruous presence of Mr. Osbourne with a camera.
- As for my cold, it was neither better nor worse.
- I was now handed over to Terutak', the leading practitioner or medical
- baronet of Apemama. His place is on the lagoon side of the island, hard
- by the palace. A rail of light wood, some two feet high, encloses an
- oblong piece of gravel like the king's Pray Place; in the midst is a
- green tree: below, a stone table bears a pair of boxes covered with a
- fine mat; and in front of these an offering of food, a cocoa-nut, a
- piece of taro or a fish, is placed daily. On two sides the enclosure is
- lined with maniap's; and one of our party, who had been there to sketch,
- had remarked a daily concourse of people and an extraordinary number of
- sick children; for this is in fact the infirmary of Apemama. The doctor
- and myself entered the sacred place alone; the boxes and the mat were
- displaced; and I was enthroned in their stead upon the stone, facing
- once more to the east. For a while the sorcerer remained unseen behind
- me, making passes in the air with a branch of palm. Then he struck
- lightly on the brim of my straw hat; and this blow he continued to
- repeat at intervals, sometimes brushing instead my arm and shoulder. I
- have had people try to mesmerise me a dozen times, and never with the
- least result. But at the first tap--on a quarter no more vital than my
- hat-brim, and from nothing more virtuous than a switch of palm wielded
- by a man I could not even see--sleep rushed upon me like an armed man.
- My sinews fainted, my eyes closed, my brain hummed, with drowsiness. I
- resisted--at first instinctively, then with a certain flurry of despair,
- in the end successfully; if that were indeed success which enabled me to
- scramble to my feet, to stumble home somnambulous, to cast myself at
- once upon my bed, and sink at once into a dreamless stupor. When I awoke
- my cold was gone. So I leave a matter that I do not understand.
- Meanwhile my appetite for curiosities (not usually very keen) had been
- strangely whetted by the sacred boxes. They were of pandanus wood,
- oblong in shape, with an effect of pillaring along the sides like straw
- work, lightly fringed with hair or fibre and standing on four legs. The
- outside was neat as a toy; the inside a mystery I was resolved to
- penetrate. But there was a lion in the path. I might not approach
- Terutak', since I had promised to buy nothing in the island; I dared not
- have recourse to the king, for I had already received from him more
- gifts than I knew how to repay. In this dilemma (the schooner being at
- last returned) we hit on a device. Captain Reid came forward in my
- stead, professed an unbridled passion for the boxes, and asked and
- obtained leave to bargain for them with the wizard. That same afternoon
- the captain and I made haste to the infirmary, entered the enclosure,
- raised the mat, and had begun to examine the boxes at our leisure, when
- Terutak's wife bounced out of one of the nigh houses, fell upon us,
- swept up the treasures, and was gone. There was never a more absolute
- surprise. She came, she took, she vanished, we had not a guess whither;
- and we remained, with foolish looks and laughter, on the empty field.
- Such was the fit prologue of our memorable bargaining.
- Presently Terutak' came, bringing Tamaiti along with him, both smiling;
- and we four squatted without the rail. In the three maniap's of the
- infirmary a certain audience was gathered: the family of a sick child
- under treatment, the king's sister playing cards, a pretty girl, who
- swore I was the image of her father; in all perhaps a score. Terutak's
- wife had returned (even as she had vanished) unseen, and now sat,
- breathless and watchful, by her husband's side. Perhaps some rumour of
- our quest had gone abroad, or perhaps we had given the alert by our
- unseemly freedom: certain, at least, that in the faces of all present
- expectation and alarm were mingled.
- Captain Reid announced, without preface or disguise, that I was come to
- purchase; Terutak', with sudden gravity, refused to sell. He was
- pressed; he persisted. It was explained we only wanted one: no matter,
- two were necessary for the healing of the sick. He was rallied, he was
- reasoned with: in vain. He sat there, serious and still, and refused.
- All this was only a preliminary skirmish; hitherto no sum of money had
- been mentioned; but now the captain brought his great guns to bear. He
- named a pound, then two, then three. Out of the maniap's one person
- after another came to join the group, some with mere excitement, others
- with consternation in their faces. The pretty girl crept to my side; it
- was then that--surely with the most artless flattery--she informed me of
- my likeness to her father. Tamaiti the infidel sat with hanging head and
- every mark of dejection. Terutak' streamed with sweat, his eye was
- glazed, his face wore a painful rictus, his chest heaved like that of
- one spent with running. The man must have been by nature covetous; and I
- doubt if ever I saw moral agony more tragically displayed. His wife by
- his side passionately encouraged his resistance.
- And now came the charge of the old guard. The captain, making a skip,
- named the surprising figure of five pounds. At the word the maniap's
- were emptied. The king's sister flung down her cards and came to the
- front to listen, a cloud on her brow. The pretty girl beat her breast
- and cried with wearisome iteration that if the box were hers I should
- have it. Terutak's wife was beside herself with pious fear, her face
- discomposed, her voice (which scarce ceased from warning and
- encouragement) shrill as a whistle. Even Terutak' lost that image-like
- immobility which he had hitherto maintained. He rocked on his mat, threw
- up his closed knees alternately, and struck himself on the breast after
- the manner of dancers. But he came gold out of the furnace; and with
- what voice was left him continued to reject the bribe.
- And now came a timely interjection. "Money will not heal the sick,"
- observed the king's sister sententiously; and as soon as I heard the
- remark translated my eyes were unsealed, and I began to blush for my
- employment. Here was a sick child, and I sought, in the view of its
- parents, to remove the medicine-box. Here was the priest of a religion,
- and I (a heathen millionaire) was corrupting him to sacrilege. Here was
- a greedy man, torn in twain betwixt greed and conscience; and I sat by
- and relished, and lustfully renewed his torments. _Ave, Cæsar_!
- Smothered in a corner, dormant but not dead, we have all the one touch
- of nature: an infant passion for the sand and blood of the arena. So I
- brought to an end my first and last experience of the joys of the
- millionaire, and departed amid silent awe. Nowhere else can I expect to
- stir the depths of human nature by an offer of five pounds; nowhere
- else, even at the expense of millions, could I hope to see the evil of
- riches stand so legibly exposed. Of all the bystanders, none but the
- king's sister retained any memory of the gravity and danger of the thing
- in hand. Their eyes glowed, the girl beat her breast, in senseless
- animal excitement. Nothing was offered them; they stood neither to gain
- nor to lose; at the mere name and wind of these great sums Satan
- possessed them.
- From this singular interview I went straight to the palace; found the
- king; confessed what I had been doing; begged him, in my name, to
- compliment Terutak' on his virtue, and to have a similar box made for me
- against the return of the schooner. Tembinok', Rubam, and one of the
- Daily Papers--him we used to call "the Facetiæ Column"--laboured for a
- while of some idea, which was at last intelligibly delivered. They
- feared I thought the box would cure me; whereas, without the wizard, it
- was useless; and when I was threatened with another cold I should do
- better to rely on pain-killer. I explained I merely wished to keep it in
- my "outch" as a thing made in Apemama; and these honest men were much
- relieved.
- Late the same evening, my wife, crossing the isle to windward, was aware
- of singing in the bush. Nothing is more common in that hour and place
- than the jubilant carol of the toddy-cutter swinging high overhead,
- beholding below him the narrow ribbon of the isle, the surrounding field
- of ocean, and the fires of the sunset. But this was of a graver
- character, and seemed to proceed from the ground-level. Advancing a
- little in the thicket, Mrs. Stevenson saw a clear space, a fine mat
- spread in the midst, and on the mat a wreath of white flowers and one of
- the devil-work boxes. A woman--whom we guess to have been Mrs.
- Terutak'--sat in front, now drooping over the box like a mother over a
- cradle, now lifting her face and directing her song to heaven. A passing
- toddy-cutter told my wife that she was praying. Probably she did not so
- much pray as deprecate; and perhaps even the ceremony was one of
- disenchantment. For the box was already doomed; it was to pass from its
- green medicine-tree, reverend precinct, and devout attendants; to be
- handled by the profane; to cross three seas; to come to land under the
- foolscap of St. Paul's; to be domesticated within hail of Lillie Bridge;
- there to be dusted by the British housemaid, and to take perhaps the
- roar of London for the voice of the outer sea along the reef. Before
- even we had finished dinner Chench had begun his journey, and one of the
- newspapers had already placed the box upon my table as the gift of
- Tembinok'.
- I made haste to the palace, thanked the king, but offered to restore the
- box, for I could not bear that the sick of the island should be made to
- suffer. I was amazed by his reply. Terutak', it appeared, had still
- three or four in reserve against an accident; and his reluctance, and
- the dread painted at first on every face, was not in the least
- occasioned by the prospect of medical destitution, but by the immediate
- divinity of Chench. How much more did I respect the king's command,
- which had been able to extort in a moment and for nothing a sacrilegious
- favour that I had in vain solicited with millions! But now I had a
- difficult task in front of me; it was not in my view that Terutak'
- should suffer by his virtue; and I must persuade the king to share my
- opinion, to let me enrich one of his subjects, and (what was yet more
- delicate) to pay for my present. Nothing shows the king in a more
- becoming light than the fact that I succeeded. He demurred at the
- principle; he exclaimed, when he heard it, at the sum. "Plenty money!"
- cried he, with contemptuous displeasure. But his resistance was never
- serious; and when he had blown off his ill-humour--"A' right," said he.
- "You give him. Mo' betta."
- Armed with this permission, I made straight for the infirmary. The night
- was now come, cool, dark, and starry. On a mat, hard by a clear fire of
- wood and coco-shell, Terutak' lay beside his wife. Both were smiling;
- the agony was over, the king's command had reconciled (I must suppose)
- their agitating scruples; and I was bidden to sit by them and share the
- circulating pipe. I was a little moved myself when I placed five gold
- sovereigns in the wizard's hand; but there was no sign of emotion in
- Terutak' as he returned them, pointed to the palace, and named
- Tembinok'. It was a changed scene when I had managed to explain.
- Terutak', long, dour Scots fisherman as he was, expressed his
- satisfaction within bounds; but the wife beamed; and there was an old
- gentleman present--her father, I suppose--who seemed nigh translated.
- His eyes stood out of his head; "_Kaupoi, Kaupoi_--rich, rich!" ran on
- his lips like a refrain; and he could not meet my eye but what he
- gurgled into foolish laughter.
- I might now go home, leaving that fire-lit family party gloating over
- their new millions, and consider my strange day. I had tried and
- rewarded the virtue of Terutak'. I had played the millionaire, had
- behaved abominably, and then in some degree repaired my thoughtlessness.
- And now I had my box, and could open it and look within. It contained a
- miniature sleeping-mat and a white shell. Tamaiti, interrogated next day
- as to the shell, explained it was not exactly Chench, but a cell, or
- body, which he would at times inhabit. Asked why there was a
- sleeping-mat, he retorted indignantly, "Why have you mats?" And this was
- the sceptical Tamaiti! But island scepticism is never deeper than the
- lips.
- CHAPTER VII
- THE KING OF APEMAMA
- Thus all things on the island, even the priests of the gods, obey the
- word of Tembinok'. He can give and take, and slay, and allay the
- scruples of the conscientious, and do all things (apparently) but
- interfere in the cookery of a turtle. "I got power" is his favourite
- word; it interlards his conversation; the thought haunts him and is ever
- fresh; and when he has asked and meditates of foreign countries, he
- looks up with a smile and reminds you, "_I got power_." Nor is his
- delight only in the possession, but in the exercise. He rejoices in the
- crooked and violent paths of kingship like a strong man to run a race,
- or like an artist in his art. To feel, to use his power, to embellish
- his island and the picture of the island life after a private ideal, to
- milk the island vigorously, to extend his singular museum--these employ
- delightfully the sum of his abilities. I never saw a man more patently
- in the right trade.
- It would be natural to suppose this monarchy inherited intact through
- generations. And so far from that, it is a thing of yesterday. I was
- already a boy at school while Apemama was yet republican, ruled by a
- noisy council of Old Men, and torn with incurable feuds. And Tembinok'
- is no Bourbon; rather the son of a Napoleon. Of course he is well-born.
- No man need aspire high in the isles of the Pacific unless his pedigree
- be long and in the upper regions mythical. And our king counts
- cousinship with most of the high families in the archipelago, and traces
- his descent to a shark and a heroic woman. Directed by an oracle, she
- swam beyond sight of land to meet her revolting paramour, and received
- at sea the seed of a predestined family. "I think lie," is the king's
- emphatic commentary; yet he is proud of the legend. From this
- illustrious beginning the fortunes of the race must have declined; and
- Teñkoruti, the grandfather of Tembinok', was the chief of a village at
- the north end of the island. Kuria and Aranuka were yet independent;
- Apemama itself the arena of devastating feuds. Through this perturbed
- period of history the figure of Teñkoruti stalks memorable. In war he
- was swift and bloody; several towns fell to his spear, and the
- inhabitants were butchered to a man. In civil life his arrogance was
- unheard of. When the council of Old Men was summoned, he went to the
- Speak House, delivered his mind, and left without waiting to be
- answered. Wisdom had spoken: let others opine according to their folly.
- He was feared and hated, and this was his pleasure. He was no poet; he
- cared not for arts or knowledge. "My gran'patha one thing savvy, savvy
- pight," observed the king. In some lull of their own disputes the Old
- Men of Apemama adventured on the conquest of Apemama; and this unlicked
- Caius Marcius was elected general of the united troops. Success attended
- him; the islands were reduced, and Teñkoruti returned to his own
- government, glorious and detested. He died about 1860, in the seventieth
- year of his age and the full odour of unpopularity. He was tall and
- lean, says his grandson, looked extremely old, and "walked all the same
- young man." The same observer gave me a significant detail. The
- survivors of that rough epoch were all defaced with spearmarks; there
- was none on the body of this skilful fighter. "I see old man, no got a
- spear," said the king.
- Teñkoruti left two sons, Tembaitake and Tembinatake. Tembaitake, our
- king's father, was short, middling stout, a poet, a good genealogist,
- and something of a fighter; it seems he took himself seriously, and was
- perhaps scarce conscious that he was in all things the creature and
- nursling of his brother. There was no shadow of dispute between the
- pair: the greater man filled with alacrity and content the second
- place: held the breach in war, and all the portfolios in the time of
- peace: and, when his brother rated him, listened in silence, looking on
- the ground. Like Teñkoruti, he was tall and lean and a swift walker--a
- rare trait in the islands. He possessed every accomplishment. He knew
- sorcery, he was the best genealogist of his day, he was a poet, he could
- dance and make canoes and armour; and the famous mast of Apemama, which
- ran one joint higher than the mainmast of a full-rigged ship, was of his
- conception and design. But these were avocations, and the man's trade
- was war. "When my uncle go make wa', he laugh," said Tembinok'. He
- forbade the use of field fortification, that protractor of native
- hostilities; his men must fight in the open, and win or be beaten out of
- hand; his own activity inspired his followers; and the swiftness of his
- blows beat down, in one lifetime, the resistance of three islands. He
- made his brother sovereign, he left his nephew absolute. "My uncle make
- all smooth," said Tembinok'. "I mo' king than my patha: I got power," he
- said, with formidable relish.
- Such is the portrait of the uncle drawn by the nephew. I can set beside
- it another by a different artist, who has often--I may say
- always--delighted me with his romantic taste in narrative, but not
- always--and I may say not often--persuaded me of his exactitude. I have
- already denied myself the use of so much excellent matter from the same
- source, that I begin to think it time to reward good resolution; and his
- account of Tembinatake agrees so well with the king's, that it may very
- well be (what I hope it is) the record of a fact, and not (what I
- suspect) the pleasing exercise of an imagination more than sailorly. A.,
- for so I had perhaps better call him, was walking up the island after
- dusk, when he came on a lighted village of some size, was directed to
- the chief's house, and asked leave to rest and smoke a pipe. "You will
- sit down, and smoke a pipe, and wash, and eat, and sleep," replied the
- chief, "and to-morrow you will go again." Food was brought, prayers
- were held (for this was in the brief day of Christianity), and the chief
- himself prayed with eloquence and seeming sincerity. All evening A. sat
- and admired the man by the firelight. He was six feet high, lean, with
- the appearance of many years, and an extraordinary air of breeding and
- command. "He looked like a man who would kill you laughing," said A., in
- singular echo of one of the king's expressions. And again: "I had been
- reading the Musketeer books, and he reminded me of Aramis." Such is the
- portrait of Tembinatake, drawn by an expert romancer.
- We had heard many tales of "my patha"; never a word of my uncle till two
- days before we left. As the time approached for our departure Tembinok'
- became greatly changed; a softer, a more melancholy, and, in particular,
- a more confidential man appeared in his stead. To my wife he contrived
- laboriously to explain that though he knew he must lose his father in
- the course of nature, he had not minded nor realised it till the moment
- came; and that now he was to lose us he repeated the experience. We
- showed fireworks one evening on the terrace. It was a heavy business;
- the sense of separation was in all our minds, and the talk languished.
- The king was specially affected, sat disconsolate on his mat, and often
- sighed. Of a sudden one of the wives stepped forth from a cluster, came
- and kissed him in silence, and silently went again. It was just such a
- caress as we might give to a disconsolate child, and the king received
- it with a child's simplicity. Presently after we said good-night and
- withdrew; but Tembinok' detained Mr. Osbourne, patting the mat by his
- side and saying: "Sit down. I feel bad, I like talk." Osbourne sat down
- by him. "You like some beer?" said he; and one of the wives produced a
- bottle. The king did not partake, but sat sighing and smoking a
- meerschaum pipe. "I very sorry you go," he said at last. "Miss Stlevens
- he good man, woman he good man, boy he good man; all good man. Woman he
- smart all the same man. My woman" (glancing towards his wives) "he good
- woman, no very smart. I think Miss Stlevens he big chiep all the same
- cap'n man-o'-wa'. I think Miss Stlevens he rich man all the same me. All
- go schoona. I very sorry. My patha he go, my uncle he go, my cutcheons
- he go, Miss Stlevens he go: all go. You no see king cry before. King all
- the same man: feel bad, he cry. I very sorry."
- In the morning it was the common topic in the village that the king had
- wept. To me he said: "Last night I no can 'peak: too much here," laying
- his hand upon his bosom. "Now you go away all the same my pamily. My
- brothers, my uncle go away. All the same." This was said with a
- dejection almost passionate. And it was the first time I had heard him
- name his uncle, or indeed employ the word. The same day he sent me a
- present of two corselets, made in the island fashion of plaited fibre,
- heavy and strong. One had been worn by Teñkoruti, one by Tembaitake; and
- the gift being gratefully received, he sent me, on the return of his
- messengers--a third--that of Tembinatake. My curiosity was roused; I
- begged for information as to the three wearers; and the king entered
- with gusto into the details already given. Here was a strange thing,
- that he should have talked so much of his family, and not once mentioned
- that relative of whom he was plainly the most proud. Nay, more: he had
- hitherto boasted of his father; thenceforth he had little to say of him;
- and the qualities for which he had praised him in the past were now
- attributed where they were due,--to the uncle. A confusion might be
- natural enough among islanders, who call all the sons of their
- grandfather by the common name of father. But this was not the case with
- Tembinok'. Now the ice was broken the word uncle was perpetually in his
- mouth; he who had been so ready to confound was now careful to
- distinguish; and the father sank gradually into a self-complacent
- ordinary man, while the uncle rose to his true stature as the hero and
- founder of the race.
- The more I heard and the more I considered, the more this mystery of
- Tembinok's behaviour puzzled and attracted me. And the explanation, when
- it came, was one to strike the imagination of a dramatist. Tembinok' had
- two brothers. One, detected in private trading, was banished, then
- forgiven, lives to this day in the island, and is the father of the
- heir-apparent, Paul. The other fell beyond forgiveness. I have heard it
- was a love-affair with one of the king's wives, and the thing is highly
- possible in that romantic archipelago. War was attempted to be levied;
- but Tembinok' was too swift for the rebels, and the guilty brother
- escaped in a canoe. He did not go alone. Tembinatake had a hand in the
- rebellion, and the man who had gained a kingdom for a weakling brother
- was banished by that brother's son. The fugitives came to shore in other
- islands, but Tembinok' remains to this day ignorant of their fate.
- So far history. And now a moment for conjecture. Tembinok' confused
- habitually, not only the attributes and merits of his father and his
- uncle, but their diverse personal appearance. Before he had even spoken,
- or thought to speak, of Tembinatake, he had told me often of a tall,
- lean father, skilled in war, and his own schoolmaster in genealogy and
- island arts. How if both were fathers, one natural, one adoptive? How if
- the heir of Tembaitake, like the heir of Tembinok' himself, were not a
- son, but an adopted nephew? How if the founder of the monarchy, while he
- worked for his brother, worked at the same time for the child of his
- loins? How if on the death of Tembaitake, the two stronger natures,
- father and son, king and kingmaker, clashed, and Tembinok', when he
- drove out his uncle, drove out the author of his days? Here is at least
- a tragedy four-square.
- The king took us on board in his own gig, dressed for the occasion in
- the naval uniform. He had little to say, he refused refreshments, shook
- us briefly by the hand, and went ashore again. That night the palm-tops
- of Apemama had dipped behind the sea, and the schooner sailed solitary
- under the stars.
- LETTERS FROM SAMOA
- LETTERS TO THE "TIMES," "PALL MALL GAZETTE," ETC.
- I
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Yacht "Casco," Hawaiian Islands, Feb. 10, 1889._
- Sir,--News from Polynesia is apt to come piecemeal, and thus fail of its
- effect, the first step being forgotten before the second comes to hand.
- For this reason I should like to be allowed to recapitulate a little of
- the past before I go on to illustrate the present extraordinary state of
- affairs in the Samoan Islands.
- It is quite true that this group was largely opened up by German
- enterprise, and that the port of Apia is much the creation of the
- Godeffroys. So far the German case extends; no farther. Apia was
- governed till lately by a tripartite municipality, the American,
- English, and German Consuls, and one other representative of each of the
- three nations making up the body. To both America and Germany a harbour
- had been ceded. England, I believe, had no harbour, but that her
- position was quite equal to that of her neighbours one fact eloquently
- displays. Malietoa--then King of Samoa, now a prisoner on the Marshall
- Islands--offered to accept the supremacy of England. Unhappily for
- himself, his offer was refused, Her Majesty's Government declaring, I am
- told, that they would prefer to see him independent. As he now wanders
- the territory of his island prison, under the guns of an Imperial
- war-ship, his independence (if it still exist) must be confined
- entirely to his bosom.
- Such was the former equal and pacific state of the three nations at
- Apia. It would be curious to tell at length by what steps of
- encroachment on the one side and weakness on the other the present reign
- of terror has been brought about; but my time before the mail departs is
- very short, your space is limited, and in such a history much must be
- only matter of conjecture. Briefly and roughly, then, there came a
- sudden change in the attitude of Germany. Another treaty was proposed to
- Malietoa and refused; the cause of the rebel Tamasese was invented or
- espoused; Malietoa was seized and deported, Tamasese installed, the
- tripartite municipality dissolved, the German Consul seated
- autocratically in its place, and the Hawaiian Embassy (sent by a Power
- of the same race to moderate among Samoans) dismissed with threats and
- insults. In the course of these events villages have been shelled, the
- German flag has been at least once substituted for the English, and the
- Stars and Stripes (only the other day) were burned at Matafatatele. On
- the day of the chase after Malietoa the houses of both English and
- Americans were violently entered by the Germans. Since the dissolution
- of the municipality English and Americans have paid their taxes into the
- hands of their own Consuls, where they accumulate, and the German
- representative, unrecognised and unsupported, rules single in Apia. I
- have had through my hands a file of Consular proclamations, the most
- singular reading--a state of war declared, all other authority but that
- of the German representative suspended, punishment (and the punishment
- of death in particular) liberally threatened. It is enough to make a man
- rub his eyes when he reads Colonel de Coetlogon's protest and the
- high-handed rejoinder posted alongside of it the next day by Dr. Knappe.
- Who is Dr. Knappe, thus to make peace and war, deal in life and death,
- and close with a buffet the mouth of English Consuls? By what process
- known to diplomacy has he risen from his one-sixth part of municipal
- authority to be the Bismarck of a Polynesian island? And what spell has
- been cast on the Cabinets of Washington and St. James's, that Mr.
- Blacklock should have been so long left unsupported, and that Colonel de
- Coetlogon must bow his head under a public buffet?
- I have not said much of the Samoans. I despair, in so short a space, to
- interest English readers in their wrongs; with the mass of people at
- home they will pass for some sort of cannibal islanders, with whom faith
- were superfluous, upon whom kindness might be partly thrown away. And,
- indeed, I recognise with gladness that (except as regards the captivity
- of Malietoa) the Samoans have had throughout the honours of the game.
- Tamasese, the German puppet, has had everywhere the under hand; almost
- none, except those of his own clan, have ever supported his cause, and
- even these begin now to desert him. "This is no Samoan war," said one of
- them, as he transferred his followers and services to the new
- Malietoa--Mataafa; "this is a German war." Mataafa, if he be cut off
- from Apia and the sea, lies inexpugnable in the foot-hills immediately
- behind with 5,000 warriors at his back. And beyond titles to a great
- deal of land, which they extorted in exchange for rifles and ammunition
- from the partisans of Tamasese, of all this bloodshed and bullying the
- Germans behold no profit. I have it by last advices that Dr. Knappe has
- approached the King privately with fair speeches, assuring him that the
- state of war, bombardments, and other evils of the day, are not at all
- directed at Samoans, but against the English and Americans; and that,
- when these are extruded, peace shall again smile on a German island. It
- can never be proved, but it is highly possible he may have said so; and,
- whether he said it or not, there is a sense in which the thing is true.
- Violence has not been found to succeed with the Samoans; with the two
- Anglo-Saxon Powers it has been found to work like a charm.
- I conclude with two instances, one American, one English:--
- _First_.--Mr. Klein, an American journalist, was on the beach with
- Malietoa's men on the night of the recent German defeat. Seeing the
- boats approach in the darkness, Mr. Klein hailed them and warned them of
- the Samoan ambush, and, by this innocent and humane step, made public
- the fact of his presence. Where much else is contested so much appears
- to be admitted (and, indeed, claimed) upon both sides. Mr. Klein is now
- accused of firing on the Germans and of advising the Samoans to fire,
- both of which he denies. He is accused, after the fight, of succouring
- only the wounded of Malietoa's party; he himself declares that he helped
- both; and, at any rate, the offence appears a novel one, and the
- accusation threatens to introduce fresh dangers into Red Cross work. He
- was on the beach that night in the exercise of his profession. If he was
- with Malietoa's men, which is the real gist of his offence, we who are
- not Germans may surely ask, Why not? On what ground is Malietoa a rebel?
- The Germans have not conquered Samoa that I ever heard of; they are
- there on treaty like their neighbours, and Dr. Knappe himself (in the
- eyes of justice) is no more than the one-sixth part of the town council
- of Apia. Lastly, Mr. Klein's innocence stands very clearly proven by the
- openness with which he declared his presence. For all that, this
- gentleman lay for a considerable time, watched day and night by German
- sailors, a prisoner in the American Consulate; even after he had
- succeeded in running the gauntlet of the German guards, and making his
- escape in a canoe to the American warship _Nipsic_, he was imperiously
- redemanded from under his own flag, and it is probable his extradition
- is being already called for at Washington.
- _Secondly_.--An English artist had gone into the bush sketching. I
- believe he had been to Malietoa's camp, so that his guilt stands on
- somewhat the same ground as Mr. Klein's. He was forcibly seized on board
- the British packet _Richmond_, carried half-dressed on board the
- _Adler_, and detained there, in spite of all protest, until an English
- war-ship had been cleared for action. This is of notoriety, and only one
- case (although a strong one) of many. Is it what the English people
- understand by the sovereignty of the seas?--I am, etc.,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- II
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Vailima, Upolu, Samoa, Oct. 12, 1891._
- Sir,--I beg leave to lay before your readers a copy of a correspondence,
- or (should that have reached you by another channel) to offer a few
- words of narrative and comment.
- On Saturday, September 5, Mr. Cedercrantz, the Chief Justice of Samoa,
- sailed on a visit to Fiji, leaving behind him certain prisoners in the
- gaol, and Baron Senfft von Pilsach, President of the Municipal Council,
- master of the field. The prisoners were five chiefs of Manono who had
- surrendered of their own accord, or at the desire of Mataafa, had been
- tried by a native magistrate, and received sentence of six months'
- confinement under "gentlemanly" (_sic_) conditions. As they were marched
- to prison, certain of their country-folk of Manono ran beside and
- offered an immediate rescue; but Lieutenant Ulfsparre ordered the men of
- the escort to load, and the disturbance blew by. How little weight was
- attached to this incident by the Chief Justice is sufficiently indicated
- by the fact of his departure. It was unhappily otherwise with those whom
- he left behind. Panic seems to have marked them for her own; they
- despaired at once of all lawful defence; and, on Sunday, the day after
- the Chief Justice's departure, Apia was in consequence startled with
- strange news. Dynamite bought from the wrecker ship, an electrical
- machine and a mechanic hired, the prison mined, and a letter despatched
- to the people of Manono advising them of the fact, and announcing that
- if any rescue were attempted prison and prisoners should be blown
- up--such were the voices of rumour; and the design appearing equally
- feeble, reckless, and wicked, considerable agitation was aroused.
- Perhaps it had some effect. Our Government at least, which had rushed so
- hastily to one extreme, now dashed with the same speed into another.
- Sunday was the day of dynamite, Tuesday dawned the day of deportation. A
- cutter was hurriedly prepared for sea, and the prisoners, whom the Chief
- Justice had left three days before under a sentence of "gentlemanly"
- detention, found themselves under way to exile in the Tokelaus.
- A Government of this agility escapes criticism: by multiplying surprises
- it obliterates the very memory of past mistakes. Some, perhaps, forgot
- the dynamite; some, hearing no more of it, set it down to be a trick of
- rumour such as we are well used to in the islands. But others were not
- so sure. Others considered that the rumour (even if unfounded) was of an
- ill example, might bear deplorable fruit, and, from all points of view
- of morality and policy, required a public contradiction. Eleven of these
- last entered accordingly into the annexed correspondence with the
- President. It will be seen in the crevice of what quibble that gentleman
- sought refuge and sits inexpugnable. In a question affecting his
- humanity, his honour, and the wellbeing of the kingdom which he serves,
- he has preferred to maintain what I can only call a voluble silence. The
- public must judge of the result; but there is one point to which I may
- be allowed to draw attention--that passage in the fourth of the appended
- documents in which he confesses that he was already acquainted with the
- rumours in question, and that he has been present (and apparently not
- protesting) when the scandal was discussed and the proposed enormity
- commended.
- The correspondence was still passing when the President surprised Apia
- with a fresh gambado. He has been a long while in trouble as to his
- disposition of the funds. His intention to build a house for himself--to
- all appearance with native money--his sending the taxes out of the
- islands and locking them up in deposits, and his noisy squabbles with
- the King and native Parliament as to the currency, had all aroused
- unfavourable comment. On Saturday, the 3rd of October, a correspondence
- on the last point appeared in the local paper. By this it appeared that
- our not too resolute King and Parliament had at last and in one
- particular defied his advice and maintained their own opinion. If
- vengeance were to be the order of the day, it might have been expected
- to fall on the King and Parliament; but this would have been too direct
- a course, and the blow was turned instead against an innocent municipal
- council. On the 7th the President appeared before that body, informed
- them that his authority was lessened by the publication, that he had
- applied to the King for a month's leave of (theatrical) absence, and
- must now refuse to fulfil his duties. With this he retired to his own
- house, which is under the same roof, leaving the councillors and the
- municipality to do what they pleased and drift where they could without
- him. It is reported he has since declared his life to be in danger, and
- even applied to his Consul for protection. This seems to pass the bounds
- of credibility; but the movements of Baron Senfft von Pilsach have been
- throughout so agitated and so unexpected that we know not what to look
- for; and the signatories of the annexed addresses, if they were accused
- to-morrow of a design on the man's days, would scarce have spirit left
- to be surprised.
- It must be clearly pointed out that this is no quarrel of German and
- anti-German. The German officials, consular and naval, have behaved with
- perfect loyalty. A German wrote the letter to the paper which unchained
- this thunderbolt; and it was a German who took the chair which the
- President had just vacated at the table of the municipal board. And
- though the Baron is himself of German race, his conduct presents no
- appearance of design, how much less of conspiracy! Doubtless certain
- journals will so attempt to twist it; but to the candid it will seem no
- more than the distracted evolutions of a weak man in a series of panics.
- Such is a rough outline of the events to which I would fain direct the
- attention of the public at home, in the States, and still more in
- Germany. It has for me but one essential point. Budgets have been called
- in question, and officials publicly taken the pet before now. But the
- dynamite scandal is unique.
- If it be unfounded, our complaint is already grave. It was the
- President's duty, as a man and as a responsible official, to have given
- it instant and direct denial: and since he neither did so of his own
- motion, nor consented to do so on our repeated instances, he has shown
- that he neither understands nor yet is willing to be taught the
- condition of this country. From what I have been able to collect,
- Samoans are indignant because the thing was decided between the King and
- President without consultation with the native Parliament. The thing
- itself, it does not enter in their thoughts to call in question; they
- receive gratefully a fresh lesson in civilised methods and civilised
- justice; a day may come when they shall put that lesson in practice for
- themselves; and if they are then decried for their barbarity--as they
- will surely be--and punished for it, as is highly probable, I will ask
- candid people what they are to think? "How?" they will say. "Your own
- white people intended to do this, and you said nothing. We do it, and
- you call us treacherous savages!"
- This is to suppose the story false. Suppose it true, however; still
- more, suppose the plan had been carried out. Suppose these chiefs to
- have surrendered to the white man's justice, administered or not by a
- brown Judge; suppose them tried, condemned, confined in that snare of a
- gaol, and some fine night their mangled limbs cast in the faces of their
- countrymen: I leave others to predict the consequences of such an
- object-lesson in the arts of peace and the administration of the law.
- The Samoans are a mild race, but their patience is in some points
- limited. Under Captain Brandeis a single skirmish and the death of a few
- youths sufficed to kindle an enduring war and bring on the ruin of the
- Government. The residents have no desire for war, and they deprecate
- altogether a war embittered from the beginning by atrocities. Nor can
- they think the stakes at all equal between themselves and Baron Senfft.
- He has nothing to lose but a situation; he is here in what he stands in;
- he can swarm to-morrow on board a war-ship and be off. But the residents
- have some of them sunk capital on these shores; some of them are
- involved in extended affairs; they are tied to the stake, and they
- protest against being plunged into war by the violence, and having that
- war rendered more implacable by the preliminary cruelties, of a white
- official.
- I leave entirely upon one side all questions of morality; but there is
- still one point of expediency on which I must touch. The old native
- Government (which was at least cheap) failed to enforce the law, and
- fell, in consequence, into the manifold troubles which have made the
- name of Samoa famous. The enforcement of the law--that was what was
- required, that was the salvation looked for. And here we have a
- Government at a high figure, and it cannot defend its own gaol, and can
- find no better remedy than to assassinate its prisoners. What we have
- bought at this enormous increase of expenditure is the change from King
- Log to King Stork--from the man who failed to punish petty theft to the
- man who plots the destruction of his own gaol and the death of his own
- prisoners.
- On the return of the Chief Justice, the matter will be brought to his
- attention; but the cure of our troubles must come from home; it is from
- the Great Powers that we look for deliverance. They sent us the
- President. Let them either remove the man, or see that he is stringently
- instructed--instructed to respect public decency, so we be no longer
- menaced with doings worthy of a revolutionary committee; and instructed
- to respect the administration of the law, so if I be fined a dollar
- to-morrow for fast riding in Apia street, I may not awake next morning
- to find my sentence increased to one of banishment or death by
- dynamite.--I am, Sir, your obedient servant,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- _P.S._--_October 14_.--I little expected fresh developments before the
- mail left. But the unresting President still mars the quiet of his
- neighbours. Even while I was writing the above lines, Apia was looking
- on in mere amazement on the continuation of his gambols. A white man had
- written to the King, and the King had answered the letter--crimes
- against Baron Senfft von Pilsach and (his private reading of) the Berlin
- Treaty. He offered to resign--I was about to say "accordingly," for the
- unexpected is here the normal--from the presidency of the municipal
- board, and to retain his position as the King's adviser. He was
- instructed that he must resign both, or neither; resigned both; fell out
- with the Consuls on details; and is now, as we are advised, seeking to
- resile from his resignations. Such an official I never remember to have
- read of, though I have seen the like, from across the footlights and the
- orchestra, evolving in similar figures to the strains of Offenbach.
- R.L.S.
- COPIES OF A CORRESPONDENCE BETWEEN CERTAIN RESIDENTS OF APIA AND BARON
- SENFFT VON PILSACH.
- I
- _September 28, 1891_.
- BARON SENFFT VON PILSACH.
- Sir,--We are requested to lay the enclosed appeal before you, and to
- express the desire of the signatories to meet your views as to the
- manner of the answer.
- Should you prefer to reply by word of mouth, a deputation will be ready
- to wait upon you on Thursday, at any hour you may please to appoint.
- Should you prefer to reply in writing, we are asked only to impress upon
- you the extreme desire of the signatories that no time should be
- unnecessarily lost.
- Should you condescend in either of the ways suggested to set at rest our
- anxiety, we need scarce assure you that the step will be received with
- gratitude.--We have the honour to be, Sir, your obedient servants,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- E. W. GURR.
- II
- (_Enclosed in No. I_.)
- The attention of the President of the Municipal Council is respectfully
- directed to the following rumours:--
- 1. That at his suggestion, or with his authority, dynamite was
- purchased, or efforts were made to procure dynamite, and the use of an
- electrical machine was secured, or attempted to be obtained.
- 2. That this was for the purpose of undermining, or pretending to
- undermine, the gaol in which the Manono prisoners were confined.
- 3. That notification of this design was sent to the friends of the
- prisoners.
- 4. That a threat of blowing up the gaol and the prisoners, in the event
- of an attempted rescue, was made.
- Upon all and upon each of these points severally the white residents
- anxiously expect and respectfully beg information.
- It is suggested for the President's consideration that rumours
- unconnected or unexplained acquire almost the force of admitted truth.
- That any want of confidence between the governed and the Government must
- be fruitful in loss to both.
- That the rumours in their present form tend to damage the white races in
- the native mind, and to influence for the worse the manners of the
- Samoans.
- And that the President alone is in a position to deny, to explain, or to
- correct these rumours.
- Upon these grounds the undersigned ask to be excused for any informality
- in their address, and they hope and humbly pray that the President will
- accept the occasion here presented, and take early and effectual means
- to inform and reassure the whites, and to relieve them from possible
- misjudgment on the part of the Samoans.
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- E.W. GURR.
- [_and nine other signatures_.]
- III
- _Apia, Sept. 30, 1891._
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON, ESQ., E.W. GURR, ESQ.
- Dear Sirs,--Thanking you for your kind letter dated 28th inst., which I
- received yesterday, together with the address in question, I beg to
- inform you that I am going to answer the address in writing as soon as
- possible.--I have the honour to be, dear Sirs, your obedient servant,
- SENFFT.
- IV
- _Apia, Oct. 2, 1891._
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON, ESQ., E. W. GURR, Esq.
- Gentlemen,--I have the honour to acknowledge the receipt of an address
- without date which has been signed by you and some other foreign
- residents and handed to me on the 29th of September.
- In this address my attention is directed to some rumours, specified
- therein, concerning which I am informed that "upon all and upon each of
- these points severally the white residents anxiously expect and
- respectfully beg information."
- Generally, I beg to state that, with a view of successfully performing
- my official duties, I believe it is advisable for me to pay no attention
- to any anonymous rumour.
- Further, I cannot forbear expressing my astonishment that in speaking to
- me so seriously in the name of "the white residents" the subscribers of
- the address have deemed it unnecessary to acquaint me with their
- authorisation for doing so. This omission is by no means a mere
- informality. There are white residents who in my presence have commented
- upon the rumours in question in a manner directly opposed to the meaning
- of the address.
- This fact alone will justify me in objecting to the truth of the
- above-quoted statement so prominently set forth and so positively
- affirmed in the address. It will also justify me in abstaining from a
- reply to the further assertions of gentlemen who, in apostrophising me,
- care so little for the correctness of the facts they deal with.
- If, in consequence, according to the apprehensions laid down in the
- address, those unexplained rumours will "damage the white races in the
- native mind," I think the signing parties will then remember that there
- are public authorities in Samoa officially and especially charged with
- the protection of "the white residents." If they present to them their
- complaints and their wishes I have no doubt by so doing they will get
- all information they may require.
- I ask you, gentlemen, to communicate this answer to the parties having
- signed the address in question.--I have the honour to be, Gentlemen,
- your obedient servant,
- FRHR. SENFFT VON PILSACH.
- V
- _Oct. 9, 1891_.
- The signatories of the address are in receipt of the President's favour
- under date October 2. Much of his answer is occupied in dealing with a
- point foreign to the matter in hand, and in itself surprising to the
- signatories. Their address was an appeal for information on specific
- points and an appeal from specific persons, who correctly described
- themselves as "white residents," "the undersigned," and in the
- accompanying letter as the "signatories." They were so far from seeking
- to collect evidence in private that they applied frankly and directly to
- the person accused for explanation; and so far from seeking to multiply
- signatures or promote scandal that they kept the paper strictly to
- themselves. They see with regret that the President has failed to
- appreciate this delicacy. They see with sorrow and surprise that, in
- answer to a communication which they believe to have been temperately
- and courteously worded, the President has thought fit to make an
- imputation on their honesty. The trick of which he would seem to accuse
- them would have been useless, and even silly, if attempted; and on a
- candid re-examination of the address and the accompanying letter, the
- President will doubtless see fit to recall the imputation.
- By way of answer to the questions asked the signatories can find nothing
- but what seems to be a recommendation to them to apply to their Consuls
- for "protection." It was not protection they asked, but information. It
- was not a sense of fear that moved them, but a sense of shame. It is
- their misfortune that they cannot address the President in his own
- language, or they would not now require to explain that the words "tend
- to damage the white races in the native mind," quoted and misapplied by
- the President, do not express any fear of suffering by the hands of the
- Samoans, but in their good opinion, and were not the expression of any
- concern for the duration of peace, but of a sense of shame under what
- they conceived to be disgraceful imputations. While agreeing generally
- with the President's expressed sentiment as to "anonymous rumours," they
- feel that a line has to be drawn. Certain rumours they would not suffer
- to remain uncontradicted for an hour. It was natural, therefore, that
- when they heard a man of their own white race accused of conspiring to
- blow up the gaol and the prisoners who were there under the safeguard of
- his honour, they should attribute to the accused a similar impatience to
- be justified; and it is with a sense of painful surprise that they find
- themselves to have been mistaken.
- (_Signatures as to Number II_.)
- VI
- _Apia, October 9, 1891_.
- Gentlemen,--Being in receipt of your communication under to-day's date,
- I have the honour to inform you that I have undertaken the
- re-examination of your first address, which you believe would induce me
- to recall the answer I have given on the 2nd inst.
- From this re-examination I have learned again that your appeal begins
- with the following statement:--
- "Upon all and upon each of these points severally the white residents
- anxiously expect and respectfully beg information."
- I have called this statement a seriously speaking to me in the name of
- the white residents, and I have objected to the truth of that statement.
- If after a "candid re-examination" of the matter from your part you may
- refute me in either or both points, I shall be glad, indeed, in
- recalling my answer.
- At present I beg to say that I see no reason for your supposing I
- misunderstood your expression of damaging the white races in the native
- mind, unless you have no other notion of protection than that applying
- to the body.
- Concerning the assertion contained in the last clause of your second
- address, that five Samoan prisoners having been sentenced by a Samoan
- Judge for destroying houses were in the gaol of the Samoan Government
- "under the safeguard of my honour," I ask for your permission to
- recommend this statement also and especially to your re-examination.--I
- have the honour to be, Gentlemen, your obedient servant,
- FRHR. SENFFT VON PILSACH.
- III
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Samoa, April 9, 1892._
- Sir,--A sketch of our latest difficulty in Samoa will be interesting, at
- least to lawyers.
- In the Berlin General Act there is one point on which, from the earliest
- moment, volunteer interpreters have been divided. The revenue arising
- from the customs was held by one party to belong to the Samoan
- Government, by another to the municipality; and the dispute was at last
- decided in favour of the municipality by Mr. Cedercrantz, Chief Justice.
- The decision was not given in writing; but it was reported by at least
- one of the Consuls to his Government, it was of public notoriety, it is
- not denied, and it was at once implicitly acted on by the parties.
- Before that decision, the revenue from customs was suffered to
- accumulate; ever since, to the knowledge of the Chief Justice, and with
- the daily countenance of the President, it has been received,
- administered, and spent by the municipality. It is the function of the
- Chief Justice to interpret the Berlin Act; its sense was thus supposed
- to be established beyond cavil; those who were dissatisfied with the
- result conceived their only recourse lay in a prayer to the Powers to
- have the treaty altered; and such a prayer was, but the other day,
- proposed, supported, and finally negatived, in a public meeting.
- About a year has gone by since the decision, and the state of the Samoan
- Government has been daily growing more precarious. Taxes have not been
- paid, and the Government has not ventured to enforce them. Fresh taxes
- have fallen due, and the Government has not ventured to call for them.
- Salaries were running on, and that of the Chief Justice alone amounts to
- a considerable figure for these islands; the coffers had fallen low, at
- last it is believed they were quite empty, no resource seemed left, and
- bystanders waited with a smiling curiosity for the wheels to stop. I
- should add, to explain the epithet "smiling," that the Government has
- proved a still-born child; and except for some spasmodic movements which
- I have already made the subject of remark in your columns, it may be
- said to have done nothing but pay salaries.
- In this state of matters, on March 28, the President of the Council,
- Baron Senfft von Pilsach, was suddenly and privately supplied by Mr.
- Cedercrantz with a written judgment, reversing the verbal and public
- decision of a year before. By what powers of law was this result
- attained? And how was the point brought again before his Honour? I feel
- I shall here strain the credulity of your readers, but our authority is
- the President in person. The suit was brought by himself in his capacity
- (perhaps an imaginary one) of King's adviser; it was defended by himself
- in his capacity of President of the Council, no notice had been given,
- the parties were not summoned, they were advised neither of the trial
- nor the judgment; so far as can be learned two persons only met and
- parted--the first was the plaintiff and defendant rolled in one, the
- other was a Judge who had decided black a year ago, and had now
- intimated a modest willingness to decide white.
- But it is possible to follow more closely these original proceedings.
- Baron von Pilsach sat down (he told us) in his capacity of adviser to
- the King, and wrote to himself, in his capacity of President of the
- Council, an eloquent letter of reprimand three pages long; an unknown
- English artist clothed it for him in good language; and nothing remained
- but to have it signed by King Malietoa, to whom it was attributed. "So
- long as he knows how to sign!"--a white official is said thus to have
- summed up, with a shrug, the qualifications necessary in a Samoan king.
- It was signed accordingly, though whether the King knew what he was
- signing is matter of debate; and thus regularised, it was forwarded to
- the Chief Justice enclosed in a letter of adhesion from the President.
- Such as they were, these letters appear to have been the pleadings on
- which the Chief Justice proceeded; such as they were, they seem to have
- been the documents in this unusual case.
- Suppose an unfortunate error to have been made, suppose a reversal of
- the Court's finding and the year's policy to have become immediately
- needful, wisdom would indicate an extreme frankness of demeanour. And
- our two officials preferred a policy of irritating dissimulation. While
- the revolution was being prepared behind the curtain, the President was
- holding night sessions of the municipal council. What was the business?
- No other than to prepare an ordinance regulating those very customs
- which he was secretly conspiring to withdraw from their control. And it
- was a piece of duplicity of a similar nature which first awoke the
- echoes of Apia by its miscarriage. The council had sent up for the
- approval of the Consular Board a project of several bridges, one of
- which, that of the Vaisingano, was of chief importance to the town. To
- sanction so much fresh expense, at the very moment when, to his secret
- knowledge, the municipality was to be left bare of funds, appeared to
- one of the Consuls an unworthy act; and the proposal was accordingly
- disallowed. The people of Apia are extremely swift to guess. No sooner
- was the Vaisingano bridge denied them than they leaped within a
- measurable distance of the truth. It was remembered that the Chief
- Justice had but recently (this time by a decision regularly obtained)
- placed the municipal funds at the President's mercy; talk ran high of
- collusion between the two officials; it was rumoured the safe had been
- already secretly drawn upon; the newspaper being at this juncture
- suddenly and rather mysteriously sold, it was rumoured it had been
- bought for the officials with municipal money, and the Apians crowded in
- consequence to the municipal meeting on April 1, with minds already
- heated.
- The President came on his side armed with the secret judgment; and the
- hour being now come, he unveiled his work of art to the municipal
- councillors. On the strength of the Chief Justice's decision, to his
- knowledge, and with the daily countenance of the President, they had for
- twelve months received and expended the revenue from customs. They
- learned now that this was wrong; they learned not only that they were to
- receive no more, but that they must refund what they had already spent;
- and the total sum amounting to about $25,000, and there being less than
- $20,000 in the treasury, they learned that they were bankrupt. And with
- the next breath the President reassured them; time was to be given to
- these miserable debtors, and the King in his clemency would even advance
- them from their own safe--now theirs no longer--a loan of $3,000 against
- current expenses. If the municipal council of Apia be far from an ideal
- body, at least it makes roads and builds bridges, at least it does
- something to justify its existence and reconcile the ratepayer to the
- rates. This was to cease: all the funds husbanded for this end were to
- be transferred to the Government at Mulinuu, which has never done
- anything to mention but pay salaries, and of which men have long ceased
- to expect anything else but that it shall continue to pay salaries till
- it die of inanition. Let us suppose this raid on the municipal treasury
- to have been just and needful. It is plain, even if introduced in the
- most conciliatory manner, it could never have been welcome. And, as it
- was, the sting was in the manner--in the secrecy and the surprise, in
- the dissimulation, the dissonant decisions, the appearance of collusion
- between the officials, and the offer of a loan too small to help. Bitter
- words were spoken at the council-table; the public joined with shouts;
- it was openly proposed to overpower the President and seize the treasury
- key. Baron von Pilsach possesses the redeeming rudimentary virtue of
- courage. It required courage to come at all on such an errand to those
- he had deceived; and amidst violent voices and menacing hands he
- displayed a constancy worthy of a better cause. The council broke
- tumultuously up; the inhabitants crowded to a public meeting; the
- Consuls, acquainted with the alarming effervescency of feeling,
- communicated their willingness to meet the municipal councillors and
- arrange a compromise; and the inhabitants renewed by acclamation the
- mandate of their representatives. The same night these sat in council
- with the Consular Board, and a _modus vivendi_ was agreed upon, which
- was rejected the next morning by the President.
- The representations of the Consuls had, however, their effect; and when
- the council met again on April 6, Baron von Pilsach was found to have
- entirely modified his attitude. The bridge over the Vaisingano was
- conceded, the sum of $3,000 offered to the council was increased to
- $9,000, about one-half of the existing funds; the Samoan Government,
- which was to profit by the customs, now agreed to bear the expenses of
- collection; the President, while refusing to be limited to a specific
- figure, promised an anxious parsimony in the Government expenditure,
- admitted his recent conduct had been of a nature to irritate the
- councillors, and frankly proposed it should be brought under the notice
- of the Powers. I should not be a fair reporter if I did not praise his
- bearing. In the midst of men whom he had grossly deceived, and who had
- recently insulted him in return, he behaved himself with tact and
- temper. And largely in consequence his _modus vivendi_ was accepted
- under protest, and the matter in dispute referred without discussion to
- the Powers.
- I would like to refer for one moment to my former letter. The Manono
- prisoners were solemnly sentenced to six months' imprisonment; and, by
- some unexplained and secret process, the sentence was increased to one
- of banishment. The fact seems to have rather amused the Governments at
- home. It did not at all amuse us here on the spot. But we sought
- consolation by remembering that the President was a layman, and the
- Chief Justice had left the islands but the day before. Let Mr.
- Cedercrantz return, we thought, and Arthur would be come again. Well,
- Arthur is come. And now we begin to think he was perhaps an approving,
- if an absent, party to the scandal. For do we not find, in the case of
- the municipal treasury, the same disquieting features? A decision is
- publicly delivered, it is acted on for a year, and by some secret and
- inexplicable process we find it suddenly reversed. We are supposed to be
- governed by English law. Is this English law? Is it a law at all? Does
- it permit a state of society in which a citizen can live and act with
- confidence? And when we are asked by natives to explain these
- peculiarities of white man's government and white man's justice, in what
- form of words are we to answer?
- _April_ 12.
- Fresh news reaches me; I have once again to admire the accuracy of
- rumour in Apia, and that which I had passed over with a reference
- becomes the head and front of our contention. The _Samoa Times_ was
- nominally purchased by a gentleman who, whatever be his other
- recommendations, was notoriously ill off. There was paid down for it
- £600 in gold, a huge sum of ready money for Apia, above all in gold, and
- all men wondered where it came from. It is this which has been
- discovered. The wrapper of each rouleau was found to be signed by Mr.
- Martin, collector for the municipality as well as for the Samoan
- Government, and countersigned by Mr. Savile, his assistant. In other
- words, the money had left either the municipal or the Government safe.
- The position of the President is thus extremely exposed. His accounts up
- to January 1 are in the hands of auditors. The next term of March 31 is
- already past, and although the natural course has been repeatedly
- suggested to him, he has never yet permitted the verification of the
- balance in his safe. The case would appear less strong against the Chief
- Justice. Yet a month has not elapsed since he placed the funds at the
- disposal of the President, on the avowed ground that the population of
- Apia was unfit to be intrusted with its own affairs. And the very week
- of the purchase he reversed his own previous decision and liberated his
- colleague from the last remaining vestige of control. Beyond the extent
- of these judgments, I doubt if this astute personage will be found to
- have committed himself in black and white; and the more foolhardy
- President may thus be left in the top of the breach alone.
- Let it be explained or apportioned as it may, this additional scandal is
- felt to have overfilled the measure. It may be argued that the President
- has great tact and the Chief Justice a fund of philosophy. Give us
- instead a judge who shall proceed according to the forms of justice, and
- a treasurer who shall permit the verification of his balances. Surely
- there can be found among the millions of Europe two frank and honest
- men, one of whom shall be acquainted with English law, and the other
- possess the ordinary virtues of a clerk, over whose heads, in the
- exercise of their duties, six months may occasionally pass without
- painful disclosures and dangerous scandals; who shall not weary us with
- their surprises and intrigues; who shall not amaze us with their lack of
- penetration; who shall not, in the hour of their destitution, seem to
- have diverted £600 of public money for the purchase of an
- inconsiderable sheet, or at a time when eight provinces of discontented
- natives threaten at any moment to sweep their ineffective Government
- into the sea to have sought safety and strength in gagging the local
- Press of Apia. If it be otherwise--if we cannot be relieved, if the
- Powers are satisfied with the conduct of Mr. Cedercrantz and Baron
- Senfft von Pilsach; if these were sent here with the understanding that
- they should secretly purchase, perhaps privately edit, a little sheet of
- two pages, issued from a crazy wooden building at the mission gate; if
- it were, indeed, intended that, for this important end, they should
- divert (as it seems they have done) public funds and affront all the
- forms of law--we whites can only bow the head. We are here quite
- helpless. If we would complain of Baron Pilsach, it can only be to Mr.
- Cedercrantz; if we would complain of Mr. Cedercrantz, and the Powers
- will not hear us, the circle is complete. A nightly guard surrounds and
- protects their place of residence, while the house of the King is
- cynically left without the pickets. Secure from interference, one utters
- the voice of the law, the other moves the hands of authority; and now
- they seem to have sequestered in the course of a single week the only
- available funds and the only existing paper in the islands.
- But there is one thing they forget. It is not the whites who menace the
- duration of their Government, and it is only the whites who read the
- newspaper. Mataafa sits hard by in his armed camp and sees. He sees the
- weakness, he counts the scandals of their Government. He sees his rival
- and "brother" sitting disconsidered at their doors, like Lazarus before
- the house of Dives, and, if he is not very fond of his "brother," he is
- very scrupulous of native dignities. He has seen his friends menaced
- with midnight destruction in the Government gaol, and deported without
- form of law. He is not himself a talker, and his thoughts are hid from
- us; but what is said by his more hasty partisans we know. On March 29,
- the day after the Chief Justice signed the secret judgment, three days
- before it was made public, and while the purchase of the newspaper was
- yet in treaty, a native orator stood up in an assembly. "Who asked the
- Great Powers to make laws for us; to bring strangers here to rule us?"
- he cried. "We want no white officials to bind us in the bondage of
- taxation." Here is the changed spirit which these gentlemen have
- produced by a misgovernment of fifteen months. Here is their peril,
- which no purchase of newspapers and no subsequent editorial suppressions
- can avert.
- It may be asked if it be still time to do anything. It is, indeed,
- already late; and these gentlemen, arriving in a golden moment, have
- fatally squandered opportunity and perhaps fatally damaged white
- prestige. Even the whites themselves they have not only embittered, but
- corrupted. We were pained the other day when our municipal councillors
- refused, by a majority, to make the production of invoices obligatory at
- the Custom-house. Yet who shall blame them, when the Chief Justice, with
- a smallness of rapacity at which all men wondered, refused to pay, and I
- believe, still withholds the duties on his imports? He was above the
- law, being the head of it; and this was how he preached by example. He
- refused to pay his customs; the white councillors, following in his
- wake, refuse to take measures to enforce them against others; and the
- natives, following in his wake, refuse to pay their taxes. These taxes
- it may, perhaps, be never possible to raise again directly. Taxes have
- never been popular in Samoa; yet in the golden moment when this
- Government began its course, a majority of the Samoans paid them. Every
- province should have seen some part of that money expended in its
- bounds; every nerve should have been strained to interest and gratify
- the natives in the manner of its expenditure. It has been spent instead
- on Mulinuu, to pay four white officials, two of whom came in the suite
- of the Chief Justice, and to build a so-called Government House, in
- which the President resides, and the very name of taxes is become
- abhorrent. What can still be done, and what must be done immediately, is
- to give us a new Chief Justice--a lawyer, a man of honour, a man who
- will not commit himself to one side, whether in politics or in private
- causes, and who shall not have the appearance of trying to coin money at
- every joint of our affairs. So much the better if he be a man of talent,
- but we do not ask so much. With an ordinary appreciation of law, an
- ordinary discretion and ordinary generosity, he may still, in the course
- of time, and with good fortune, restore confidence and repair the
- breaches in the prestige of the whites. As for the President there is
- much discussion. Some think the office is superfluous, still more the
- salary to be excessive; some regard the present man, who is young and
- personally pleasing, as a tool and scapegoat for another, and these are
- tempted to suppose that, with a new and firm Chief Justice, he might yet
- redeem his character. He would require at least to clear himself of the
- affair of the rouleaux, or all would be against him.--I am. Sir, your
- obedient servant,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- IV
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Samoa, June_ 22, 1892.
- Sir,--I read in a New Zealand paper that you published my last with
- misgiving. The writer then goes on to remind me that I am a novelist,
- and to bid me return to my romances and leave the affairs of Samoa to
- sub-editors in distant quarters of the world. "We, in common with other
- journals, have correspondents in Samoa," he complains, "and yet we have
- no news from them of the curious conspiracy which Mr. Stevenson appears
- to have unearthed, and which, if it had any real existence, would be
- known to everybody on the island." As this is the only voice which has
- yet reached me from beyond the seas, I am constrained to make some
- answer. But it must not be supposed that, though you may perhaps have
- been alone to publish, I have been alone to write. The same story is now
- in the hands of the three Governments from their respective Consuls. Not
- only so, but the complaint of the municipal council, drawn by two able
- solicitors, has been likewise laid before them.
- This at least is public, and I may say notorious. The solicitors were
- authorised to proceed with their task at a public meeting. The President
- (for I was there and heard him) approved the step, though he refrained
- from voting. But he seems to have entertained a hope of burking, or, at
- least, indefinitely postponing, the whole business, and, when the
- meeting was over, and its proceedings had been approved (as is
- necessary) by the Consular Board, he neglected to notify the two
- gentlemen appointed of that approval. In a large city the trick might
- have succeeded for a time; in a village like Apia, where all news leaks
- out and the King meets the cobbler daily, it did no more than to
- advertise his own artfulness. And the next he learned, the case for the
- municipal council had been prepared, approved by the Consuls, and
- despatched to the Great Powers. I am accustomed to have my word doubted
- in this matter, and must here look to have it doubted once again. But
- the fact is certain. The two solicitors (Messrs. Carruthers and Cooper)
- were actually cited to appear before the Chief Justice in the Supreme
- Court. I have seen the summons, and the summons was the first and last
- of this State trial. The proceeding, instituted in an hour of temper,
- was, in a moment of reaction, allowed to drop.
- About the same date a final blow befell the Government of Mulinuu. Let
- me remind you, sir, of the situation. The funds of the municipality had
- been suddenly seized, on what appeared a collusive judgment, by the
- bankrupt Government of Mulinuu. The paper, the organ of opposition, was
- bought by a man of straw; and it was found the purchase-money had been
- paid in rouleaux from the Government safes. The Government consisted of
- two men. One, the President and treasurer, had a ready means to clear
- himself and dispose for ever of the scandal--that means, apart from any
- scandal, was his mere, immediate duty,--viz., to have his balance
- verified. And he has refused to do so, and he still refuses. But the
- other, though he sits abstruse, must not think to escape his share of
- blame. He holds a high situation; he is our chief magistrate, he has
- heard this miserable tale of the rouleaux, at which the Consuls looked
- so black, and why has he done nothing? When he found that the case
- against himself and his colleague had gone to the three Powers a little
- of the suddenest, he could launch summonses (which it seems he was
- afterwards glad to disavow) against Messrs. Cooper and Carruthers. But
- then, when the whole island murmured--then, when a large sum which could
- be traced to the Government treasuries was found figuring in the hands
- of a man of straw--where were his thunderbolts then? For more than a
- month the scandal has hung black about his colleague; for more than a
- month he has sat inert and silent; for more than a month, in
- consequence, the last spark of trust in him has quite died out.
- In was in these circumstances that the Government of Mulinuu approached
- the municipal council with a proposal to levy fresh taxes from the
- whites. It was in these circumstances that the municipal council
- answered, No. Public works have ceased, the destination of public moneys
- is kept secret, and the municipal council resolved to stop supplies.
- At this, it seems, the Government awoke to a sense of their position.
- The natives had long ceased to pay them; now the whites had followed
- suit. Destitution had succeeded to embarrassment. And they made haste to
- join with themselves another who did not share in their unpopularity.
- This gentleman, Mr. Thomas Maben, Government surveyor, is himself
- deservedly popular, and the office created for him, that of Secretary
- of State, is one in which, under happier auspices, he might accomplish
- much. He is promised a free hand; he has succeeded to, and is to
- exercise entirely, those vague functions claimed by the President under
- his style of adviser to the King. It will be well if it is found to be
- so in the field of practice. It will be well if Mr. Maben find any funds
- left for his not exorbitant salary. It would doubtless have been better,
- in this day of their destitution and in the midst of growing Samoan
- murmurs against the high salaries of whites, if the Government could
- have fallen on some expedient which did not imply another. And there is
- a question one would fain have answered. The President claims to hold
- two offices--that of adviser to the King, that of President of the
- Municipal Council. A year ago, in the time of the dynamite affair, he
- proposed to resign the second and retain his whole emoluments as adviser
- to the King. He has now practically resigned the first; and we wish to
- know if he now proposes to retain his entire salary as President of the
- Council.--I am, etc.,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- V
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Apia, July_ 19, 1892.
- Sir,--I am at last in receipt of your article upon my letter. It was as
- I supposed; you had a difficulty in believing the events recorded; and,
- to my great satisfaction, you suggest an inquiry. You observe the marks
- of passion in my letter, or so it seems to you. But your summary shows
- me that I have not failed to communicate with a sufficient clearness the
- facts alleged. Passion may have seemed to burn in my words: it has not
- at least impaired my ability to record with precision a plain tale. The
- "cold language" of Consular reports (which you say you would prefer) is
- doubtless to be had upon inquiry in the proper quarter; I make bold to
- say it will be found to bear me out. Of the law case for the
- municipality I can speak with more assurance; for, since it was sent, I
- have been shown a copy. Its language is admirably cold, yet it tells (it
- is possible in a much better dialect) the same remarkable story. But all
- these corroborations sleep in official keeping; and, thanks to the
- generosity with which you have admitted me to your columns, I stand
- alone before the public. It is my prayer that this may cease as soon as
- possible. There is other evidence gone home; let that be produced. Or
- let us have (as you propose) an inquiry; give to the Chief Justice and
- the President an opportunity to clear their characters, and to myself
- that liberty (which I am so often requested to take) of returning to my
- private business.--I am, Sir, your obedient servant,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- VI
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Apia, September_ 14, 1892.
- Sir,--The Peninsula of Mulinuu was claimed by the German firm; and in
- case their claim should be found good, they had granted to the Samoan
- Government an option to buy at a certain figure. Hereon stand the houses
- of our officials, in particular that of the Chief Justice. It has long
- been a problem here whether this gentleman paid any rent, and the
- problem is now solved; the Chief Justice of Samoa was a squatter. On the
- ground that the Government was about to purchase the peninsula, he
- occupied a house; on the ground that the Germans were about to sell it,
- he refused to pay them any rent. The firm seemed to have no remedy but
- to summon the squatter before himself, and hear over again from the
- official what they had heard already from the disastrous tenant. But
- even in Samoa an ingenious man, inspired by annoyance, may find means of
- self-protection. The house was no part of the land, nor included in the
- option; the firm put it up for sale; and the Government, under pain of
- seeing the Chief Justice houseless, was obliged to buy it.
- In the meanwhile the German claim to Mulinuu was passed by the Land
- Commission and sent on to the Chief Justice on the 17th of May. He ended
- by confirming the report; but though his judgment bears date the 9th of
- August, it was not made public till the 15th. So far as we are aware,
- and certainly so far as Samoa has profited by his labours, his Honour
- may be said to have had nothing else to do but to attend to this one
- piece of business; he was being paid to do so at the rate of £100 a
- month; and it took him ninety days, or about as long as it took Napoleon
- to recapture and to lose again his empire. But better late than never;
- and the Germans, rejoicing in the decision, summoned the Government to
- complete the purchase or to waive their option. There was again a delay
- in answering, for the policy of all parts of this extraordinary
- Government is on one model; and when the answer came it was only to
- announce a fresh deception. The German claim had passed the Land
- Commission and the Supreme Court, it was good against objections, but it
- appeared it was not yet good for registration, and must still be
- resurveyed by a "Government surveyor." The option thus continues to
- brood over the land of Mulinuu, the Government to squat there without
- payment, and the German firm to stand helpless and dispossessed. What
- can they do? Their adversary is their only judge. I hear it calculated
- that the present state of matters may be yet spun out for months, at the
- end of which period there must come at last a day of reckoning; and the
- purchase-money will have to be found or the option to be waived and the
- Government to flit elsewhere. As for the question of arrears of rent, it
- will be in judicious hands, and his Honour may be trusted to deal with
- it in a manner suitable to the previous history of the case.
- But why (it will be asked) spin out by these excessive methods a thread
- of such tenuity? Why go to such lengths for four months longer of
- fallacious solvency? I expect not to be believed, but I think the
- Government still hopes. A war-ship, under a hot-headed captain, might be
- decoyed into hostilities; the taxes might begin to come in again; the
- three Powers might become otherwise engaged and the little stage of
- Samoa escape observation--indeed, I know not what they hope, but they
- hope something. There lives on in their breasts a remainder coal of
- ambition still unquenched. Or it is only so that I can explain a late
- astonishing sally of his Honour's. In a long and elaborate judgment he
- has pared the nails, and indeed removed the fingers, of his only rival,
- the municipal magistrate. For eighteen months he has seen the lower
- Court crowded with affairs, the while his own stood unfrequented like an
- obsolete churchyard. He may have remarked with envy many hundred cases
- passing through his rival's hands, cases of assault, cases of larceny,
- ranging in the last four months from 2s. up to £1 12s.; or he may have
- viewed with displeasure that despatch of business which was
- characteristic of the magistrate, Mr. Cooper. An end, at least, has been
- made of these abuses. Mr. Cooper is henceforth to draw his salary for
- the _minimum_ of public service; and all larcenies and assaults, however
- trivial, must go, according to the nationality of those concerned,
- before the Consular or the Supreme Courts.
- To this portentous judgment there are two sides--a practical and legal.
- And first as to the practical. For every blow struck or shilling stolen
- the parties must now march out to Mulinuu and place themselves at the
- mercy of a Court, which if Hamlet had known, he would have referred with
- more emotion to the law's delays. It is feared they will not do so, and
- that crime will go on in consequence unpunished, and increase by
- indulgence. But this is nothing. The Court of the municipal magistrate
- was a convenient common-ground and clearing-house for our manifold
- nationalities. It has now been, for all purpose of serious utility,
- abolished, and the result is distraction. There was a recent trumpery
- case, heard by Mr. Cooper amid shouts of mirth. It resolved itself (if I
- remember rightly) into three charges of assault with counter-charges,
- and three of abusive language with the same; and the parties represented
- only two nationalities--a small allowance for Apia. Yet in our new
- world, since the Chief Justice's decision, this vulgar shindy would have
- split up into six several suits before three different Courts; the
- charges must have been heard by one Judge, the counter-charges by
- another; the whole nauseous evidence six times repeated, and the lawyers
- six times fee'd.
- Remains the legal argument. His Honour admits the municipality to be
- invested "with such legislative powers as generally constitute a police
- jurisdiction"; he does not deny the municipality is empowered to take
- steps for the protection of the person, and it was argued this implied a
- jurisdiction in cases of assault. But this argument (observes his
- Honour) "proves too much, and consequently nothing. For like reasons the
- municipal council should have power to provide for the punishment of all
- felonies against the person, and I suppose the property as well." And,
- filled with a just sense that a merely police jurisdiction should be
- limited, he limits it with a vengeance by the exclusion of all assaults
- and all larcenies. A pity he had not looked into the Berlin Act! He
- would have found it already limited there by the same power which called
- it into being--limited to fines not exceeding $200 and imprisonment not
- extending beyond 180 days. Nay, and I think he might have even reasoned
- from this discovery that he was himself somewhat in error. For, assaults
- and larcenies being excluded, what kind of enormity is that which is to
- be visited with a fine of £40 or an imprisonment of half a year? It is
- perhaps childish to pursue further this childish controversialist. But
- there is one passage, if he had dipped into the Berlin Act, that well
- might have arrested his attention: that in which he is himself empowered
- to deal with "crimes and offences,... subject, however, to the
- provisions defining the jurisdiction of the municipal magistrate of
- Apia."
- I trust, sir, this is the last time I shall have to trouble you with
- these twopenny concerns. But until some step is taken by the three
- Powers, or until I have quite exhausted your indulgence, I shall
- continue to report our scandals as they arise. Once more, one thing or
- other: Either what I write is false, and I should be chastised as a
- calumniator; or else it is true, and these officials are unfit for their
- position.--I am, etc.,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- _P.S._--The mail is already closed when I receive at last decisive
- confirmation of the purchase of the _Samoa Times_ by the Samoan
- Government. It has never been denied; it is now admitted. The paper
- which they bought so recently, they are already trying to sell; and have
- received and refused an offer of £150 for what they bought for upwards
- of £600. Surely we may now demand the attention of the three Powers.
- VII
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "PALL MALL GAZETTE"
- I
- _September_ 4, 1893.
- In June it became clear that the King's Government was weary of waiting
- upon Europe, as it had been clear long before that Europe would do
- nothing. The last commentary on the Berlin Act was read. Malietoa
- Laupepa had been put in _ex auctoritate_ by the Powers; the Powers would
- not support him even by a show of strength, and there was nothing left
- but to fall back on an "Election according to the Laws and Customs of
- Samoa"--by arbitrament of rifle-bullets and blackened faces. Instantly
- heaven was darkened by a brood of rumours, random calumnies, and idle
- tales. As we rode, late at night, through the hamlet near my house, we
- saw the fires lighted in the houses, and eager talkers discussing the
- last report. The King was sick; he was dying; he was perfectly well; he
- was seen riding furiously by night in the back parts of Apia, and
- covering his face as he rode. Mataafa was in favour with the Germans; he
- was to be made a German king; he was secure of the support of all Samoa;
- he had no following whatsoever. The name of every chief and village
- (with many that were new to the hearer) came up in turn, to be dubbed
- Laupepa, or Mataafa, or both at the same time, or neither. Dr. George
- Brown, the missionary, had just completed a tour of the islands. There
- are few men in the world with a more mature knowledge of native
- character, and I applied to him eagerly for an estimate of the relative
- forces. "When the first shot is fired, and not before," said he, "you
- will know who is who." The event has shown that he might have gone yet
- further; for even after shots were fired and men slain, an important
- province was still hesitating and trimming.
- Mataafa lay in Malie. He had an armed picket at a ford some two miles
- from Apia, where they sat in a prodigious state of vigilance and glee;
- and his whole troop, although not above five hundred strong, appeared
- animated with the most warlike spirit. For himself, he waited, as he had
- waited for two years; wrote eloquent letters, the time to answer which
- was quite gone by; and looked on while his enemies painfully collected
- their forces. Doubtless to the last he was assured and deceived by vain
- promises of help.
- The process of gathering a royal army in Samoa is cumbrous and dilatory
- in the extreme. There is here none of the expedition of the fiery cross
- and the bale-fire; but every step is diplomatic. Each village, with a
- great expense of eloquence, has to be wiled with promises and spurred
- by threats, and the greater chieftains make stipulations ere they will
- march. Tamasese, son to the late German puppet, and heir of his
- ambitions, demanded the vice-kingship as the price of his accession,
- though I am assured that he demanded it in vain. The various provinces
- returned various and unsatisfactory answers. Atua was off and on;
- Tuamasaga was divided; Tutuila recalcitrant; and for long the King sat
- almost solitary under the windy palms of Mulinuu. It seemed indeed as if
- the war was off, and the whole archipelago unanimous (in the native
- phrase) to sit still and plant taro.
- But at last, in the first days of July, Atua began to come in. Boats
- arrived, thirty and fifty strong, a drum and a very ill-played bugle
- giving time to the oarsmen, the whole crew uttering at intervals a
- savage howl; and on the decked fore-sheets of the boat the village
- champion, frantically capering and dancing. Parties were to be seen
- encamped in palm-groves with their rifles stacked. The shops were
- emptied of red handkerchiefs, the rallying sign, or (as a man might say)
- the uniform of the Royal army. There was spirit shown; troops of
- handsome lads marched in a right manly fashion, with their guns on their
- shoulders, to the music of the drum and the bugle or the tin-whistle.
- From a hamlet close to my own doors a contingent of six men marched out.
- Their leader's kit contained one stick of tobacco, four boxes of
- matches, and the inevitable red handkerchief; in his case it was of
- silk, for he had come late to the purchasing, and the commoner materials
- were exhausted. This childish band of braves marched one afternoon to a
- neighbouring hill, and the same night returned to their houses, on the
- ground that it was "uncomfortable" in the bush. An excellent old fellow,
- who had had enough of war in many campaigns, took refuge in my service
- from the conscription, but in vain. The village had decided no warrior
- might hang back. One summoner arrived; and then followed some
- negotiations--I have no authority to say what: enough that the
- messenger departed and our friend remained. But, alas! a second envoy
- followed and proved to be of sterner composition; and with a basket full
- of food, kava, and tobacco, the reluctant hero proceeded to the wars. I
- am sure they had few handsomer soldiers, if, perhaps, some that were
- more willing. And he would have been better to be armed. His gun--but in
- Mr. Kipling's pleasant catchword, that is another story.
- War, to the Samoan of mature years, is often an unpleasant necessity. To
- the young boy it is a heaven of immediate pleasures, as well as an
- opportunity of ultimate glory. Women march with the troops--even the
- Taupo-sa, or sacred maid of the village, accompanies her father in the
- field to carry cartridges, and bring him water to drink,--and their
- bright eyes are ready to "rain influence" and reward valour. To what
- grim deeds this practice may conduct I shall have to say later on. In
- the rally of their arms, it is at least wholly pretty; and I have one
- pleasant picture of a war-party marching out; the men armed and
- boastful, their heads bound with the red handkerchief, their faces
- blacked--and two girls marching in their midst under European parasols.
- On Saturday, July 8th, by the early morning, the troops began to file
- westward from Apia, and about noon found found themselves face to face
- with the lines of Mataafa in the German plantation of Vaitele. The
- armies immediately fraternised; kava was made by the ladies, as who
- should say tea, at home, and partaken of by the braves with many
- truculent expressions. One chief on the King's side, revolted by the
- extent of these familiarities, began to beat his followers with a staff.
- But both parties were still intermingled between the lines, and the
- chiefs on either side were conversing, and even embracing, at the
- moment, when an accidental, or perhaps a treacherous, shot precipitated
- the engagement. I cannot find there was any decisive difference in the
- numbers actually under fire; but the Mataafas appear to have been ill
- posted and ill led. Twice their flank was turned, their line enfiladed,
- and themselves driven with the loss of about thirty, from two successive
- cattle walls. A third wall afforded them a more effectual shelter, and
- night closed on the field of battle without further advantage. All night
- the Royal troops hailed volleys of bullets at this obstacle. With the
- earliest light, a charge proved it to be quite deserted, and from
- further down the coast smoke was seen rising from the houses of Malie.
- Mataafa had precipitately fled, destroying behind him the village,
- which, for two years, he had been raising and beautifying.
- So much was accomplished: what was to follow? Mataafa took refuge in
- Manono, and cast up forts. His enemies, far from following up this
- advantage, held _fonos_ and made speeches and found fault. I believe the
- majority of the King's army had marched in a state of continuous
- indecision, and maintaining an attitude of impartiality more to be
- admired in the cabinet of the philosopher than in the field of war. It
- is certain at least that only one province has as yet fired a shot for
- Malietoa Laupepa. The valour of the Tuamasaga was sufficient and
- prevailed. But Atua was in the rear, and has as yet done nothing. As for
- the men of Crana, so far from carrying out the plan agreed upon, and
- blocking the men of Malie, on the morning of the 8th, they were
- entertaining an embassy from Mataafa, and they suffered his fleet of
- boats to escape without a shot through certain dangerous narrows of the
- lagoon, and the chief himself to pass on foot and unmolested along the
- whole foreshore of their province. No adequate excuse has been made for
- this half-heartedness--or treachery. It was a piece of the whole which
- was a specimen. There are too many strings in a Samoan intrigue for the
- merely European mind to follow, and the desire to serve upon both sides,
- and keep a door open for reconciliation, was manifest almost throughout.
- A week passed in these divided counsels. Savaii had refused to receive
- Mataafa--it is said they now hesitated to rise for the King, and
- demanded instead a _fono_ (or council) of both sides. And it seemed at
- least possible that the Royal army might proceed no further, and the
- unstable alliance be dissolved.
- On Sunday, the 16th, Her British Majesty's ship _Katoomba_, Captain
- Bickford, C.M.G., arrived in Apia with fresh orders. Had she but come
- ten days earlier the whole of this miserable business would have been
- prevented, for the three Powers were determined to maintain Malietoa
- Laupepa by arms, and had declared finally against Mataafa. Right or
- wrong, it was at least a decision, and therefore welcome. It may not be
- best--it was something. No honest friend to Samoa can pretend anything
- but relief that the three Powers should at last break their vacillating
- silence. It is of a piece with their whole policy in the islands that
- they should have hung in stays for upwards of two years--of a piece with
- their almost uniform ill-fortune that, eight days before their purpose
- was declared, war should have marked the country with burned houses and
- severed heads.
- II
- There is another side to the medal of Samoan warfare. So soon as an
- advantage is obtained, a new and (to us) horrible animal appears upon
- the scene--the Head Hunter. Again and again we have reasoned with our
- boys against this bestial practice; but reason and (upon this one point)
- even ridicule are vain. They admit it to be indefensible; they allege
- its imperative necessity. One young man, who had seen his father take a
- head in the late war, spoke of the scene with shuddering revolt, and yet
- said he must go and do likewise himself in the war which was to come.
- How else could a man prove he was brave? and had not every country its
- own customs?
- Accordingly, as occasion offered, these same pleasing children, who had
- just been drinking kava with their opponents, fell incontinently on the
- dead and dying, and secured their grisly trophies. It should be said,
- in fairness, that the Mataafas had no opportunity to take heads, but
- that their chief, taught by the lesson of Fangalii, had forbidden the
- practice. It is doubtful if he would have been obeyed, and yet his power
- over his people was so great that the German plantation, where they lay
- some time, and were at last defeated, had not to complain of the theft
- of a single cocoa-nut. Hateful as it must always be to mutilate and
- murder the disabled, there were in this day's affray in Vaitele
- circumstances yet more detestable. Fifteen heads were brought in all to
- Mulinuu. They were carried with parade in front of the fine house which
- our late President built for himself before he was removed. Here, on the
- verandah, the King sat to receive them, and utter words of course and
- compliment to each successful warrior. They were _spolia opima_ in the
- number. Leaupepe, Mataafa's nephew--or, as Samoans say, his son--had
- fallen by the first wall, and whether from those sentiments of kindred
- and friendship that so often unite the combatants in civil strife, or to
- mark by an unusual formality the importance of the conquest, not only
- his head but his mutilated body also was brought in. From the mat in
- which the corpse was enveloped a bloody hand protruded, and struck a
- chill in white eye-witnesses. It were to attribute to [Malietoa] Laupepa
- sentiments entirely foreign to his race and training, if we were to
- suppose him otherwise than gratified.
- But it was not so throughout. Every country has its customs, say native
- apologists, and one of the most decisive customs of Samoa ensures the
- immunity of women. They go to the front, as our women of yore went to a
- tournament. Bullets are blind; and they must take their risk of bullets,
- but of nothing else. They serve out cartridges and water; they jeer the
- faltering and defend the wounded. Even in this skirmish of Vaitele they
- distinguished themselves on either side. One dragged her skulking
- husband from a hole, and drove him to the front. Another, seeing her
- lover fall, snatched up his gun, kept the head-hunters at bay, and drew
- him unmutilated from the field. Such services they have been accustomed
- to pay for centuries; and often, in the course of centuries, a bullet or
- a spear must have despatched one of these warlike angels. Often enough,
- too, the head-hunter, springing ghoul-like on fallen bodies, must have
- decapitated a woman for a man. But, the case arising, there was an
- established etiquette. So soon as the error was discovered the head was
- buried, and the exploit forgotten. There had never yet, in the history
- of Samoa, occurred an instance in which a man had taken a woman's head
- and kept it and laid it at his monarch's feet.
- Such was the strange and horrid spectacle, which must have immediately
- shaken the heart of Laupepa, and has since covered the faces of his
- party with confusion. It is not quite certain if there were three, or
- only two: a recent attempt to reduce the number to one must be received
- with caution as an afterthought; the admissions in the beginning were
- too explicit, the panic of shame and fear had been too sweeping. There
- is scarce a woman of our native friends in Apia who can speak upon the
- subject without terror; scarce any man without humiliation. And the
- shock was increased out of measure by the fact that the head--or one of
- the heads--was recognised; recognised for the niece of one of the
- greatest of court ladies; recognised for a Taupo-sa, or sacred maid of a
- village from Savaii. It seemed incredible that she--who had been chosen
- for virtue and beauty, who went everywhere attended by the fairest
- maidens, and watched over by vigilant duennas, whose part it was, in
- holiday costume, to receive guests, to make kava, and to be the leader
- of the revels, should become the victim of a brutal rally in a cow-park,
- and have her face exposed for a trophy to the victorious king.
- In all this muttering of aversion and alarm, no word has been openly
- said. No punishment, no disgrace, has been inflicted on the
- perpetrators of the outrage. King, Consuls, and mission appear to have
- held their peace alike. I can understand a certain apathy in whites.
- Head-hunting, they say, is a horrid practice: and will not stop to
- investigate its finer shades. But the Samoan himself does not hesitate;
- for him the act is portentous; and if it go unpunished, and set a
- fashion, its consequences must be damnable. This is not a breach of a
- Christian virtue, of something half-learned by rote, and from
- foreigners, in the last thirty years. It is a flying in the face of
- their own native, instinctive, and traditional standard: tenfold more
- ominous and degrading. And, taking the matter for all in all, it seems
- to me that head-hunting itself should be firmly and immediately
- suppressed. "How else can a man prove himself to be brave?" my friend
- asked. But often enough these are but fraudulent trophies. On the morrow
- of the fight at Vaitele, an Atua man discovered a body lying in the
- bush: he took the head. A day or two ago a party was allowed to visit
- Manono. The King's troops on shore, observing them put off from the
- rebel island, leaped to the conclusion that this must be the wounded
- going to Apia, launched off at once two armed boats and overhauled the
- others--after heads. The glory of such exploits is not apparent; their
- power for degradation strikes the eyes. Lieutenant Ulfsparre, our late
- Swedish Chief of Police and Commander of the forces, told his men that
- if any of them took a head his own hand should avenge it. That was
- talking; I should like to see all in the same story--king, consuls, and
- missionaries--included.
- III
- The three Powers have at last taken hold here in Apia. But they came the
- day after the fair; and the immediate business on hand is very delicate.
- This morning, 18th, Captain Bickford, followed by two Germans, sailed
- for Manono. If he shall succeed in persuading Mataafa to surrender, all
- may be well. If he cannot, this long train of blunders may end in--what
- is so often the result of blundering in the field of politics--a horrid
- massacre. Those of us who remember the services of Mataafa, his
- unfailing generosity and moderation in the past, and his bereavement in
- the present--as well as those who are only interested in a mass of men
- and women, many of them our familiar friends, now pent up on an island,
- and beleaguered by three warships and a Samoan army--await the issue
- with dreadful expectation.
- VIII
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Vailima, Apia, April_ 23, 1894.
- Sir,--I last addressed you on the misconduct of certain officials here,
- and I was so far happy as to have had my facts confirmed in every
- particular with but one exception. That exception, the affair of the
- dynamite, has been secretly smuggled away; you shall look in vain in
- either Blue-book or White-book for any mention even of the charge; it is
- gone like the conjurer's orange. I might have been tempted to inquire
- into the reason of this conspiracy of silence, whether the idea was
- conceived in the bosoms of the three Powers themselves, or whether in
- the breasts of the three Consuls, because one of their number was
- directly implicated. And I might have gone on to consider the moral
- effect of such suppressions, and to show how very idle they were, and
- how very undignified, in the face of a small and compact population,
- where everybody sees and hears, where everybody knows, and talks, and
- laughs. But only a personal question remained, which I judged of no
- interest to the public. The essential was accomplished. Baron Senfft was
- gone already. Mr. Cedercrantz still lingered among us in the character
- (I may say) of a private citizen, his Court at last closed, only his
- pocket open for the receipt of his salary, representing the dignity of
- the Berlin Act by sitting in the wind on Mulinuu Point for several
- consecutive months--a curious phantom or survival of a past age. The new
- officials were not as yet, because they had not been created. And we
- fell into our old estate of government by the three Consuls, as it was
- in the beginning before the Berlin Act existed; as it seems it will be
- till the end, after the Berlin Act has been swept away.
- It was during the time of this triumvirate, and wholly at their
- instigation and under their conduct, that Mataafa was defeated, driven
- to Manono, and (three warships coming opportunely to hand) forced to
- surrender. I have been called a partisan of this chief's, and I accept
- the term. I thought him, on the whole, the most honest man in Samoa, not
- excepting white officials. I ventured to think he had been hardly used
- by the Treaty Powers; I venture to think so still. It was my opinion
- that he should have been conjoined with Malietoa as Vice-King; and I
- have seen no reason to change that opinion, except that the time for it
- is past. Mataafa has played and lost; an exile, and stripped of his
- titles, he walks the exiguous beach of Jaluit, sees the German flag over
- his head, and yearns for the land wind of Upolu. In the politics of
- Samoa he is no longer a factor; and it only remains to speak of the
- manner in which his rebellion was suppressed and punished. Deportation
- is, to the Samoan mind, the punishment next to death, and thirteen of
- the chiefs engaged were deported with their leader. Twenty-seven others
- were cast into the gaol. There they lie still; the Government makes
- almost no attempt to feed them, and they must depend on the activity of
- their families and the charity of pitying whites. In the meantime, these
- very families are overloaded with fines, the exorbitant sum of more than
- £6,600 having been laid on the chiefs and villages that took part with
- Mataafa.
- So far we can only complain that the punishments have been severe and
- the prison commissariat absent. But we have, besides, to regret the
- repeated scandals in connection with the conduct of the war, and we look
- in vain for any sign of punishment. The Consuls had to employ barbarous
- hands; we might expect outrages; we did expect them to be punished, or
- at least disowned. Thus, certain Mataafa chiefs were landed, and landed
- from a British man-of-war, to be shamefully abused, beaten, and struck
- with whips along the main street of Mulinuu. There was no punishment,
- there was even no inquiry; the three Consuls winked. Only one man was
- found honest and bold enough to open his mouth, and that was my old
- enemy, Mr. Cedercrantz. Walking in Mulinuu, in his character of
- disinterested spectator, gracefully desipient, he came across the throng
- of these rabblers and their victims. He had forgotten that he was an
- official, he remembered that he was a man. It was his last public
- appearance in Samoa to interfere; it was certainly his best. Again, the
- Government troops in the field took the heads of girls, a detestable
- felony even in Samoan eyes. They carried them in procession to Mulinuu,
- and made of them an oblation to that melancholy effigy the King, who
- (sore against his will) sat on the verandah of the Government building,
- publicly to receive this affront, publicly to utter the words of
- compliment and thanks which constitute the highest reward known to
- Samoan bravery, and crowned as heroes those who should have been hanged
- like dogs. And again the three Consuls unanimously winked. There was no
- punishment, there was even no inquiry.
- Lastly, there is the story of Manono. Three hours were given to Mataafa
- to accept the terms of the ultimatum, and the time had almost elapsed
- when his boats put forth, and more than elapsed before he came alongside
- the _Katoomba_ and surrendered formally to Captain Bickford. In the dusk
- of the evening, when all the ships had sailed, flames were observed to
- rise from the island. Mataafa flung himself on his knees before Captain
- Bickford, and implored protection for his women and children left
- behind, and the captain put back the ship and despatched one of the
- Consuls to inquire. The _Katoomba_ had been about seventy hours in the
- islands. Captain Bickford was a stranger; he had to rely on the Consuls
- implicitly. At the same time, he knew that the Government troops had
- been suffered to land for the purpose of restoring order, and with the
- understanding that no reprisals should be committed on the adherents of
- Mataafa; and he charged the emissary with his emphatic disapproval,
- threats of punishment on the offenders, and reminders that the war had
- now passed under the responsibility of the three Powers. I cannot
- condescend on what this Consul saw during his visit; I can only say what
- he reported on his return. He reported all well, and the chiefs on the
- Government side fraternising and making _ava_ with those on Mataafa's.
- It may have been; at least it is strange. The burning of the island
- proceeded, fruit-trees were cut down, women stripped naked; a scene of
- brutal disorder reigned all night, and left behind it, over a quarter of
- the island, ruin. If they fraternised with Mataafa's chieftains they
- must have been singularly inconsistent, for, the next we learn of the
- two parties, they were beating, spitting upon, and insulting them along
- the highway. The next morning in Apia I asked the same Consul if there
- had not been some houses burned. He told me no. I repeated the question,
- alleging the evidence of officers on board the _Katoomba_ who had seen
- the flames increase and multiply as they steamed away; whereupon he had
- this remarkable reply--"O! huts, huts, huts! There isn't a house, a
- frame house, on the island." The case to plain men stands thus:--The
- people of Manono were insulted, their food-trees cut down, themselves
- left houseless; not more than ten houses--I beg the Consul's pardon,
- huts--escaped the rancour of their enemies; and to this day they may be
- seen to dwell in shanties on the site of their former residences, the
- pride of the Samoan heart. The ejaculation of the Consul was thus at
- least prophetic; and the traveller who revisits to-day the shores of
- the "Garden Island" may well exclaim in his turn, "Huts, huts, huts!"
- The same measure was served out, in the mere wantonness of clan hatred,
- to Apolima, a nearly inaccessible islet in the straits of the same name;
- almost the only property saved there (it is amusing to remember) being a
- framed portrait of Lady Jersey, which its custodian escaped with into
- the bush, as it were the palladium and chief treasure of the
- inhabitants. The solemn promise passed by Consuls and captains in the
- name of the three Powers was thus broken; the troops employed were
- allowed their bellyful of barbarous outrage. And again there was no
- punishment, there was no inquiry, there was no protest, there was not a
- word said to disown the act or disengage the honour of the three Powers.
- I do not say the Consuls desired to be disobeyed, though the case looks
- black against one gentleman, and even he is perhaps only to be accused
- of levity and divided interest; it was doubtless important for him to be
- early in Apia, where he combines with his diplomatic functions the
- management of a thriving business as commission agent and auctioneer. I
- do say of all of them that they took a very nonchalant view of their
- duty.
- I told myself that this was the government of the Consular Triumvirate.
- When the new officials came it would cease; it would pass away like a
- dream in the night; and the solid _Pax Romana_, of the Berlin General
- Act would succeed. After all, what was there to complain of? The Consuls
- had shown themselves no slovens and no sentimentalists. They had shown
- themselves not very particular, but in one sense very thorough.
- Rebellion was to be put down swiftly and rigorously, if need were with
- the hand of Cromwell; at least it was to be put down. And in these
- unruly islands I was prepared almost to welcome the face of
- Rhadamanthine severity.
- And now it appears it was all a mistake. The government by the Berlin
- General Act is no more than a mask, and a very expensive one, for
- government by the Consular Triumvirate. Samoa pays (or tries to pay)
- £2,200 a year to a couple of helpers; and they dare not call their souls
- their own. They take their walks abroad with an anxious eye on the three
- Consuls, like two well-behaved children with three nurses; and the
- Consuls, smiling superior, allow them to amuse themselves with the
- routine of business. But let trouble come, and the farce is suspended.
- At the whistle of a squall these heaven-born mariners seize the tiller,
- and the £2,200 amateurs are knocked sprawling on the bilge. At the first
- beat of the drum, the treaty officials are sent below, gently
- protesting, like a pair of old ladies, and behold! the indomitable
- Consuls ready to clear the wreck and make the deadly cutlass shine. And
- their method, studied under the light of a new example, wears another
- air. They are not so Rhadamanthine as we thought. Something that we can
- only call a dignified panic presides over their deliberations. They have
- one idea to lighten the ship. "Overboard with the ballast, the
- main-mast, and the chronometer!" is the cry. In the last war they got
- rid (first) of the honour of their respective countries, and (second) of
- all idea that Samoa was to be governed in a manner consistent with
- civilisation, or Government troops punished for any conceivable
- misconduct. In the present war they have sacrificed (first) the prestige
- of the new Chief Justice, and (second) the very principle for which they
- had contended so vigorously and so successfully in the war before--that
- rebellion was a thing to be punished.
- About the end of last year, that war, a war of the Tupuas under Tamasese
- the younger, which was a necessary pendant to the crushing of Mataafa,
- began to make itself heard of in obscure grumblings. It was but a timid
- business. One half of the Tupua party, the whole province of Atua, never
- joined the rebellion, but sulked in their villages and spent the time in
- indecisive eloquence and barren embassies. Tamasese, by a trick
- eminently Samoan, "went in the high bush and the mountains," carrying a
- gun like a private soldier--served, in fact, with his own troops
- _incognito_--and thus, to Samoan eyes, waived his dynastic pretensions.
- And the war, which was announced in the beginning with a long catalogue
- of complaints against the King and a distinct and ugly threat to the
- white population of Apia, degenerated into a war of defence by the
- province of Aána against the eminently brutal troops of Savaii, in which
- sympathy was generally and justly with the rebels. Savaii, raging with
- private clan hatred and the lust of destruction, was put at free
- quarters in the disaffected province, repeated on a wider scale the
- outrages of Manono and Apolima, cut down the food-trees, stripped and
- insulted the women, robbed the children of their little possessions,
- burned the houses, killed the horses, the pigs, the dogs, the cats,
- along one half of the seaboard of Aána, and in the prosecution of these
- manly exploits managed (to the joy of all) to lose some sixty men
- killed, wounded, and drowned.
- Government by the Treaty of Berlin was still erect when, one fine
- morning, in walked the three Consuls, totally uninvited, with a
- proclamation prepared and signed by themselves, without any mention of
- anybody else. They had awoke to a sense of the danger of the situation
- and their own indispensable merits. The two children knew their day was
- over; the nurses had come for them. Who can blame them for their
- timidity? The Consuls have the ears of the Governments; they are the
- authors of those despatches of which, in the ripeness of time,
- Blue-books and White-books are made up; they had dismissed (with some
- little assistance from yourself) MM. Cedercrantz and Senfft von Pilsach,
- and they had strangled, like an illegitimate child, the scandal of the
- dynamite. The Chief Justice and the President made haste to disappear
- between decks, and left the ship of the State to the three volunteers.
- There was no lack of activity. The Consuls went up to Atua, they went
- down to Aána; the oarsmen toiled, the talking men pleaded; they are said
- to have met with threats in Atua, and to have yielded to them--at
- least, in but a few days' time they came home to us with a new treaty
- of pacification. Of course, and as before, the Government troops were
- whitewashed; the Savaii ruffians had been stripping women and killing
- cats in the interests of the Berlin Treaty; there was to be no
- punishment and no inquiry; let them retire to Savaii with their booty
- and their dead. Offensive as this cannot fail to be, there is still some
- slight excuse for it. The King is no more than one out of several chiefs
- of clans. His strength resides in the willing obedience of the
- Tuamasaga, and a portion--I have to hope a bad portion--of the island of
- Savaii. To punish any of these supporters must always be to accept a
- risk; and the golden opportunity had been allowed to slip at the moment
- of the Mataafa war.
- What was more original was the treatment of the rebels. They were under
- arms that moment against the Government; they had fought and sometimes
- vanquished; they had taken heads and carried them to Tamasese. And the
- terms granted were to surrender fifty rifles, to make some twenty miles
- of road, to pay some old fines--and to be forgiven! The loss of fifty
- rifles to people destitute of any shadow of a gunsmith to repair them
- when they are broken, and already notoriously short of ammunition, is a
- trifle; the number is easy to be made up of those that are out of
- commission; for there is not the least stipulation as to their value;
- any synthesis of old iron and smashed wood that can be called a gun is
- to be taken from its force. The road, as likely as not, will never be
- made. The fines have nothing to say to this war; in any reasonably
- governed country they should never have figured in the treaty; they had
- been inflicted before, and were due before. Before the rebellion began,
- the beach had rung with I know not what indiscreet bluster; the natives
- were to be read a lesson; Tamasese (by name) was to be hanged; and after
- what had been done to Mataafa, I was so innocent as to listen with awe.
- And now the rebellion has come, and this was the punishment! There might
- well have been a doubt in the mind of any chief who should have been
- tempted to follow the example of Mataafa; but who is it that would not
- dare to follow Tamasese?
- For some reason--I know not what, unless it be fear--there is a strong
- prejudice amongst whites against any interference with the bestial
- practice of head-hunting. They say it would be impossible to identify
- the criminals--a thing notoriously contrary to fact. A man does not take
- a head, as he steals an apple, for secret degustation; the essence of
- the thing is its publicity. After the girls' heads were brought into
- Mulinuu I pressed Mr. Cusack-Smith to take some action. He proposed a
- paper of protest, to be signed by the English residents. We made rival
- drafts; his was preferred, and I have heard no more of it. It has not
- been offered me to sign; it has not been published; under a paper-weight
- in the British Consulate I suppose it may yet be found! Meanwhile, his
- Honour Mr. Ide, the new Chief Justice, came to Samoa and took spirited
- action. He engineered an ordinance through the House of Faipule,
- inflicting serious penalties on any who took heads, and the papers at
- the time applauded his success. The rebellion followed, the troops were
- passing to the front, and with excellent resolution Mr. Ide harangued
- the chiefs, reiterated the terms of the new law, and promised unfailing
- vengeance on offenders. It was boldly done, and he stood committed
- beyond possibility of retreat to enforce this his first important edict.
- Great was the commotion, great the division, in the Samoan mind. "O! we
- have had Chief Justices before," said a visitor to my house; "we know
- what they are; I will take a head if I can get one." Others were more
- doubtful, but thought none could be so bold as lay a hand on the
- peculiar institution of these islands. Yet others were convinced. Savaii
- took heads; but when they sent one to Mulinuu a messenger met them by
- the convent gates from the King; he would none of it, and the trophy
- must be ingloriously buried, Savaii took heads also, and Tamasese
- accepted the presentation. Tuamasaga, on the other hand, obeyed the
- Chief Justice and (the occasion being thrust upon them) contented
- themselves with taking the dead man's ears. On the whole, about
- one-third of the troops engaged, and our not very firm Monarch himself,
- kept the letter of the ordinance. And it was upon this scene of partial,
- but really cheering, success that the Consuls returned with their
- general pardon! The Chief Justice was not six months old in the islands.
- He had succeeded to a position complicated by the failure of his
- predecessor. Personally, speaking face to face with the chiefs, he had
- put his authority in pledge that the ordinance should be enforced. And
- he found himself either forgotten or betrayed by the three Consuls.
- These volunteers had made a liar of him; they had administered to him,
- before all Samoa, a triple buffet. I must not wonder, though I may still
- deplore, that Mr. Ide accepted the position thus made for him. There was
- a deal of alarm in Apia. To refuse the treaty thus hastily and
- shamefully cobbled up would have increased it tenfold. Already, since
- the declaration of war and the imminence of the results, one of the
- papers had ratted, and the white population were girding at the new
- ordinance. It was feared besides that the native Government, though they
- had voted, were secretly opposed to it. It was almost certain they would
- try to prevent its application to the loyalist offenders of Savaii. The
- three Consuls in the negotiations of the treaty had fully illustrated
- both their want of sympathy with the ordinance and their want of regard
- for the position of the Chief Justice. "In short, I am to look for no
- support, whether physical or moral?" asked Mr. Ide; and I could make but
- the one answer--"Neither physical nor moral." It was a hard choice; and
- he elected to accept the terms of the treaty without protest. And the
- next war (if we are to continue to enjoy the benefits of the Berlin Act)
- will probably show us the result in an enlarged assortment of heads, and
- the next difficulty perhaps prove to us the diminished prestige of the
- Chief Justice. Mr. Ide announces his intention of applying the law in
- the case of another war; but I very much fear the golden opportunity has
- again been lost. About one-third of the troops believed him this time;
- how many will believe him the next?
- It will doubtless be answered that the Consuls were affected by the
- alarm in Apia and actuated by the desire to save white lives. I am far
- from denying that there may be danger; and I believe that the way we are
- going is the best way to bring it on. In the progressive decivilisation
- of these islands--evidenced by the female heads taken in the last war
- and the treatment of white missionaries in this--our methods of pull
- devil, pull baker, general indecision, and frequent (though always
- dignified) panic are the best calculated in the world to bring on a
- massacre of whites. A consistent dignity, a consistent and independent
- figure of a Chief Justice, the enforcement of the laws, and above all,
- of the laws against barbarity, a Consular board the same in the presence
- as in the absence of warships, will be found our best defence.
- Much as I have already occupied of your space, I would yet ask leave to
- draw two conclusions.
- And first, Mataafa and Tamasese both made war. Both wars were presumably
- dynastic in character, though the Tupua not rallying to Tamasese as he
- had expected led him to cover his design. That he carried a gun himself,
- and himself fired, will not seem to European ears a very important
- alleviation. Tamasese received heads, sitting as a King, under whatever
- name; Mataafa had forbidden the taking of heads--of his own accord, and
- before Mr. Ide had taken office. Tamasese began with threats against the
- white population; Mataafa never ceased to reassure them and to extend an
- effectual protection to their property. What is the difference between
- their cases? That Mataafa was an old man, already famous, who had served
- his country well, had been appointed King of Samoa, had served in the
- office, and had been set aside--not, indeed, in the text, but in the
- protocols of the Berlin Act, by name? I do not grudge his good fortune
- to Tamasese, who is an amiable, spirited, and handsome young man; and
- who made a barbarous war, indeed, since heads were taken after the old
- Samoan practice, but who made it without any of the savagery which we
- have had reason to comment upon in the camp of his adversaries. I do not
- grudge the invidious fate that has befallen my old friend and his
- followers. At first I believed these judgments to be the expression of a
- severe but equal justice. I find them, on further experience, to be mere
- measures of the degree of panic in the Consuls, varying directly as the
- distance of the nearest war-ship. The judgments under which they fell
- have now no sanctity; they form no longer a precedent; they may
- perfectly well be followed by a pardon, or a partial pardon, as the
- authorities shall please. The crime of Mataafa is to have read strictly
- the first article of the Berlin Act, and not to have read at all (as how
- should he when it has never been translated?) the insidious protocol
- which contains its significance; the crime of his followers is to have
- practised clan fidelity, and to have in consequence raised an _imperium
- in imperio_, and fought against the Government. Their punishment is to
- be sent to a coral atoll and detained there prisoners. It does not sound
- much; it is a great deal. Taken from a mountain island, they must
- inhabit a narrow strip of reef sunk to the gunwale in the ocean. Sand,
- stone, and cocoa-nuts, stone, sand, and pandanus, make the scenery.
- There is no grass. Here these men, used to the cool, bright mountain
- rivers of Samoa, must drink with loathing the brackish water of the
- coral. The food upon such islands is distressing even to the omnivorous
- white. To the Samoan, who has that shivering delicacy and ready disgust
- of the child or the rustic mountaineer, it is intolerable. I remember
- what our present King looked like, what a phantom he was, when he
- returned from captivity in the same place. Lastly, these fourteen have
- been divorced from their families. The daughter of Mataafa somehow broke
- the _consigne_ and accompanied her father; but she only. To this day
- one of them, Palepa, the wife of Faamuina, is dunning the authorities in
- vain to be allowed to join her husband--she a young and handsome woman,
- he an old man and infirm. I cannot speak with certainty, but I believe
- they are allowed no communication with the prisoners, nor the prisoners
- with them. My own open experience is brief and conclusive--I have not
- been suffered to send my friends one stick of tobacco or one pound of
- _ava_. So much to show the hardships are genuine. I have to ask a pardon
- for these unhappy victims of untranslated protocols and inconsistent
- justice. After the case of Tamasese, I ask it almost as of right. As for
- the other twenty-seven in the gaol, let the doors be opened at once.
- They have showed their patience, they have proved their loyalty long
- enough. On two occasions, when the guards deserted in a body, and again
- when the Aána prisoners fled, they remained--one may truly
- say--voluntary prisoners. And at least let them be fed! I have paid
- taxes to the Samoan Government for some four years, and the most
- sensible benefit I have received in return has been to be allowed to
- feed their prisoners.
- Second, if the farce of the Berlin Act is to be gone on with, it will be
- really necessary to moderate among our five Sovereigns--six if we are to
- count poor Malietoa, who represents to the life the character of the
- Hare and Many Friends. It is to be presumed that Mr. Ide and Herr
- Schmidt were chosen for their qualities; it is little good we are likely
- to get by them if, at every wind of rumour, the three Consuls are to
- intervene. The three Consuls are paid far smaller salaries, they have no
- right under the treaty to interfere with the government of autonomous
- Samoa, and they have contrived to make themselves all In all. The King
- and a majority of the Faipule fear them and look to them alone, while
- the legitimate adviser occupies a second place, if that. The misconduct
- of MM. Cedercrantz and Senfft von Pilsach was so extreme that the
- Consuls were obliged to encroach; and now when these are gone the
- authority acquired in the contest remains with the encroachers. On their
- side they have no rights, but a tradition of victory, the ear of the
- Governments at home, and the _vis viva_ of the war-ships. For the poor
- treaty officials, what have they but rights very obscurely expressed and
- very weakly defended by their predecessors? Thus it comes about that
- people who are scarcely mentioned in the text of the treaty are, to all
- intents and purposes, our only rulers.
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- IX
- TO THE EDITOR OF THE "TIMES"
- _Vailima, Samoa, May_ 22, 1894.
- Sir,--I told you in my last that the Consuls had tinkered up a treaty of
- peace with the rebels of Aána. A month has gone by, and I would not
- weary readers your with a story so intricate and purposeless. The
- Consuls seem to have gone backward and forward, to and fro. To periods
- of agitated activity, comparable to that of three ants about a broken
- nest, there succeeded seasons in which they rested from their labours
- and ruefully considered the result. I believe I am not overstating the
- case when I say that this treaty was at least twice rehandled, and the
- date of submission changed, in the interval. And yesterday at length we
- beheld the first-fruits of the Consular diplomacy. A boat came in from
- Aána bearing the promised fifty stand of arms--in other words, a talking
- man, a young chief, and some boatmen in charge of a boat-load of broken
- ironmongery. The Government (well advised for once) had placed the
- Embassy under an escort of German blue-jackets, or I think it must have
- gone ill with the Ambassadors.
- So much for Aána and the treaty. With Atua, the other disaffected
- province, we have been and are on the brink of war. The woods have been
- patrolled, the army sent to the front, blood has been shed. It consists
- with my knowledge that the loyalist troops marched against the enemy
- under a hallucination. One and all believed, a majority of them still
- believe, that the war-ships were to follow and assist them. Who told
- them so? If I am to credit the rumours of the natives, as well as the
- gossip of official circles, a promise had been given to this effect by
- the Consuls, or at least by one of the Consuls. And when I say that a
- promise had been given, I mean that it had been sold. I mean that the
- natives had to buy it by submissions.
- Let me take an example of these submissions. The native Government
- increased the salary of Mr. Gurr, the natives' advocate. It was not a
- largesse; it was rather an act of tardy justice, by which Mr. Gurr
- received at last the same emoluments as his predecessor in the office.
- At the same time, with a bankrupt treasury, all fresh expenses are and
- must be regarded askance. The President, acting under a so-called
- Treasury regulation, refused to honour the King's order. And a friendly
- suit was brought, which turned on the validity of this Treasury
- regulation. This was more than doubtful. The President was a treaty
- official; hence bound by the treaty. The three Consuls had been acting
- for him in his absence, using his powers and no other powers whatever
- under the treaty; and the three Consuls so acting had framed a
- regulation by which the powers of the President were greatly extended.
- This was a vicious circle with a vengeance. But the Consuls, with the
- ordinary partiality of parents for reformed offspring, regarded the
- regulation as the apple of their eye. They made themselves busy in its
- defence, they held interviews, it is reported they drew pleas; and it
- seemed to all that the Chief Justice hesitated. It is certain at least
- that he long delayed sentence. And during this delay the Consuls showed
- their power. The native Government was repeatedly called together, and
- at last forced to rescind the order in favour of Mr. Gurr. It was not
- done voluntarily, for the Government resisted. It was not done by
- conviction, for the Government had taken the first opportunity to
- restore it. If the Consuls did not appear personally in the affair--and
- I do not know that they did not--they made use of the President as a
- mouthpiece; and the President delayed the deliberations of the
- Government until he should receive further instructions from the
- Consuls. Ten pounds is doubtless a considerable affair to a bankrupt
- Government. But what were the Consuls doing in this matter of inland
- administration? What was their right to interfere? What were the
- arguments with which they overcame the resistance of the Government? I
- am either very much misinformed, or these gentlemen were trafficking in
- a merchandise which they did not possess, and selling at a high price
- the assistance of the war-ships over which (as now appears) they have no
- control.
- Remark the irony of fate. This affair had no sooner been settled, Mr.
- Gurr's claims cut at the very root, and the Treasury regulation
- apparently set beyond cavil, than the Chief Justice pulled himself
- together, and, taking his life in his right hand, delivered sentence in
- the case. Great was the surprise. Because the Chief Justice had balked
- so long, it was supposed he would never have taken the leap. And here,
- upon a sudden, he came down with a decision flat against the Consuls and
- their Treasury regulation. The Government have, I understand, restored
- Mr. Gurr's salary in consequence. The Chief Justice, after giving us all
- a very severe fright, has reinstated himself in public opinion by this
- tardy boldness; and the Consuls find their conduct judicially condemned.
- It was on a personal affront that the Consuls turned on Mr. Cedercrantz.
- Here is another affront, far more galling and public! I suppose it is
- but a coincidence that I should find at the same time the clouds
- beginning to gather about Mr. Ide's head. In a telegram, dated from
- Auckland, March 30, and copyrighted by the Associated Press, I find the
- whole blame of the late troubles set down to his account. It is the work
- of a person worthy of no trust. In one of his charges, and in one only,
- he is right. The Chief Justice fined and imprisoned certain chiefs of
- Aána under circumstances far from clear; the act was, to say the least
- of it, susceptible of misconstruction, and by natives will always be
- thought of as an act of treachery. But, even for this, it is not
- possible for me to split the blame justly between Mr. Ide and the three
- Consuls. In these early days, as now, the three Consuls were always too
- eager to interfere where they had no business, and the Chief Justice was
- always too patient or too timid to set them in their place. For the rest
- of the telegram no qualification is needed. "The Chief Justice was
- compelled to take steps to disarm the natives." He took no such steps;
- he never spoke of disarmament except publicly and officially to disown
- the idea; it was during the days of the Consular triumvirate that the
- cry began. "The Chief Justice called upon Malietoa to send a strong
- force," etc.; the Chief Justice "disregarded the menacing attitude
- assumed by the Samoans," etc.--these are but the delusions of a fever.
- The Chief Justice has played no such part; he never called for forces;
- he never disregarded menacing attitudes, not even those of the Consuls.
- What we have to complain of in Mr. Ide and Mr. Schmidt is strangely
- different. We complain that they have been here since November, and the
- three Consuls are still allowed, when they are not invited, to interfere
- in the least and the greatest; that they have been here for upwards of
- six months, and government under the Berlin Treaty is still
- overridden--and I may say overlaid--by the government of the Consular
- triumvirate.
- This is the main fountain of our present discontents. This it is that we
- pray to be relieved from. Out of six Sovereigns, exercising incongruous
- rights or usurpations on this unhappy island, we pray to be relieved of
- three. The Berlin Treaty was not our choice; but if we are to have it at
- all, let us have it plain. Let us have the text, and nothing but the
- text. Let the three Consuls who have no position under the treaty cease
- from troubling, cease from raising war and making peace, from passing
- illegal regulations in the face of day, and from secretly blackmailing
- the Samoan Government into renunciations of its independence.
- Afterwards, when we have once seen it in operation, we shall be able to
- judge whether government under the Berlin Treaty suits or does not suit
- our case.--I am, Sir, etc.,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- X
- FROM THE "DAILY CHRONICLE," _March_ 18, 1895.
- [Subjoined is the full text of the late Robert Louis Stevenson's last
- letter to Mr. J. F. Hogan, M.P. Apart from its pathetic interest as
- one of the final compositions of the distinguished novelist, its
- eloquent terms of pleading for his exiled friend Mataafa, and the
- light it sheds on Samoan affairs, make it a very noteworthy and
- instructive document.--ED. _D.C._]
- _Vailima, Oct._ 7, 1894.
- J. F. HOGAN, ESQ., M.P.
- Dear Sir,--My attention was attracted the other day by the thoroughly
- pertinent questions which you put in the House of Commons, and which the
- Government failed to answer. It put an idea in my head that you were
- perhaps the man who might take up a task which I am almost ready to give
- up. Mataafa is now known to be my hobby. People laugh when they see any
- mention of his name over my signature, and the _Times_, while it still
- grants me hospitality, begins to lead the chorus. I know that nothing
- can be more fatal to Mataafa's cause than that he should be made
- ridiculous, and I cannot help feeling that a man who makes his bread by
- writing fiction labours under the disadvantage of suspicion when he
- touches on matters of fact. If I were even backed up before the world by
- one other voice, people might continue to listen, and in the end
- something might be done. But so long as I stand quite alone, telling the
- same story, which becomes, apparently, not only more tedious, but less
- credible by repetition, I feel that I am doing nothing good, possibly
- even some evil.
- Now, sir, you have shown by your questions in the House, not only that
- you remember Mataafa, but that you are instructed in his case, and this
- exposes you to the trouble of reading this letter.
- Mataafa was made the prisoner of the three Powers. He had been guilty of
- rebellion; but surely rather formally than really. He was the appointed
- King of Samoa. The treaty set him aside, and he obeyed the three Powers.
- His successor--or I should rather say his successor's advisers and
- surroundings--fell out with him. He was disgusted by the spectacle of
- their misgovernment. In this humour he fell to the study of the Berlin
- Act, and was misled by the famous passage, "His successor shall be duly
- elected according to the laws and customs of Samoa." It is to be noted
- that what I will venture to call the infamous Protocol--a measure
- equally of German vanity, English cowardice, and American _incuria_--had
- not been and _has never yet been_ translated into the Samoan language.
- They feared light because their works were darkness. For what he did
- during what I can only call his candidature, I must refer you to the
- last chapter of my book. It was rebellion to the three Powers; to him it
- was not rebellion. The troops of the King attacked him first. The sudden
- arrival and sudden action of Captain Bickford concluded the affair in
- the very beginning. Mataafa surrendered. He surrendered to Captain
- Bickford. He was brought back to Apia on Captain Bickford's ship. I
- shall never forget the Captain pointing to the British ensign and
- saying, "Tell them they are safe under that." And the next thing we
- learned, Mataafa and his chiefs were transferred to a German war-ship
- and carried to the Marshalls.
- Who was responsible for this? Who is responsible now for the care and
- good treatment of these political prisoners? I am far from hinting that
- the Germans actually maltreat him. I know even that many of the Germans
- regard him with respect. But I can only speak of what I know here. It is
- impossible to send him or any of his chiefs either a present or a
- letter. I believe the mission (Catholic) has been allowed some form of
- communication. On the same occasion I sent down letters and presents.
- They were refused; and the officer of the deck on the German war-ship
- had so little reticence as to pass the remark, "O, you see, you like
- Mataafa; we don't." In short, communication is so completely sundered
- that for anything we can hear in Samoa, they may all have been hanged at
- the yard-arm two days out.
- To take another instance. The high chief Faamoina was recently married
- to a young and pleasing wife. She desired to follow her husband, an old
- man, in bad health, and so deservedly popular that he had been given the
- by-name of "_Papalagi Mativa_," or "Poor White Man," on account of his
- charities to our countrymen. She was refused. Again and again she has
- renewed her applications to be allowed to rejoin him, and without the
- least success.
- It has been decreed by some one, I know not whom, that Faamoina must
- have no one to nurse him, and that his wife must be left in the
- anomalous and dangerous position which the Treaty Powers have made for
- her. I have wearied myself, and I fear others, by my attempts to get a
- passage for her or to have her letters sent. Every one sympathises. The
- German ships now in port are loud in expressions of disapproval and
- professions of readiness to help her. But to whom can we address
- ourselves? Who is responsible? Who is the unknown power that sent
- Mataafa in a German ship to the Marshalls, instead of in an English ship
- to Fiji? that has decreed since that he shall receive not even
- inconsiderable gifts and open letters? and that keeps separated Faamoina
- and his wife?
- Now, dear sir, these are the facts, and I think that I may be excused
- for being angry. At the same time, I am well aware that an angry man is
- a bore. I am a man with a grievance, and my grievance has the misfortune
- to be very small and very far away. It is very small, for it is only the
- case of under a score of brown-skinned men who have been dealt with in
- the dark by I know not whom. And I want to know. I want to know by whose
- authority Mataafa was given over into German hands. I want to know by
- whose authority, and for how long a term of years, he is condemned to
- the miserable exile of a low island. And I want to know how it happens
- that what is sauce for the goose is not sauce for the gander in
- Samoa?--that the German enemy Mataafa has been indefinitely exiled for
- what is after all scarce more than constructive rebellion, and the
- German friend Tamasese, for a rebellion which has lasted long enough to
- threaten us with famine, and was disgraced in its beginning by ominous
- threats against the whites, has been punished by a fine of fifty rifles?
- True, I could sympathise with the German officers in their
- embarrassment. Here was the son of the old King whom they had raised,
- and whom they had deserted. What an unenviable office was theirs when
- they must make war upon, suppress, and make a feint of punishing, this
- man to whom they stood bound by a hereditary alliance, and to whose
- father they had already failed so egregiously! They were loyal all
- round. They were loyal to their Tamasese, and got him off with his fine.
- And shall I not be a little loyal to Mataafa? And will you not help me?
- He is now an old man, very piously inclined, and I believe he would
- enter at least the lesser orders of the Church if he were suffered to
- come back. But I do not even ask so much as this, though I hope it. It
- would be enough if he were brought back to Fiji, back to the food and
- fresh water of his childhood, back into the daylight from the darkness
- of the Marshalls, where some of us could see him, where we could write
- to him and receive answers, where he might pass a tolerable old age. If
- you can help me to get this done, I am sure that you will never regret
- it. In its small way, this is another case of Toussaint L'Ouverture, not
- so monstrous if you like, not on so large a scale, but with
- circumstances of small perfidy that make it almost as odious.
- I may tell you in conclusion that, circumstances co-operating with my
- tedious insistence, the last of the Mataafa chiefs here in Apia has been
- liberated from gaol. All this time they stayed of their own free will,
- thinking it might injure Mataafa if they escaped when others did. And
- you will see by the enclosed paper how these poor fellows spent the
- first hours of their liberty.[12] You will see also that I am not the
- firebrand that I am sometimes painted, and that in helping me, if you
- shall decide to do so, you will be doing nothing against the peace and
- prosperity of Samoa.
- With many excuses for having occupied so much of your valuable time, I
- remain, yours truly,
- ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON.
- _P.S._--On revisal, I observe some points: in the first place, I do not
- believe Captain Bickford was to blame; I suspect him to have been a
- victim. I have been told, but it seems incredible, that he underwent an
- examination about Mataafa's daughter having been allowed to accompany
- him. Certainly he liked his job little, and some of his colleagues less.
- R. L. S.
- _Oct._ 9.
- Latest intelligence. We have received at last a letter from Mataafa. He
- is well treated and has good food; only complains of not hearing from
- Samoa. This has very much relieved our minds. But why were they
- previously left in the dark?
- R. L. S.
- FOOTNOTE:
- [12] _i.e._ in building a section of a new road to Mr. Stevenson's
- house. The paper referred to is a copy of the _Samoa Times_,
- containing a report of the dinner given by Mr. Stevenson at Vailima
- to inaugurate this new road.
- LETTERS TO YOUNG PEOPLE
- I
- TO MISS B...
- _Vailima Plantation [Spring_, 1892].
- Dear Friend,[13]--Please salute your pupils in my name, and tell them
- that a long, lean, elderly man who lives right through on the underside
- of the world, so that down in your cellar you are nearer him than the
- people in the street, desires his compliments.
- This man lives on an island which is not very long and is extremely
- narrow. The sea beats round it very hard, so that it is difficult to get
- to shore. There is only one harbour where ships come, and even that is
- very wild and dangerous; four ships of war were broken there a little
- while ago, and one of them is still lying on its side on a rock clean
- above water, where the sea threw it as you might throw your fiddle-bow
- upon the table. All round the harbour the town is strung out: it is
- nothing but wooden houses, only there are some churches built of stone.
- They are not very large, but the people have never seen such fine
- buildings. Almost all the houses are of one story. Away at one end of
- the village lives the king of the whole country. His palace has a
- thatched roof which rests upon posts; there are no walls, but when it
- blows and rains, they have Venetian blinds which they let down between
- the posts, making all very snug. There is no furniture, and the king and
- the queen and the courtiers sit and eat on the floor, which is of
- gravel: the lamp stands there too, and every now and then it is upset.
- These good folk wear nothing but a kilt about their waists, unless to go
- to church or for a dance on the New Year or some great occasion. The
- children play marbles all along the street; and though they are
- generally very jolly, yet they get awfully cross over their marbles, and
- cry and fight just as boys and girls do at home. Another amusement in
- country places is to shoot fish with a little bow and arrow. All round
- the beach there is bright shallow water, where the fishes can be seen
- darting or lying in shoals. The child trots round the shore, and
- whenever he sees a fish, lets fly an arrow, and misses, and then wades
- in after his arrow. It is great fun (I have tried it) for the child, and
- I never heard of it doing any harm to the fishes, so what could be more
- jolly?
- The road to this lean man's house is uphill all the way, and through
- forests; the trees are not so much unlike those at home, only here and
- there some very queer ones are mixed with them--cocoa-nut palms, and
- great trees that are covered with bloom like red hawthorn but not near
- so bright; and from them all thick creepers hang down like ropes, and
- ugly-looking weeds that they call orchids grow in the forks of the
- branches; and on the ground many prickly things are dotted, which they
- call pine-apples. I suppose every one has eaten pine-apple drops.
- On the way up to the lean man's house you pass a little village, all of
- houses like the king's house, so that as you ride by you can see
- everybody sitting at dinner, or, if it is night, lying in their beds by
- lamplight; because all the people are terribly afraid of ghosts, and
- would not lie in the dark for anything. After the village, there is only
- one more house, and that is the lean man's. For the people are not very
- many, and live all by the sea, and the whole inside of the island is
- desert woods and mountains. When the lean man goes into the forest, he
- is very much ashamed to own it, but he is always in a terrible fright.
- The wood is so great, and empty, and hot, and it is always filled with
- curious noises: birds cry like children, and bark like dogs; and he can
- hear people laughing and felling trees; and the other day (when he was
- far in the woods) he heard a sound like the biggest mill-wheel possible,
- going with a kind of dot-and-carry-one movement like a dance. That was
- the noise of an earthquake away down below him in the bowels of the
- earth; and that is the same thing as to say away up toward you in your
- cellar in Kilburn. All these noises make him feel lonely and scared, and
- he doesn't quite know what he is scared of. Once when he was just about
- to cross a river, a blow struck him on the top of his head, and knocked
- him head-foremost down the bank and splash into the water. It was a nut,
- I fancy, that had fallen from a tree, by which accident people are
- sometimes killed. But at the time he thought it was a Black Boy.
- "Aha," say you, "and what is a Black Boy?" Well, there are here a lot of
- poor people who are brought to Samoa from distant islands to labour for
- the Germans. They are not at all like the king and his people, who are
- brown and very pretty: for these are black as negroes and as ugly as
- sin, poor souls, and in their own land they live all the time at war,
- and cook and eat men's flesh. The Germans make them work; and every now
- and then some run away into the Bush, as the forest is called, and build
- little sheds of leaves, and eat nuts and roots and fruits, and dwell
- there by themselves. Sometimes they are bad, and wild, and people
- whisper to each other that some of them have gone back to their horrid
- old habits, and catch men and women in order to eat them. But it is very
- likely not true; and the most of them are poor, half-starved, pitiful
- creatures, like frightened dogs. Their life is all very well when the
- sun shines, as it does eight or nine months in the year. But it is very
- different the rest of the time. The wind rages then most violently. The
- great trees thrash about like whips; the air is filled with leaves and
- branches flying like birds; and the sound of the trees falling shakes
- the earth. It rains, too, as it never rains at home. You can hear a
- shower while it is yet half a mile away, hissing like a shower-bath in
- the forest; and when it comes to you, the water blinds your eyes, and
- the cold drenching takes your breath away as though some one had struck
- you. In that kind of weather it must be dreadful indeed to live in the
- woods, one man alone by himself. And you must know that if the lean man
- feels afraid to be in the forest, the people of the island and the Black
- Boys are much more afraid than he; for they believe the woods to be
- quite filled with spirits; some like pigs, and some like flying things;
- but others (and these are thought the most dangerous) in the shape of
- beautiful young women and young men, beautifully dressed in the island
- manner with fine kilts and fine necklaces, and crosses of scarlet seeds
- and flowers. Woe betide him or her who gets to speak with one of these!
- They will be charmed out of their wits, and come home again quite silly,
- and go mad and die. So that the poor runaway Black Boy must be always
- trembling, and looking about for the coming of the demons.
- Sometimes the women-demons go down out of the woods into the villages;
- and here is a tale the lean man heard last year: One of the islanders
- was sitting in his house, and he had cooked fish. There came along the
- road two beautiful young women, dressed as I told you, who came into his
- house, and asked for some of his fish. It is the fashion in the islands
- always to give what is asked, and never to ask folks' names. So the man
- gave them fish, and talked to them in the island jesting way. Presently
- he asked one of the women for her red necklace; which is good manners
- and their way: he had given the fish, and he had a right to ask for
- something back. "I will give it you by and by," said the woman, and she
- and her companion went away; but he thought they were gone very
- suddenly, and the truth is they had vanished. The night was nearly come,
- when the man heard the voice of the woman crying that he should come to
- her, and she would give the necklace. He looked out, and behold! she was
- standing calling him from the top of the sea, on which she stood as you
- might stand on the table. At that, fear came on the man; he fell on his
- knees and prayed, and the woman disappeared.
- It was said afterward that this was once a woman, indeed, but she should
- have died a thousand years ago, and has lived all that while as an evil
- spirit in the woods beside the spring of a river. Sau-mai-afe[14] is her
- name, in case you want to write to her.
- Ever your friend (for whom I thank the stars),
- TUSITALA (Tale-writer).
- II
- TO MISS B...
- _Vailima Plantation, 14 Aug._ 1892.
- ... The lean man is exceedingly ashamed of himself, and offers his
- apologies to the little girls in the cellar just above. If they will be
- so good as to knock three times upon the floor, he will hear it on the
- other side of his floor, and will understand that he is forgiven.
- I left you and the children still on the road to the lean man's house,
- where a great part of the forest has now been cleared away. It comes
- back again pretty quick, though not quite so high; but everywhere,
- except where the weeders have been kept busy, young trees have sprouted
- up, and the cattle and the horses cannot be seen as they feed. In this
- clearing there are two or three houses scattered about, and between the
- two biggest I think the little girls in the cellar would first notice a
- sort of thing like a gridiron on legs, made of logs of wood. Sometimes
- it has a flag flying on it, made of rags of old clothes. It is a fort
- (as I am told) built by the person here who would be much the most
- interesting to the girls in the cellar. This is a young gentleman of
- eleven years of age, answering to the name of Austin. It was after
- reading a book about the Red Indians that he thought it more prudent to
- create this place of strength. As the Red Indians are in North America,
- and this fort seems to me a very useless kind of building, I anxiously
- hope that the two may never be brought together. When Austin is not
- engaged in building forts, nor on his lessons, which are just as
- annoying to him as other children's lessons are to them, he walks
- sometimes in the Bush, and if anybody is with him, talks all the time.
- When he is alone I don't think he says anything, and I dare say he feels
- very lonely and frightened, just as the Samoan does, at the queer noises
- and the endless lines of the trees.
- He finds the strangest kinds of seeds, some of them bright-coloured like
- lollipops, or really like precious stones; some of them in odd cases
- like tobacco-pouches. He finds and collects all kinds of little shells,
- with which the whole ground is scattered, and that, though they are the
- shells of land creatures like our snails, are of nearly as many shapes
- and colours as the shells on our sea-beaches. In the streams that come
- running down out of our mountains, all as clear and bright as
- mirror-glass, he sees eels and little bright fish that sometimes jump
- together out of the surface of the brook in a spray of silver, and
- fresh-water prawns which lie close under the stones, looking up at him
- through the water with eyes the colour of a jewel. He sees all kinds of
- beautiful birds, some of them blue and white, and some of them coloured
- like our pigeons at home; and these last, the little girls in the cellar
- may like to know, live almost entirely on wild nutmegs as they fall ripe
- off the trees. Another little bird he may sometimes see, as the lean man
- saw him only this morning: a little fellow not so big as a man's hand,
- exquisitely neat, of a pretty bronzy black like ladies' shoes, who
- sticks up behind him (much as a peacock does) his little tail, shaped
- and fluted like a scallop-shell.
- Here there are a lot of curious and interesting things that Austin sees
- all round him every day; and when I was a child at home in the old
- country I used to play and pretend to myself that I saw things of the
- same kind--that the rooms were full of orange and nutmeg trees, and the
- cold town gardens outside the windows were alive with parrots and with
- lions. What do the little girls in the cellar think that Austin does? He
- makes believe just the other way; he pretends that the strange great
- trees with their broad leaves and slab-sided roots are European oaks;
- and the places on the road up (where you and I and the little girls in
- the cellar have already gone) he calls old-fashioned, far-away European
- names, just as if you were to call the cellar-stairs and the corner of
- the next street--if you could only manage to pronounce their
- names--Upolu and Savaii. And so it is with all of us, with Austin, and
- the lean man, and the little girls in the cellar; wherever we are, it is
- but a stage on the way to somewhere else, and whatever we do, however
- well we do it, it is only a preparation to do something else that shall
- be different.
- But you must not suppose that Austin does nothing but build forts, and
- walk among the woods, and swim in the rivers. On the contrary, he is
- sometimes a very busy and useful fellow; and I think the little girls in
- the cellar would have admired him very nearly as much as he admired
- himself, if they had seen him setting off on horseback, with his hand on
- his hip, and his pocket full of letters and orders, at the head of quite
- a procession of huge white cart-horses with pack-saddles, and big, brown
- native men with nothing on but gaudy kilts. Mighty well he managed all
- his commissions; and those who saw him ordering and eating his
- single-handed luncheon in the queer little Chinese restaurant on the
- beach, declare he looked as if the place, and the town, and the whole
- archipelago belonged to him.
- But I am not going to let you suppose that this great gentleman at the
- head of all his horses and his men, like the king of France in the old
- rhyme, would be thought much of a dandy on the streets of London. On the
- contrary, if he could be seen with his dirty white cap and his faded
- purple shirt, and his little brown breeks that do not reach his knees,
- and the bare shanks below, and the bare feet stuck in the
- stirrup-leathers--for he is not quite long enough to reach the irons--I
- am afraid the little girls and boys in your part of the town might be
- very much inclined to give him a penny in charity. So you see that a
- very big man in one place might seem very small potatoes in another,
- just as the king's palace here (of which I told you in my last) would be
- thought rather a poor place of residence by a Surrey gipsy. And if you
- come to that, even the lean man himself, who is no end of an important
- person, if he were picked up from the chair where he is now sitting, and
- slung down, feet foremost, in the neighbourhood of Charing Cross, would
- probably have to escape into the nearest shop, or take the risk of being
- mobbed. And the ladies of his family, who are very pretty ladies, and
- think themselves uncommon well-dressed for Samoa, would (if the same
- thing were to be done to them) be extremely glad to get into a cab....
- TUSITALA.
- III
- UNDER COVER TO MISS B...
- _Vailima, 4th Sept. 1892._
- Dear Children in the Cellar,--I told you before something of the Black
- Boys who come here to work on the plantations, and some of whom run away
- and live a wild life in the forests of the island.[15] Now I want to
- tell you of one who lived in the house of the lean man. Like the rest of
- them here, he is a little fellow, and when he goes about in old battered
- cheap European clothes, looks very small and shabby. When first he came
- he was as lean as a tobacco-pipe, and his smile (like that of almost all
- the others) was the sort that half makes you wish to smile yourself, and
- half wish to cry. However, the boys in the kitchen took him in hand and
- fed him up. They would set him down alone to table, and wait upon him
- till he had his fill, which was a good long time to wait. The first
- thing we noticed was that his little stomach began to stick out like a
- pigeon's breast; and then the food got a little wider spread, and he
- started little calves to his legs; and last of all, he began to get
- quite saucy and impudent. He is really what you ought to call a young
- man, though I suppose nobody in the whole wide world has any idea of his
- age; and as far as his behaviour goes, you can only think of him as a
- big little child with a good deal of sense.
- When Austin built his fort against the Indians, Arick (for that is the
- Black Boy's name) liked nothing so much as to help him. And this is very
- funny, when you think that of all the dangerous savages in this island
- Arick is one of the most dangerous. The other day, besides, he made
- Austin a musical instrument of the sort they use in his own country--a
- harp with only one string. He took a stick about three feet long and
- perhaps four inches round. The under side he hollowed out in a deep
- trench to serve as sounding-box; the two ends of the upper side he made
- to curve upward like the ends of a canoe, and between these he stretched
- the single string. He plays upon it with a match or a little piece of
- stick, and sings to it songs of his own country, of which no person here
- can understand a single word, and which are, very likely, all about
- fighting with his enemies in battle, and killing them, and, I am sorry
- to say, cooking them in a ground-oven, and eating them for supper when
- the fight is over.
- For Arick is really what you call a savage, though a savage is a very
- different sort of a person, and very much nicer than he is made to
- appear in little books. He is the kind of person that everybody smiles
- to, or makes faces at, or gives a smack as he goes by; the sort of
- person that all the girls on the plantation give the best seat to and
- help first, and love to decorate with flowers and ribbons, and yet all
- the while are laughing at him; the sort of person who likes best to play
- with Austin, and whom Austin, perhaps (when he is allowed), likes best
- to play with. He is all grins and giggles and little steps out of
- dances, and little droll ways to attract people's attention and set them
- laughing. And yet, when you come to look at him closely, you will find
- that his body is all covered with _scars_! This happened when he was a
- child. There was war, as is the way in these wild islands, between his
- village and the next, much as if there were war in London between one
- street and another; and all the children ran about playing in the middle
- of the trouble, and, I dare say, took no more notice of the war than you
- children in London do of a general election. But sometimes, at general
- elections, English children may get run over by processions in the
- street; and it chanced that as little Arick was running about in the
- Bush, and very busy about his playing, he ran into the midst of the
- warriors on the other side. These speared him with a poisoned spear; and
- his own people, when they had found him, in order to cure him of the
- poison scored him with knives that were probably made of fish-bone.
- This is a very savage piece of child-life; and Arick, for all his good
- nature, is still a very savage person. I have told you how the Black
- Boys sometimes run away from the plantations, and live alone in the
- forest, building little sheds to protect them from the rain, and
- sometimes planting little gardens for food; but for the most part living
- the best they can upon the nuts of the trees and the yams that they dig
- with their hands out of the earth. I do not think there can be anywhere
- in the world people more wretched than these runaways. They cannot
- return, for they would only return to be punished; they can never hope
- to see again their own people--indeed, I do not know what they can hope,
- but just to find enough yams every day to keep them from starvation. And
- in the wet season of the year, which is our summer and your winter, when
- the rain falls day after day far harder and louder than the loudest
- thunder-plump that ever fell in England, and the room is so dark that
- the lean man is sometimes glad to light his lamp to write by, I can
- think of nothing so dreary as the state of these poor runaways in the
- houseless bush. You are to remember, besides, that the people of the
- island hate and fear them because they are cannibals; sit and tell
- tales of them about their lamps at night in their own comfortable
- houses, and are sometimes afraid to lie down to sleep if they think
- there is a lurking Black Boy in the neighbourhood. Well, now, Arick is
- of their own race and language, only he is a little more lucky because
- he has not run away; and how do you think that he proposed to help them?
- He asked if he might not have a gun. "What do you want with a gun,
- Arick?" was asked. He answered quite simply, and with his nice,
- good-natured smile, that if he had a gun he would go up into the High
- Bush and shoot Black Boys as men shoot pigeons. He said nothing about
- eating them, nor do I think he really meant to; I think all he wanted
- was to clear the plantation of vermin, as gamekeepers at home kill
- weasels or rats.
- The other day he was sent on an errand to the German company where many
- of the Black Boys live. It was very late when he came home. He had a
- white bandage round his head, his eyes shone, and he could scarcely
- speak for excitement. It seems some of the Black Boys who were his
- enemies at home had attacked him, one with a knife. By his own account,
- he had fought very well; but the odds were heavy. The man with the knife
- had cut him both in the head and back; he had been struck down; and if
- some Black Boys of his own side had not come to the rescue, he must
- certainly have been killed. I am sure no Christmas-box could make any of
- you children so happy as this fight made Arick. A great part of the next
- day he neglected his work to play upon the one-stringed harp and sing
- songs about his great victory. To-day, when he is gone upon his holiday,
- he has announced that he is going back to the German firm to have
- another battle and another triumph. I do not think he will go, all the
- same, or I should be uneasy; for I do not want to have my Arick killed;
- and there is no doubt that if he begins this fight again, he will be
- likely to go on with it very far. For I have seen him once when he saw,
- or thought he saw, an enemy.
- It was one of those dreadful days of rain, the sound of it like a great
- waterfall, or like a tempest of wind blowing in the forest; and there
- came to our door two runaway Black Boys seeking refuge. In such weather
- as that my enemy's dog (as Shakespeare says) should have had a right to
- shelter. But when Arick saw the two poor rogues coming with their empty
- stomachs and drenched clothes, one of them with a stolen cutlass in his
- hand, through that world of falling water, he had no thought of any pity
- in his heart. Crouching behind one of the pillars of the verandah, to
- which he clung with his two hands, his mouth drew back into a strange
- sort of smile, his eyes grew bigger and bigger, and his whole face was
- just like the one word MURDER in big capitals.
- But I have told you a great deal too much about poor Arick's savage
- nature, and now I must tell you of a great amusement he had the other
- day. There came an English ship of war into the harbour, and the
- officers good-naturedly gave an entertainment of songs and dances and a
- magic lantern, to which Arick and Austin were allowed to go. At the door
- of the hall there were crowds of Black Boys waiting and trying to peep
- in, as children at home lie about and peep under the tent of a circus;
- and you may be sure Arick was a very proud person when he passed them
- all by, and entered the hall with his ticket.
- I wish I knew what he thought of the whole performance; but a friend of
- the lean man, who sat just in front of Arick, tells me what seemed to
- startle him most. The first thing was when two of the officers came out
- with blackened faces, like minstrels, and began to dance. Arick was sure
- that they were really black, and his own people, and he was wonderfully
- surprised to see them dance in this new European style.
- But the great affair was the magic lantern. The hall was made quite
- dark, which was very little to Arick's taste. He sat there behind my
- friend, nothing to be seen of him but eyes and teeth, and his heart was
- beating finely in his little scarred breast. And presently there came
- out of the white sheet that great big eye of light that I am sure all
- you children must have often seen. It was quite new to Arick; he had no
- idea what would happen next, and in his fear and excitement he laid hold
- with his little slim black fingers like a bird's claw on the neck of the
- friend in front of him. All through the rest of the show, as one picture
- followed another on the white sheet, he sat there grasping and
- clutching, and goodness knows whether he were more pleased or
- frightened.
- Doubtless it was a very fine thing to see all those bright pictures
- coming out and dying away again, one after another; but doubtless it was
- rather alarming also, for how was it done? At last when there appeared
- upon the screen the head of a black woman (as it might be his own mother
- or sister), and this black woman of a sudden began to roll her eyes, the
- fear or the excitement, whichever it was, rung out of him a loud,
- shuddering sob. I think we all ought to admire his courage when, after
- an evening spent in looking at such wonderful miracles, he and Austin
- set out alone through the forest to the lean man's house. It was late at
- night and pitch dark when some of the party overtook the little white
- boy and the big black boy, marching among the trees with their lantern.
- I have told you this wood has an ill name, and all the people of the
- island believe it to be full of evil spirits; it is a pretty dreadful
- place to walk in by the moving light of a lantern, with nothing about
- you but a curious whirl of shadows, and the black night above and
- beyond. But Arick kept his courage up, and I dare say Austin's too, with
- a perpetual chatter, so that the people coming after heard his voice
- long before they saw the shining of the lantern.
- TUSITALA.
- IV
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- _Vailima, November_ 2, 1892.
- My dear Austin,--First and foremost I think you will be sorry to hear
- that our poor friend Arick has gone back to the German firm. He had not
- been working very well, and we had talked of sending him off before; but
- remembering how thin he was when he came here, and seeing what fat
- little legs and what a comfortable little stomach he had laid on in the
- meanwhile, we found we had not the heart. The other day, however, he set
- up chat to Henry, the Samoan overseer, asking him who he was and where
- he came from, and refusing to obey his orders. I was in bed in the
- workmen's house, having a fever. Uncle Lloyd came over to me, told me of
- it, and I had Arick sent up. I told him I would give him another chance.
- He was taken out and asked to apologise to Henry, but he would do no
- such thing. He preferred to go back to the German firm. So we hired a
- couple of Samoans who were up here on a visit to the boys and packed him
- off in their charge to the firm, where he arrived safely, and a receipt
- was given for him like a parcel.[16]
- Sunday last the _Alameda_ returned. Your mother was off bright and early
- with Palema, for it is a very curious thing, but is certainly the case,
- that she was very impatient to get news of a young person by the name
- of Austin. Mr. Gurr lent a horse for the Captain--it was a pretty big
- horse, but our handsome Captain, as you know, is a very big Captain
- indeed. Now, do you remember Misifolo--a tall, thin Hovea boy that came
- shortly before you left? He had been riding up this same horse of Gurr's
- just the day before, and the horse threw him off at Motootua corner, and
- cut his hip. So Misifolo called out to the Captain as he rode by that
- that was a very bad horse, that it ran away and threw people off, and
- that he had best be careful; and the funny thing is, that the Captain
- did not like it at all. The foal might as well have tried to run away
- with Vailima as that horse with Captain Morse, which is poetry, as you
- see, into the bargain; but the Captain was not at all in that way of
- thinking, and was never really happy until he had got his foot on ground
- again. It was just then that the horse began to be happy too, so they
- parted in one mind. But the horse is still wondering what kind of piece
- of artillery he had brought up to Vailima last Sunday morning. So far it
- was all right. The Captain was got safe off the wicked horse, but how
- was he to get back again to Apia and the _Alameda_?
- Happy thought--there was Donald, the big pack-horse! The last time
- Donald was ridden he had upon him a hair-pin and a pea--by which I
- mean--(once again to drop into poetry) you and me. Now he was to have a
- rider more suited to his size. He was brought up to the door--he looked
- a mountain. A step-ladder was put alongside of him. The Captain
- approached the step-ladder, and he looked an Alp. I wasn't as much
- afraid for the horse as I was for the step-ladder, but it bore the
- strain, and with a kind of sickening smash that you might have heard at
- Monterey, the Captain descended to the saddle. Now don't think that I am
- exaggerating, but at the moment when that enormous Captain settled down
- upon Donald, the horse's hind-legs gave visibly under the strain. What
- the couple looked like, one on top of t'other, no words can tell you,
- and your mother must here draw a picture.
- --Your respected Uncle,
- O TUSITALA.
- V
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- _Vailima, November_ 15, 1892.
- My dear Austin,--The new house is begun. It stands out nearly half way
- over towards Pineapple Cottage--the lower floor is laid and the uprights
- of the wall are set up; so that the big lower room wants nothing but a
- roof over its head. When it rains (as it does mostly all the time) you
- never saw anything look so sorry for itself as that room left outside.
- Beyond the house there is a work-shed roofed with sheets of iron, and in
- front, over about half the lawn, the lumber for the house lies piled. It
- is about the bringing up of this lumber that I want to tell you.
- For about a fortnight there were at work upon the job two German
- overseers, about a hundred Black Boys, and from twelve to twenty-four
- draught-oxen. It rained about half the time, and the road was like
- lather for shaving. The Black Boys seemed to have had a new rig-out.
- They had almost all shirts of scarlet flannel, and lavalavas, the Samoan
- kilt, either of scarlet or light blue. As the day got warm they took off
- the shirts; and it was a very curious thing, as you went down to Apia on
- a bright day, to come upon one tree after another in the empty forest
- with these shirts stuck among the branches like vermilion birds.
- I observed that many of the boys had a very queer substitute for a
- pocket. This was nothing more than a string which some of them tied
- about their upper arms and some about their necks, and in which they
- stuck their clay pipes; and as I don't suppose they had anything else to
- carry, it did very well. Some had feathers in their hair, and some long
- stalks of grass through the holes in their noses. I suppose this was
- intended to make them look pretty, poor dears; but you know what a Black
- Boy looks like, and these Black Boys, for all their blue, and their
- scarlet, and their grass, looked just as shabby, and small, and sad, and
- sorry for themselves, and like sick monkeys as any of the rest.
- As you went down the road you came upon them first working in squads of
- two. Each squad shouldered a couple of planks and carried them up about
- two hundred feet, gave them to two others, and walked back empty-handed
- to the places they had started from. It wasn't very hard work, and they
- didn't go about it at all lively; but of course, when it rained, and the
- mud was deep, the poor fellows were unhappy enough. This was in the
- upper part about Trood's. Below, all the way down to Tanugamanono, you
- met the bullock-carts coming and going, each with ten or twenty men to
- attend upon it, and often enough with one of the overseers near. Quite a
- far way off through the forest you could hear the noise of one of these
- carts approaching. The road was like a bog, and though a good deal wider
- than it was when you knew it, so narrow that the bullocks reached quite
- across it with the span of their big horns. To pass by, it was necessary
- to get into the bush on one side or the other. The bullocks seemed to
- take no interest in their business; they looked angry and stupid, and
- sullen beyond belief; and when it came to a heavy bit of the road, as
- often as not they would stop.
- As long as they were going, the Black Boys walked in the margin of the
- bush on each side, pushing the cart-wheels with hands and shoulders, and
- raising the most extraordinary outcry. It was strangely like some very
- big kind of bird. Perhaps the great flying creatures that lived upon the
- earth long before man came, if we could have come near one of their
- meeting-places, would have given us just such a concert.
- When one of the bullamacows[17] stopped altogether the fun was highest.
- The bullamacow stood on the road, his head fixed fast in the yoke,
- chewing a little, breathing very hard, and showing in his red eye that
- if he could get rid of the yoke he would show them what a circus was.
- All the Black Boys tailed on to the wheels and the back of the cart,
- stood there getting their spirits up, and then of a sudden set to
- shooing and singing out. It was these outbursts of shrill cries that it
- was so curious to hear in the distance. One such stuck cart I came up to
- and asked what was the worry. "Old fool bullamacow stop same place," was
- the reply. I never saw any of the overseers near any of the stuck carts;
- you were a very much better overseer than either of these.
- While this was going on, I had to go down to Apia five or six different
- times, and each time there were a hundred Black Boys to say
- "Good-morning" to. This was rather a tedious business; and, as very few
- of them answered at all, and those who did, only with a grunt like a
- pig's, it was several times in my mind to give up this piece of
- politeness. The last time I went down, I was almost decided; but when I
- came to the first pair of Black Boys, and saw them looking so comic and
- so melancholy, I began the business over again. This time I thought more
- of them seemed to answer, and when I got down to the tail-end where the
- carts were running, I received a very pleasant surprise, for one of the
- boys, who was pushing at the back of a cart, lifted up his head, and
- called out to me in wonderfully good English, "You good man--always say
- 'Good-morning.'" It was sad to think that these poor creatures should
- think so much of so small a piece of civility, and strange that
- (thinking so) they should be so dull as not to return it.
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- VI
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- _June_ 18, 1893.
- Respected Hopkins,[18]--This is to inform you that the Jersey cow had an
- elegant little cow-calf Sunday last. There was a great deal of
- rejoicing, of course; but I don't know whether or not you remember the
- Jersey cow. Whatever else she is, the Jersey cow is _not_ good-natured,
- and Dines, who was up here on some other business, went down to the
- paddock to get a hood and to milk her. The hood is a little wooden board
- with two holes in it, by which it is hung from her horns. I don't know
- how he got it on, and I don't believe _he_ does. Anyway, in the middle
- of the operation, in came Bull Bazett, with his head down, and roaring
- like the last trumpet. Dines and all his merry men hid behind trees in
- the paddock, and skipped. Dines then got upon a horse, plied his spurs,
- and cleared for Apia. The next time he is asked to meddle with our cows,
- he will probably want to know the reason why. Meanwhile, there was the
- cow, with the board over her eyes, left tied by a pretty long rope to a
- small tree in the paddock, and who was to milk her? She roared,--I was
- going to say like a bull, but it was Bazett who did that, walking up
- and down, switching his tail, and the noise of the pair of them was
- perfectly dreadful.
- Palema went up to the Bush to call Lloyd; and Lloyd came down in one of
- his know-all-about-it moods. "It was perfectly simple," he said. "The
- cow was hooded; anybody could milk her. All you had to do was to draw
- her up to the tree, and get a hitch about it." So he untied the cow, and
- drew her up close to the tree, and got a hitch about it right enough.
- And then the cow brought her intellect to bear on the subject, and
- proceeded to walk round the tree to get the hitch off.
- [Illustration]
- Now, this is geometry, which you'll have to learn some day. The tree is
- the centre of two circles. The cow had a "radius" of about two feet, and
- went leisurely round a small circle; the man had a "radius" of about
- thirty feet, and either he must let the cow get the hitch unwound, or
- else he must take up his two feet to about the height of his eyes, and
- race round a big circle. This was racing and chasing.
- The cow walked quietly round and round the tree to unwind herself; and
- first Lloyd, and then Palema, and then Lloyd again, scampered round the
- big circle, and fell, and got up again, and bounded like a deer, to keep
- her hitched.
- It was funny to see, but we couldn't laugh with a good heart; for every
- now and then (when the man who was running tumbled down) the cow would
- get a bit ahead; and I promise you there was then no sound of any
- laughter, but we rather edged away toward the gate, looking to see the
- crazy beast loose, and charging us. To add to her attractions, the board
- had fallen partly off, and only covered one eye, giving her the look of
- a crazy old woman in a Sydney slum. Meanwhile, the calf stood looking
- on, a little perplexed, and seemed to be saying: "Well, now, is this
- life? It doesn't seem as if it was all it was cracked up to be. And this
- is my mamma? What a very impulsive lady!"
- All the time, from the lower paddock, we could hear Bazett roaring like
- the deep seas, and if we cast our eye that way, we could see him
- switching his tail, as a very angry gentleman may sometimes switch his
- cane. And the Jersey would every now and then put up her head, and low
- like the pu[19] for dinner. And take it for all in all, it was a very
- striking scene. Poor Uncle Lloyd had plenty of time to regret having
- been in such a hurry; so had poor Palema, who was let into the business,
- and ran until he was nearly dead. Afterward Palema went and sat on a
- gate, where your mother sketched him, and she is going to send you the
- sketch. And the end of it? Well, we got her tied again, I really don't
- know how; and came stringing back to the house with our tails between
- our legs. That night at dinner, the Tamaitai[20] bid us tell the boys to
- be very careful "not to frighten the cow." It was too much; the cow had
- frightened us in such fine style that we all broke down and laughed like
- mad.
- General Hoskyns, there is no further news, your Excellency, that I am
- aware of. But it may interest you to know that Mr. Christian held his
- twenty-fifth birthday yesterday--a quarter of a living century old;
- think of it, drink of it, innocent youth!--and asked down Lloyd and
- Daplyn to a feast at one o'clock, and Daplyn went at seven, and got
- nothing to eat at all. Whether they had anything to drink, I know
- not--no, not I; but it's to be hoped so. Also, your uncle Lloyd has
- stopped smoking, and he doesn't like it much. Also, that your mother is
- most beautifully gotten up to-day, in a pink gown with a topaz stone in
- front of it; and is really looking like an angel, only that she isn't
- like an angel at all--only like your mother herself.
- Also that the Tamaitai has been waxing the floor of the big room, so
- that it shines in the most ravishing manner; and then we insisted on
- coming in, and she wouldn't let us, and we came anyway, and have made
- the vilest mess of it--but still it shines.
- Also, that I am, your Excellency's obedient servant,
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- VII
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- My Dear Hutchinson,--This is not going to be much of a letter, so don't
- expect what can't be had. Uncle Lloyd and Palema made a malanga[21] to
- go over the island to Siumu, and Talolo was anxious to go also; but how
- could we get along without him? Well, Misifolo, the Maypole, set off on
- Saturday, and walked all that day down the island to beyond Faleasiu
- with a letter for Iopu; and Iopu and Tali and Misifolo rose very early
- on the Sunday morning, and walked all that day up the island, and came
- by seven at night--all pretty tired, and Misifolo most of all--to
- Tanugamanono.[22] We at Vailima knew nothing at all about the marchings
- of the Saturday and Sunday, but Uncle Lloyd got his boys and things
- together and went to bed.
- A little after five in the morning I awoke and took the lantern, and
- went out of the front door and round the verandahs. There was never a
- spark of dawn in the east, only the stars looked a little pale; and I
- expected to find them all asleep in the workhouse. But no! the stove was
- roaring, and Talolo and Fono, who was to lead the party, were standing
- together talking by the stove, and one of Fono's young men was lying
- asleep on the sofa in the smoking-room, wrapped in his lavalava. I had
- my breakfast at half-past five that morning, and the bell rang before
- six, when it was just the grey of dawn. But by seven the feast was
- spread--there was lopu coming up, with Tali at his heels, and Misifolo
- bringing up the rear--and Talolo could go the malanga.
- Off they set, with two guns and three porters, and Fono and Lloyd and
- Palema and Talolo himself with best Sunday-go-to-meeting lavalava rolled
- up under his arm, and a very sore foot; but much he cared--he was
- smiling from ear to ear, and would have gone to Siumu over red-hot
- coals. Off they set round the corner of the cook-house, and into the
- bush beside the chicken-house, and so good-bye to them.
- But you should see how Iopu has taken possession! "Never saw a place in
- such a state!" is written on his face. "In my time," says he, "we didn't
- let things go ragging along like this, and I'm going to show you
- fellows." The first thing he did was to apply for a bar of soap, and
- then he set to work washing everything (that had all been washed last
- Friday in the regular course). Then he had the grass cut all round the
- cook-house, and I tell you but he found scraps, and odds and ends, and
- grew more angry and indignant at each fresh discovery.
- "If a white chief came up here and smelt this, how would you feel?" he
- asked your mother. "It is enough to breed a sickness!"
- And I dare say you remember this was just what your mother had often
- said to himself; and did say the day she went out and cried on the
- kitchen steps in order to make Talolo ashamed. But Iopu gave it all out
- as little new discoveries of his own. The last thing was the cows, and I
- tell you he was solemn about the cows. They were all destroyed, he said,
- nobody knew how to milk except himself--where he is about right. Then
- came dinner and a delightful little surprise. Perhaps you remember that
- long ago I used not to eat mashed potatoes, but had always two or three
- boiled in a plate. This has not been done for months, because Talolo
- makes such admirable mashed potatoes that I have caved in. But here came
- dinner, mashed potatoes for your mother and the Tamaitai, and then
- boiled potatoes in a plate for me!
- And there is the end of the Tale of the return of Iopu, up to date. What
- more there may be is in the lap of the gods, and, Sir, I am yours
- considerably,
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- VIII
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- My Dear Hoskyns,--I am kept away in a cupboard because everybody has the
- influenza; I never see anybody at all, and never do anything whatever
- except to put ink on paper up here in my room. So what can I find to
- write to you?--you, who are going to school, and getting up in the
- morning to go bathing, and having (it seems to me) rather a fine time of
- it in general?
- You ask if we have seen Arick? Yes, your mother saw him at the head of a
- gang of boys, and looking fat, and sleek, and well-to-do. I have an idea
- that he misbehaved here because he was homesick for the other Black
- Boys, and didn't know how else to get back to them. Well, he has got
- them now, and I hope he likes it better than I should.
- I read the other day something that I thought would interest so great a
- sea-bather as yourself. You know that the fishes that we see, and catch,
- go only a certain way down into the sea. Below a certain depth there is
- no life at all. The water is as empty as the air is above a certain
- height. Even the shells of dead fishes that come down there are crushed
- into nothing by the huge weight of the water. Lower still, in the places
- where the sea is profoundly deep, it appears that life begins again.
- People fish up in dredging-buckets loose rags and tatters of creatures
- that hang together all right down there with the great weight holding
- them in one, but come all to pieces as they are hauled up. Just what
- they look like, just what they do or feed upon, we shall never find out.
- Only that we have some flimsy fellow-creatures down in the very bottom
- of the deep seas, and cannot get them up except in tatters. It must be
- pretty dark where they live, and there are no plants or weeds, and no
- fish come down there, or drowned sailors either, from the upper parts,
- because these are all mashed to pieces by the great weight long before
- they get so far, or else come to a place where perhaps they float. But I
- dare say a cannon sometimes comes careering solemnly down, and circling
- about like a dead leaf or thistle-down; and then the ragged fellows go
- and play about the cannon and tell themselves all kinds of stories about
- the fish higher up and their iron houses, and perhaps go inside and
- sleep, and perhaps dream of it all like their betters.
- Of course you know a cannon down there would be quite light. Even in
- shallow water, where men go down with a diving-dress, they grow so light
- that they have to hang weights about their necks, and have their boots
- loaded with twenty pounds of lead--as I know to my sorrow. And with all
- this, and the helmet, which is heavy enough of itself to any one up here
- in the thin air, they are carried about like gossamers, and have to take
- every kind of care not to be upset and stood upon their heads. I went
- down once in the dress, and speak from experience. But if we could get
- down for a moment near where the fishes are, we should be in a tight
- place. Suppose the water not to crush us (which it would), we should
- pitch about in every kind of direction; every step we took would carry
- us as far as if we had seven-league boots; and we should keep flying
- head over heels, and top over bottom, like the liveliest clowns in the
- world.
- Well, sir, here is a great deal of words put down upon a piece of paper,
- and if you think that makes a letter, why, very well! And if you don't,
- I can't help it. For I have nothing under heaven to tell you.
- So, with kindest wishes to yourself, and Louie, and Aunt Nellie, believe
- me, your affectionate
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- Now here is something more worth telling you. This morning at six
- o'clock I saw all the horses together in the front paddock, and in a
- terrible ado about something. Presently I saw a man with two buckets on
- the march, and knew where the trouble was--the cow! The whole lot
- cleared to the gate but two--Donald, the big white horse, and my Jack.
- They stood solitary, one here, one there. I began to get interested, for
- I thought Jack was off his feed. In came the man with the bucket and all
- the ruck of curious horses at his tail. Right round he went to where
- Donald stood (D) and poured out a feed, and the majestic Donald ate it,
- and the ruck of common horses followed the man. On he went to the second
- station, Jack's (J. in the plan), and poured out a feed, and the fools
- of horses went in with him to the next place (A in the plan). And behold
- as the train swung round, the last of them came curiously too near Jack;
- and Jack left his feed and rushed upon this fool with a kind of outcry,
- and the fool fled, and Jack returned to his feed; and he and Donald ate
- theirs with glory, while the others were still circling round for fresh
- feeds.
- [Illustration]
- Glory be to the name of Donald and to the name of Jack, for they had
- found out where the foods were poured, and each took his station and
- waited there, Donald at the first of the course for his, Jack at the
- second station, while all the impotent fools ran round and round after
- the man with his buckets!
- R. L. S.
- IX
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- Vailima.
- My Dear Austin,--Now when the overseer is away[23] I think it my duty to
- report to him anything serious that goes on on the plantation.
- Early the other afternoon we heard that Sina's foot was very bad, and
- soon after that we could have heard her cries as far away as the front
- balcony. I think Sina rather enjoys being ill, and makes as much of it
- as she possibly can; but all the same it was painful to hear the cries;
- and there is no doubt she was at least very uncomfortable. I went up
- twice to the little room behind the stable, and found her lying on the
- floor, with Tali and Faauma and Talolo all holding on different bits of
- her. I gave her an opiate; but whenever she was about to go to sleep one
- of these silly people would be shaking her, or talking in her ear, and
- then she would begin to kick about again and scream.
- Palema and Aunt Maggie took horse and went down to Apia after the
- doctor. Right on their heels off went Mitaele on Musu to fetch Tauilo,
- Talolo's mother. So here was all the island in a bustle over Sina's
- foot. No doctor came, but he told us what to put on. When I went up at
- night to the little room, I found Tauilo there, and the whole plantation
- boxed into the place like little birds in a nest. They were sitting on
- the bed, they were sitting on the table, the floor was full of them, and
- the place as close as the engine-room of a steamer. In the middle lay
- Sina, about three parts asleep with opium; two able-bodied work-boys
- were pulling at her arms, and whenever she closed her eyes calling her
- by name, and talking in her ear. I really didn't know what would become
- of the girl before morning. Whether or not she had been very ill before,
- this was the way to make her so, and when one of the work-boys woke her
- up again, I spoke to him very sharply, and told Tauilo she must put a
- stop to it.
- Now I suppose this was what put it into Tauilo's head to do what she
- did next. You remember Tauilo, and what a fine, tall, strong, Madame
- Lafarge sort of person she is? And you know how much afraid the natives
- are of the evil spirits in the wood, and how they think all sickness
- comes from them? Up stood Tauilo, and addressed the spirit in Sina's
- foot, and scolded it, and the spirit answered and promised to be a good
- boy and go away. I do not feel so much afraid of the demons after this.
- It was Faauma told me about it. I was going out into the pantry after
- soda-water, and found her with a lantern drawing water from the tank.
- "Bad spirit he go away," she told me.
- "That's first-rate," said I. "Do you know what the name of that spirit
- was? His name was _tautala_ (talking)."
- "O, no!" she said; "his name is _Tu_."
- You might have knocked me down with a straw. "How on earth do you know
- that?" I asked.
- "Heerd him tell Tauilo," she said.
- As soon as I heard that I began to suspect Mrs. Tauilo was a little bit
- of a ventriloquist; and imitating as well as I could the sort of voice
- they make, asked her if the bad spirit did not talk like that. Faauma
- was very much surprised, and told me that was just his voice.
- Well, that was a very good business for the evening. The people all went
- away because the demon was gone away, and the circus was over, and Sina
- was allowed to sleep. But the trouble came after. There had been an evil
- spirit in that room and his name was Tu. No one could say when he might
- come back again; they all voted it was Tu much; and now Talolo and Sina
- have had to be lodged in the Soldier Room.[24] As for the little room by
- the stable, there it stands empty; it is too small to play soldiers in,
- and I do not see what we can do with it, except to have a nice brass
- name-plate engraved in Sydney, or in "Frisco," and stuck upon the door
- of it--_Mr. Tu._
- So you see that ventriloquism has its bad side as well as its good
- sides; and I don't know that I want any more ventriloquists on this
- plantation. We shall have _Tu_ in the cook-house next, and then _Tu_ in
- Lafaele's, and _Tu_ in the workman's cottage; and the end of it all will
- be that we shall have to take the Tamaitai's room for the kitchen, and
- my room for the boys' sleeping-house, and we shall all have to go out
- and camp under umbrellas.
- Well, where you are there may be schoolmasters, but there is no such
- thing as Mr. _Tu_!
- Now, it's all very well that these big people should be frightened out
- of their wits by an old wife talking with her mouth shut; that is one of
- the things we happen to know about. All the old women in the world might
- talk with their mouths shut, and not frighten you or me, but there are
- plenty of other things that frighten us badly. And if we only knew about
- them, perhaps we should find them no more worthy to be feared than an
- old woman talking with her mouth shut. And the names of some of these
- things are Death, and Pain, and Sorrow.
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- X
- TO AUSTIN STRONG
- _Jan._ 27, 1893.
- Dear General Hoskyns,--I have the honour to report as usual. Your giddy
- mother having gone planting a flower-garden, I am obliged to write with
- my own hand, and, of course, nobody will be able to read it. This has
- been a very mean kind of a month. Aunt Maggie left with the influenza.
- We have heard of her from Sydney, and she is all right again; but we
- have inherited her influenza, and it made a poor place of Vailima. We
- had Talolo, Mitaele, Sosimo, Iopu, Sina, Misifolo, and myself, all sick
- in bed at the same time; and was not that a pretty dish to set before
- the king! The big hall of the new house having no furniture, the sick
- pitched their tents in it,--I mean their mosquito-nets,--like a military
- camp. The Tamaitai and your mother went about looking after them, and
- managed to get us something to eat. Henry, the good boy! though he was
- getting it himself, did housework, and went round at night from one
- mosquito-net to another, praying with the sick. Sina, too, was as good
- as gold, and helped us greatly. We shall always like her better. All the
- time--I do not know how they managed--your mother found the time to come
- and write for me; and for three days, as I had my old trouble on, and
- had to play dumb man, I dictated a novel in the deaf-and-dumb alphabet.
- But now we are all recovered, and getting to feel quite fit. A new
- paddock has been made; the wires come right up to the top of the hill,
- pass within twenty yards of the big clump of flowers (if you remember
- that) and by the end of the pineapple patch. The Tamaitai and your
- mother and I all sleep in the upper story of the new house; Uncle Lloyd
- is alone in the workman's cottage; and there is nobody at all at night
- in the old house, but ants and cats and mosquitoes. The whole inside of
- the new house is varnished. It is a beautiful golden-brown by day, and
- in lamplight all black and sparkle. In the corner of the hall the new
- safe is built in, and looks as if it had millions of pounds in it; but I
- do not think there is much more than twenty dollars and a spoon or two;
- so the man that opens it will have a great deal of trouble for nothing.
- Our great fear is lest we should forget how to open it; but it will look
- just as well if we can't. Poor Misifolo--you remember the thin boy, do
- you not?--had a desperate attack of influenza; and he was in a great
- taking. You would not like to be very sick in some savage place in the
- islands, and have only the savages to doctor you? Well, that was just
- the way he felt. "It is all very well," he thought, "to let these
- childish white people doctor a sore foot or a toothache, but this is
- serious--I might die of this! For goodness' sake let me get away into a
- draughty native house, where I can lie in cold gravel, eat green
- bananas, and have a real grown-up, tattooed man to raise spirits and say
- charms over me." A day or two we kept him quiet, and got him much
- better. Then he said he _must_ go. He had had his back broken in his own
- islands, he said; it had come broken again, and he must go away to a
- native house and have it mended. "Confound your back!" said we; "lie
- down in your bed." At last, one day, his fever was quite gone, and he
- could give his mind to the broken back entirely. He lay in the hall; I
- was in the room alone; all morning and noon I heard him roaring like a
- bull calf, so that the floor shook with it. It was plainly humbug; it
- had the humbugging sound of a bad child crying; and about two of the
- afternoon we were worn out, and told him he might go. Off he set. He was
- in some kind of a white wrapping, with a great white turban on his head,
- as pale as clay, and walked leaning on a stick. But, O, he was a glad
- boy to get away from these foolish, savage, childish white people, and
- get his broken back put right by somebody with some sense. He nearly
- died that night, and little wonder! but he has now got better again, and
- long may it last! All the others were quite good, trusted us wholly, and
- stayed to be cured where they were. But then he was quite right, if you
- look at it from his point of view; for, though we may be very clever, we
- do not set up to cure broken backs. If a man has his back broken we
- white people can do nothing at all but bury him. And was he not wise,
- since that was his complaint, to go to folks who could do more?
- Best love to yourself, and Louie, and Aunt Nellie, and apologies for so
- dull a letter from your respectful and affectionate
- UNCLE LOUIS.
- FOOTNOTES:
- [13] The lady to whom the first three of these letters are addressed
- "used to hear" (writes Mr. Lloyd Osbourne) "so frequently of the
- 'boys' in Vailima, that she wrote and asked Mr. Stevenson for news of
- them, as it would so much interest her little girls. In the tropics,
- for some reason or other that it is impossible to understand,
- servants and work-people are always called 'boys,' though the years
- of Methuselah may have whitened their heads, and great-grandchildren
- prattle about their knees. Mr. Stevenson was amused to think that his
- 'boys,' who ranged from eighteen years of age to threescore and ten,
- should be mistaken for little youngsters; but he was touched to hear
- of the sick children his friend tried so hard to entertain, and
- gladly wrote a few letters to them. He would have written more but
- for the fact that his friend left the home, being transferred
- elsewhere."
- [14] Come-a-thousand.
- [15] The German company, from which we got our black boy Arick, owns
- and cultivates many thousands of acres in Samoa, and keeps at least a
- thousand black people to work on its plantations. Two schooners are
- always busy in bringing fresh batches to Samoa, and in taking home to
- their own islands the men who have worked out their three years' term
- of labour. This traffic in human beings is called the "labour trade,"
- and is the life's blood, not only of the great German company, but of
- all the planters in Fiji, Queensland, New Caledonia, German New
- Guinea, the Solomon Islands, and the New Hebrides. The difference
- between the labour trade, as it is now carried on under Government
- supervision, and the slave trade is a great one, but not great enough
- to please sensitive people. In Samoa the missionaries are not allowed
- by the company to teach these poor savages religion, or to do
- anything to civilise them and raise them from their monkey-like
- ignorance. But in other respects the company is not a bad master, and
- treats its people pretty well. The system, however, is one that
- cannot be defended and must sooner or later be suppressed.--[L.O.]
- [16] When Arick left us and went back to the German company, he had
- grown so fat and strong and intelligent that they deemed he was made
- for better things than for cotton-picking or plantation work, and
- handed him over to their surveyor, who needed a man to help him. I
- used often to meet him after this, tripping at his master's heels
- with the theodolite, or scampering about with tapes and chains like a
- kitten with a spool of thread. He did not look then as though he were
- destined to die of a broken heart, though that was his end not so
- many months afterward. The plantation manager told me that Arick and
- a New Ireland boy went crazy with home-sickness, and died in the
- hospital together.--[L.O.]
- [17] "Bullamacow" is a word that always amuses the visitor to Samoa.
- When the first pair of cattle was brought to the islands and the
- natives asked the missionaries what they must call these strange
- creatures, they were told that the English name was a "bull and a
- cow." But the Samoans thought that "a bull and a cow" was the name of
- each of the animals, and they soon corrupted the English words into
- "bullamacow," which has remained the name for beef or cattle ever
- since.--[L.O.]
- [18] In the letters that were sent to Austin Strong you will be
- surprised to see his name change from Austin to Hoskyns, and from
- Hopkins to Hutchinson. It was the penalty Master Austin had to pay
- for being the particular and bosom friend of each of the one hundred
- and eighty bluejackets that made up the crew of the British
- man-of-war _Curaçoa_; for, whether it was due to some bitter memories
- of the Revolutionary war, or to some rankling reminiscences of 1812,
- that even friendship could not altogether stifle (for Austin was a
- true American boy), they annoyed him by giving him, each one of them,
- a separate name.--[L.O.]
- [19] The big conch-shell that was blown at certain hours every
- day.--[L.O.]
- [20] Mrs. R. L. S., as she is called in Samoan, "the lady."--[L.O.]
- [21] A visiting party.
- [22] Talolo was the Vailima cook; Sina, his wife; Tauilo, his mother;
- Mitaele and Sosimo, his brothers. Lafaele, who was married to Faauma,
- was a middle-aged Futuna Islander, and had spent many years of his
- life on a whale-ship, the captain of which had kidnapped him when a
- boy. Misifolo was one of the "house-maids." Iopu and Tali, man and
- wife, had long been in our service, but had left it after they had
- been married some time; but, according to Samoan ideas, they were
- none the less members of Tusitala's family, because, though they were
- no longer working for him, they still owed him allegiance. "Aunt
- Maggie" is Mr. Stevenson's mother; Palema, Mr. Graham
- Balfour.--[L.O.]
- [23] While Austin was in Vailima many little duties about the
- plantation fell to his share, so that he was often called the
- "overseer"; and small as he was, he sometimes took charge of a couple
- of big men, and went into town with the pack-horses. It was not all
- play, either, for he had to see that the barrels and boxes did not
- chafe the horses' backs, and that they were not allowed to come home
- too fast up the steep road.--[L.O.]
- [24] A room set apart to serve as the theatre for an elaborate
- war-game, which was one of Mr. Stevenson's favourite recreations.
- END OF VOL. XVIII
- PRINTED BY CASSEL & CO., LTD., LA BELLE SAUVAGE, LONDON E.C.
- End of the Project Gutenberg EBook of The Works of Robert Louis Stevenson -
- Swanston Edition Vol. 18 (of 25), by Robert Louis Stevenson
- *** END OF THIS PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK ROBERT LOUIS STEVENSON ***
- ***** This file should be named 31557-8.txt or 31557-8.zip *****
- This and all associated files of various formats will be found in:
- http://www.gutenberg.org/3/1/5/5/31557/
- Produced by Marius Masi, Jonathan Ingram and the Online
- Distributed Proofreading Team at http://www.pgdp.net
- Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions
- will be renamed.
- Creating the works from public domain print editions means that no
- one owns a United States copyright in these works, so the Foundation
- (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United States without
- permission and without paying copyright royalties. Special rules,
- set forth in the General Terms of Use part of this license, apply to
- copying and distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works to
- protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm concept and trademark. Project
- Gutenberg is a registered trademark, and may not be used if you
- charge for the eBooks, unless you receive specific permission. If you
- do not charge anything for copies of this eBook, complying with the
- rules is very easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose
- such as creation of derivative works, reports, performances and
- research. They may be modified and printed and given away--you may do
- practically ANYTHING with public domain eBooks. Redistribution is
- subject to the trademark license, especially commercial
- redistribution.
- *** START: FULL LICENSE ***
- THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
- PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
- To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
- distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
- (or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License (available with this file or online at
- http://gutenberg.org/license).
- Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic works
- 1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
- and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
- (trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
- the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or destroy
- all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your possession.
- If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound by the
- terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person or
- entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
- 1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
- used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
- agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
- things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
- even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
- paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this agreement
- and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works. See paragraph 1.E below.
- 1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the Foundation"
- or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection of Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual works in the
- collection are in the public domain in the United States. If an
- individual work is in the public domain in the United States and you are
- located in the United States, we do not claim a right to prevent you from
- copying, distributing, performing, displaying or creating derivative
- works based on the work as long as all references to Project Gutenberg
- are removed. Of course, we hope that you will support the Project
- Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting free access to electronic works by
- freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm works in compliance with the terms of
- this agreement for keeping the Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with
- the work. You can easily comply with the terms of this agreement by
- keeping this work in the same format with its attached full Project
- Gutenberg-tm License when you share it without charge with others.
- 1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
- what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are in
- a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States, check
- the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this agreement
- before downloading, copying, displaying, performing, distributing or
- creating derivative works based on this work or any other Project
- Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no representations concerning
- the copyright status of any work in any country outside the United
- States.
- 1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
- 1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other immediate
- access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear prominently
- whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work on which the
- phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the phrase "Project
- Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed, performed, viewed,
- copied or distributed:
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere at no cost and with
- almost no restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or
- re-use it under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included
- with this eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org
- 1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is derived
- from the public domain (does not contain a notice indicating that it is
- posted with permission of the copyright holder), the work can be copied
- and distributed to anyone in the United States without paying any fees
- or charges. If you are redistributing or providing access to a work
- with the phrase "Project Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the
- work, you must comply either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1
- through 1.E.7 or obtain permission for the use of the work and the
- Project Gutenberg-tm trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or
- 1.E.9.
- 1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
- with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
- must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any additional
- terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms will be linked
- to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works posted with the
- permission of the copyright holder found at the beginning of this work.
- 1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
- work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
- 1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
- electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
- prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
- active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm License.
- 1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
- compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including any
- word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access to or
- distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format other than
- "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official version
- posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm web site (www.gutenberg.org),
- you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense to the user, provide a
- copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means of obtaining a copy upon
- request, of the work in its original "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other
- form. Any alternate format must include the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
- 1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
- performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
- unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
- 1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
- access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works provided
- that
- - You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is
- owed to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he
- has agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the
- Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments
- must be paid within 60 days following each date on which you
- prepare (or are legally required to prepare) your periodic tax
- returns. Royalty payments should be clearly marked as such and
- sent to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the
- address specified in Section 4, "Information about donations to
- the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation."
- - You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or
- destroy all copies of the works possessed in a physical medium
- and discontinue all use of and all access to other copies of
- Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- - You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of any
- money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days
- of receipt of the work.
- - You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
- 1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project Gutenberg-tm
- electronic work or group of works on different terms than are set
- forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing from
- both the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation and Michael
- Hart, the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the
- Foundation as set forth in Section 3 below.
- 1.F.
- 1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
- effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
- public domain works in creating the Project Gutenberg-tm
- collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may contain
- "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate or
- corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other intellectual
- property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or other medium, a
- computer virus, or computer codes that damage or cannot be read by
- your equipment.
- 1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
- of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
- Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
- Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
- liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
- fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
- LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
- PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH F3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
- TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
- LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
- INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
- DAMAGE.
- 1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
- defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
- receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
- written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
- received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium with
- your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you with
- the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in lieu of a
- refund. If you received the work electronically, the person or entity
- providing it to you may choose to give you a second opportunity to
- receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If the second copy
- is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing without further
- opportunities to fix the problem.
- 1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
- in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS' WITH NO OTHER
- WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT LIMITED TO
- WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTIBILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
- 1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
- warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of damages.
- If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement violates the
- law of the state applicable to this agreement, the agreement shall be
- interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or limitation permitted by
- the applicable state law. The invalidity or unenforceability of any
- provision of this agreement shall not void the remaining provisions.
- 1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
- trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
- providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in accordance
- with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the production,
- promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works,
- harmless from all liability, costs and expenses, including legal fees,
- that arise directly or indirectly from any of the following which you do
- or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this or any Project Gutenberg-tm
- work, (b) alteration, modification, or additions or deletions to any
- Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any Defect you cause.
- Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
- Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
- electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of computers
- including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It exists
- because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations from
- people in all walks of life.
- Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
- assistance they need, are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
- goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
- remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
- and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future generations.
- To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
- and how your efforts and donations can help, see Sections 3 and 4
- and the Foundation web page at http://www.pglaf.org.
- Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive
- Foundation
- The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non profit
- 501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
- state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
- Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
- number is 64-6221541. Its 501(c)(3) letter is posted at
- http://pglaf.org/fundraising. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent
- permitted by U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
- The Foundation's principal office is located at 4557 Melan Dr. S.
- Fairbanks, AK, 99712., but its volunteers and employees are scattered
- throughout numerous locations. Its business office is located at
- 809 North 1500 West, Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887, email
- business@pglaf.org. Email contact links and up to date contact
- information can be found at the Foundation's web site and official
- page at http://pglaf.org
- For additional contact information:
- Dr. Gregory B. Newby
- Chief Executive and Director
- gbnewby@pglaf.org
- Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation
- Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without wide
- spread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
- increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
- freely distributed in machine readable form accessible by the widest
- array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
- ($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
- status with the IRS.
- The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
- charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
- States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
- considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
- with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
- where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To
- SEND DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any
- particular state visit http://pglaf.org
- While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
- have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
- against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
- approach us with offers to donate.
- International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
- any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
- outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
- Please check the Project Gutenberg Web pages for current donation
- methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
- ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations.
- To donate, please visit: http://pglaf.org/donate
- Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic
- works.
- Professor Michael S. Hart is the originator of the Project Gutenberg-tm
- concept of a library of electronic works that could be freely shared
- with anyone. For thirty years, he produced and distributed Project
- Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of volunteer support.
- Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
- editions, all of which are confirmed as Public Domain in the U.S.
- unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not necessarily
- keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper edition.
- Most people start at our Web site which has the main PG search facility:
- http://www.gutenberg.org
- This Web site includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
- including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
- Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
- subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.